This Jay is insane do you see him?
wallacepolsom

izzy's playlists!
h
ojovivo
trying on a metaphor

oozey mess
Three Goblin Art
we're not kids anymore.
Today's Document
DEAR READER
Not today Justin

â

JVL
Sade Olutola
will byers stan first human second
Xuebing Du
Stranger Things
Lint Roller? I Barely Know Her

seen from United States

seen from Netherlands
seen from South Africa

seen from TĂźrkiye

seen from United Kingdom

seen from Japan

seen from United States

seen from United States
seen from United States

seen from Netherlands
seen from United States
seen from United Kingdom

seen from Malaysia
seen from United States

seen from Malaysia
seen from United States

seen from Greece

seen from United Kingdom

seen from United States

seen from Spain
@splat00z
This Jay is insane do you see him?

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch ⢠No registration required ⢠HD streaming
Phantom Pursuit- YJW
Jungwon is cocky, confident, and easily one of the most skilled world class spies in the world. Nothing seems to bother him and his impulse is his most deadliest weapon. His partner was skilled, capable, and detail oriented- aka you. Something big goes down on an unassuming mission. But little did you know this one mission could change the fate of the world as you knew it.
PAIRING: â Spy Jungwon ⊠Spy reader (f)
GENRE: fluff, sheâs angsty TT, slow burn, spy au
WARNINGS: making out, petnames, skinship, slow burn, I hate to say but there is angst, mentions of alcohol, guns, blood, fighting, cursing, near death experiences, mentions of death, dark haired Jungwon!, two ocs , thereâs probably wayyy more but idk how to do this
WC: 21.110 words
Yuni Says: hihi, this is my first fic ever. And I mean like on any writing platform. So Iâm completely new to writing- pls bear with me. Iâve been lurking on here for a while but I never published anything. Iâm not going to be very very consistent with my writing but I will try my best. Pls feel free to chat with me and give me any feedback to improve. But Iâm really really excited to start my journey on here!! Comments and reblogs are rlly appreciated. Anyway I hope you enjoy~ bye lovelies
The mission was simple- get into the gala and do some profiling on the high end criminals there. Although there was a stir of something else. Something big was happening at this gala of the underworld. That is precisely the reason that you were standing here. Underneath these opulent chandeliers in this glittering ballroom in Paris. The soft hum of classical music and whispers of the crooked floated through the air. The gala was filled with champagne fueled conversations that some could only decrypt as devious plans. You adjusted the slit of your deep sea blue dress and scanned the room observing the shadowy and mysterious figures. The earpiece buzzed faintly as you picked up a champagne flute from a waiter passing by.Â
âHear anything interesting?â Jungwonâs voice crackled in her ear through the comm system. His annoying voice was smug as always
You suppressed a sigh trying to keep your expression neutral. âIf by interesting, you mean potential intel, then no. Just the usual crowd of criminals pretending to be philanthropists.âÂ
âCome on, ___â Jungwon replied. âYou need to lighten up a bit. This is just a profiling mission. Its the easiest one weâve been on in a while. So just relax and try to have some fun will you?â
âJungwon no matter how easy this is its a mission. We arenât here to have funâ you say in a focused manner like always.Â
You scanned around the room noticing him. Jungwon was leaning against the bar in his sharp black tuxedo. His hair was slicked back and he had that air of confidence and easiness he carried. No matter how much you hate to admit it, his broad shoulders, lean build, and small waist looked damn good in that tux. His eyes met yours from across the room. They were deep brown and mysterious, yet they still had that longing look. Those eyes that hide a deeper emotion, something that you couldnât quite decipher. Even after all that training and those missions where you read people to a tee, you still couldnât quite read him. Yet, those eyes always lured you in and never failed to bring that slight flush up your neck despite how damn annoying he was. And that damn smile. That charming one he gave with both his dimples poking out. It had already attracted two women who were all up on Jungwon. It was pathetic and honestly infuriating how his simple smile had such an impact on anyone. Whatâs more pathetic is the way your own heart ached in the slightest way at the sight. Now wasnât the time for that though. You rolled your eyes as you set the champagne down.
âAre you flirting with civilians again??âÂ
âWould you prefer if I flirted with you instead?â Jungwon teased as he raised his glass in your direction.Â
âFocus Jungwon,â you hissed. âWe are here for intel, not your dating lifeâ you reprimand him as you eye the host of the party, he was new on the scene and your agency needed more information on said man.
âAnd yet,â he said, taking a sip of his drink, âIâm the one whoâs about to make progress.âÂ
Before you could say anything in return he had already slipped away from the bar. He excused himself from the two pretty girls who pouted as he said he needed to leave. The criminal was named Bryan Cavellott, he was new on the high end criminal scene. He had made his grand debut by stealing some jewels from a museum in Russia and now rumor says he has something else thats far more important than some pink diamonds. Something so valuable that he had attracted all the high-level criminals in europe to his gala. As Jungwon made a beeline towards the older man with the crisp white suit and shaped beard, he shot you a sly look.Â
You narrowed your eyes as you followed him from a distance. You slipped through the crowds as you kept your gaze trained on Jungwon. He had already begun his usual act: leaning in slightly, charming but conspiratorial smile playing on his lips, and a trustworthy tone of voice.Â
You spoke through the comm system again, âDonât blow our cover.â
âWhen have I ever blown our cover?â he whispered with a confident smile as he made his way closer to Cavellott.Â
âDo you want me to give you the list alphabetically or in order of how many times we almost died?â
Jungwon didnât say anything but the smirk on his face was answer enough. Instead he finally approached the old man. âMr. Cavellott?â he said his voice smooth. âQuite a gathering tonight. A man like you must have something truly extraordinary to share with us.â
Cavellottâs smile was thin and practiced but it held a hint of amusement too. âAh, and you are?â
âJung Parkâ he said easily, extending a hand. âInvestor, entrepreneur, and lover of all things valuable and rare.âÂ
You groaned into the earpiece quietly as you decided that you needed to make sure Jungwon didnât get one of his brilliant ideas again. So you approached the two smoothly.Â
âAnd who is your lovely companion?â Cavellott asked, his gaze sharp and shifting to meet yours as you slid up next to Jungwon.
â___ Nakamuraâ you say with a charming smile of your own. âJungâs business partner.â
Of course Jungwon couldnât help but add with a stupid grin, âamong other things.â which earned him a well deserved but subtle jab to his ribs from your elbow.Â
Cavellott seemed to have deemed you two trustworthy as he openly chuckled enjoying the dynamic between you two. âWell, Mr. Park and Miss Nakamura, I assure you that tonightâs main attractions is unlike anything youâve encountered before. An artifact of immense⌠potential.â
Jungwon tilted his head playing along, âintriguing. I assume this artifact isnât something you can pick up at a local auction house?âÂ
Cavellott smiled wider. âHardly. Itâs something far more elusive- something that has been hidden for centuries and only recently resurfaced.â
You leaned in slight, your tone cautious but curious. You preceded carefully but you couldnât help but think- is this what all the stir was about? âOh? And what exactly makes it so special?â
Cavellottâs eyes sparkled with a mixture of pride and secrecy. âAh, but that is the question isnât it? Its value lies not just in what it is but what it could do. Thatâs what everyoneâs here forâ
âSounds dangerous,â you said.
âAll things of great power are,â Cavellott replied smoothly. âBut thatâs why it must be handled by someone who understands its worth. Plus Iâm sure a lovely and confident lady like yourself wouldnât mind a little game of danger?â
You sent Jungwon a quick glance but you both knew what it meant. This was it. It wasnât just a rumor, whatever this⌠artifact is, its dangerous and with the way Cavellott is speaking of it- everyone here seems to understand its value. You sent a calm but pleased glance towards Cavellott despite the way your nerves were on edge.Â
âAnd this artifactâŚâ Jungwon said his voice steady but probing, âdoes it have a name?â
Cavellottâs smile thinned as his eyes darted around nervously before he leaned in closer. âI shouldnât even be discussing this, but I suppose youâll find out sooner or later. The artifact is known as the Phantom Codex.âÂ
The name itself sent a shiver down your spine although your expression remained neutral. The Phantom Codex⌠it was something significant. The way Cavellott spoke about it was too unsettling itself.
âAnd what does it do?â Jungwon asked his tone light but calculating.Â
Cavellott chuckled lightly but with a hint of knowing. âThat, my friend, is the question that everyone here tonight is asking. And the answer⌠is far more than you could ever imagine.â
Before the two of you could press him any farther a woman on the other end of the ballroom caught his eye. She gave him a sly smile before turning away and walking to the balcony. The challenge in her eye was unmistakable. Cavellott offered the two of you a rushed excuse. âIf youâll excuse me, I must attend to my other guests. Enjoy the evening you two.âÂ
And just like that he disappeared into the crowd. Jungwon leaned in closer to you, his voice was low and calculating. âPhantom Codex. Sound like the title of a bad action movie.â
âFocus Jungwon.â you snapped back at him. Your pulse was calm but your thoughts were racing. âWhatever it is, people are willing to kill for it. I mean some of these criminals hate each other but look at the way theyâre playing so nice tonight. Whatever this is we canât ignore it.â
Jungownâs playful expression faded as he took on a rare serious one instead. âThen I guess itâs time to figure out who else here knows something about it- and what they are willing to do to get it.âÂ
You nodded and scanned the room. This always happened to the two of you, not a single mission where the stakes hadnât risen. You were playing a game where one wrong move could cost you everything, even your life. In this room surrounded by throngs of dangerous people, you knew the importance of this mission.
âLets split up,â you said, your tone sharp. You gave him one last look over your shoulder. âAnd Jungwon? Try not to flirt with anyone.â
âNo promises,â he replied with a poor attempt at a wink before disappearing into the crowd. Despite yourself a small smile formed on your lips. You just sighed as you shook your head.Â
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The party shifted into a quieter, more exclusive phase as the night deepened. The glittering and glamorous crowd thinned, leaving behind only those with the wealth, power, and influence to justify their presence at this gala in the heart of Paris. You and Jungwon moved through the crowd, your ears sharp, ready to catch any piece of information about this mysterious artifact.Â
âAnything?â you whispered your voice barely audible over the classical tunes.Â
Jungwon, who was on the other side of the opulent room turned to find your eyes as he smiled teasingly. âA lot of people talking about a lot of things. Art deals, offshore accounts⌠oh and Lady Penningtonâs pomeranian apparently needs a personal chef and maid.âÂ
You shot him a sharp look.Â
âRelax Miss Nakamura,â he teased with a cocky smile as he made his way towards you. âBut seriously, everyoneâs buzzing about something being revealed soon. Iâm betting its our mysterious Codex.âÂ
You nodded, âwe need to find out what it is and when its going to be revealed.âÂ
As if on cue two men walked by. One of them was some normal small town criminal. The other one though⌠It was him, Ebony Lloyd. To say that the pair of you and Lloyd had a history would be an understatement. Whenever there was any trouble he was always there. He had a rich history himself⌠robberies, head of a notorious organization, bomb and arms dealing, drug trafficking. He was a tall and burly man with sleek black hair and eyes of a wolf always searching for his next prey. Of course someone like him was at a gala like this. He didnât seem to recognize you as he strolled right by. He was talking in hushed tones with the man but you heard bits of what they were saying. Something that sounded like: âAir strip..â âViennaâ âno mistakes this timeâ. Great- he was on the move again. You would deal with him later, right now the Codex is what mattered.Â
Jungwonâs expression soured as he laid his eyes on Lloyd. âWould you look at that? Its our best friend! And heâs conspiring again. I swear he canât ever keep still for even a few days.â Jungwon sneered quietly as he ran his hand through his styled hair in annoyance.
âWeâll have to deal with him later. Right now we need to find out about the Codex.â you say with a bit of an annoyed expression yourself.Â
Everyoneâs attention got drawn up to the front as a man strode up onto stage. The conversation died down as the man turned to face the crowd, commanding the attention of the room. He started smoothly and with confidence. âLadies and gentlemen, thank you for joining us this fine night. As many of you know, tonightâs gathering is more than a celebrationâ its an unveiling.â he declared
A murmur spread through the crowd as excitement rippled through the room.Â
âThe artifact you are about to see,â the man continued. âHas been the subject speculation and legend for centuries. Its origins are as elusive as its true potential. But tonight, it is here, in this very room, for the first time in generations this precious artifact has been unearthed again.â
Jungwon leaned a bit too close to murmur in your ear, âI have a bad feeling about this.â With the shiver running down your spine all you could do was nod.Â
Two heavily armed men appeared on stage, wheeling a steel reinforced case onto the stage. The man gestured towards the case with a flourish, his tone turned reverent âLadies and gentlemen, I present to you⌠the Phantom Codex.â
The case opened with a hiss and steam being emitted from inside. There it was.. The ever elusive Phantom Codex. It looked unsuspecting at first glance. Just a small black piece of tech that was shaped like that of a diamond. You had to take a closer look to realize that there were weird symbols and letters etched onto the surface. They didnât look like any language you recognized.. In fact the looked almost alien. Whats more is that they didnât seem to ever hold still, they shifted everytime you blinked. The tech emitted an eerie blue glow from the cracks in it as well. It truly was mysterious and a marvel of tech. You couldnât help but think- how old is this really? Why is this tech so important if its so old??Â
Jungwonâs breath caught too as he looked at the object. As you looked around the room- no one seemed to be able to look away. They all had the same blue glow in their eyes. This small little black diamond had stunned the hardest of criminals as the crowd gravitated towards it. You could see Jungwon lean closer to the stage himself.Â
Snapping your finger in front of his eyes you pulled him out of his trance. âJungwon.â you whispered in a hushed tone. âStop looking at it. Its like that Codex is pulling you in- like everyone else here.â
He blinked rapidly as he looked around the room like he was finally gaining his senses again. He quickly masked his entrancement, âthe only thing pulling me in is you cherie..â He brushed his hand against yours as a little tease. Your heart rate spiked but before you could come back with a witty comment the lights suddenly went out.Â
âStay close,â you say as you place your hand on the hilt of the knife concealed under your dress. Panic rose even more when a deafening shattering sound echoed through the room. Yells and cries followed closely as Jungwon muttered to himself âdamnit..â
When the lights flickered on there wasnât a Phantom Codex to marvel at. âItâs goneâ you hissed. The armed men were gone and the man who unveiled the Codex was on the floor, a pool of his own crimson blood surrounding him.Â
âWe need to move. The person who stole it isnât planning to stick around for long,â Jungwon rushed as he grabbed your arm. His grip firm but comforting as you two ran through the panicked crowd towards the nearest exit. Cavellottâs men were starting to close the exits. But in a quick series moves you rendered them unconscious as you ran through the gates.Â
âWhereâd they go?â you demanded, your pulse racing with a mixture adrenaline and frustration. Alas, whoever it was, was long gone. The midnight streets of Paris were completely empty. There wasnât even a trace of them. âWe lost it!â you said, your jaw tight.Â
You pulled your hand away from Jungwon as you smoothened your dress out with a look of frustration. Jungwonâs teasing personality dimmed as he placed a warm hand on your shoulder providing comfort in the cold night. âWeâll figure this out. You know we always do,â he said his voice steady despite the tension.Â
It was concerning how fast he could manipulate your emotions with just a few words. You unclenched your jaw as you gave him a curt nod. Still though your mind raced. What exactly was this Phantom Codex? Why were people going to the end of the world for that little diamond? And why did you have a sneaking feeling that this was just the beginning??
     Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
Back at their hotel, you sat crossed legged on the bed, a tablet in your lap as you compiled all the information you had picked up- which wasnât much. Jungwon on the other hand paced around the room with his tie loose, hair messed up with the way he ran his hands through it, and his shirt untucked. It was a sign of his restlessness.Â
Reviewing the security camera footage and guest list was of no use. Whoever this was- and you had a suspecting feeling- they were good. They were professional. Not a trace of them anywhere, just a shadow in the darkness.Â
âI think we both know who caused all this.â You said with a long exasperated sigh, falling back on the bed with a hand covering your eyes.Â
Jungwon groaned as he threw himself on the other side of the bed with the same hatred in his voice. âEbony Lloyd. I swear when I get my hands on him Iâm going to-âÂ
Before Jungwon could continue his pleasant words a blue light shone from the tablet. The two of you quickly stood up and straightened out your outfits and you slapped the back of Jungwonâs head mouthing to him to straighten his tie before turning the video on. It was a call from your superior, Mrs. Kwon. She chuckled noticing your slightly disheveled appearance. Then Mrs. Kwon spoke with an easy tone, âagent ___, agent Yang. Nice to see you two so relaxed after a mission. Report to me.â
You spoke up first, âquite the opposite Mrs. Kwon. The mission didnât go as well as we planned.â you say with a slightly ashamed tone but keeping your expressions professional.
âWe profiled on Cavellott, but there was something else. The rumors were true maâam. There was something big at this gala. Its called the Phantom Codex. We think its something we should be worried aboutâ Jungwon reported. It was a bit unsettling how his personality changed to professional and obedient the moment he was under the hard gaze of our superior. What caught you off guard was the way that Mrs. Kwonâs easy and laid back demeanor dropped immediately the moment she heard the artifactâs name. There was some shuffling on her side- it sounded like she moved rooms.Â
Her voice came out in a whisper, âthe Phantom Codex?? Are you two out of your mind?âÂ
You and Jungwon shared a confused glance before looking back at her. âNo maâam. It's true. We saw it, it was at the gala tonight. But its gone now. Stolen.â you spoke up your tone sincere. Her nervous expression was making you uneasy. Mrs. Kwon was never nervous. âMaâam if you donât mind me asking. What is it? What does do?âÂ
Her expression darkened as her tone was now dead serious. âIts dangerous. Every single criminal no matter how big or small is pursuing it. It can hack into anything and manipulate data in ways that humans never though possible. Things like government agencies, federal banks, military systems, nuclear codes, databases of civilians of whole countries.â she spoke, her seriousness making the hairs on the back of your neck stand up. âYou two listen carefully. No one. And I mean absolutely no one else should know about this. Is that clear? I donât care what mission youâre on right now, now your one and only mission is securing the Codex. Is that clear?â
Jungwon could hear her deadly tone too as he gulped softly. You both nodded as she wished you luck before cutting communication. You let your stiff posture relax as you met Jungwonâs gaze. Both of you knew. This wasnât just some tech, it was powerful, dangerous, and deathly. âIâve never seen Mrs. Kwon that serious⌠Something isnât right.â you observe quietly. You tried to read Jungwonâs gaze but his eyes were too complicated.Â
âWell no pressure right?â Jungwon sighed as he leaned back into an armchair his hands behind his head.Â
âThis is serious Jungwon, did you see Mrs. Kwon??â you shot him a glare as you bristled at the way his posture was so relaxed so easily.Â
âI know,â he interrupted, his usual smirk replaced by a grim expression. âAnd weâre gonna find it okay?â
For a moment your eyes met, a flicker of understanding and something else passed through you. That something else made you look away as you sighed- even with the weight of this serious mission Jungwonâs gaze could make your heart flutter. âJust.. sleep soon. We have a long day ahead of us.â you say as you go to change into something more apt for sleep.Â
Jungwon let a faint smile grace his lips as he called out to you from the bed, âaww are you worried for me darling~?â he teased as he watched you come back from the bathroom after changing.
âShut up. I just donât want your work to be sloppy Jungwonâ you say with an annoyed tone meeting his light gaze with a serious one. Although you knew that he was just trying to lighten the mood and tension. You silently thanked him for it before getting under the sheets.
 Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The morning light filtered through the heavy drapes of their hotel room, neither you nor Jungwon was in the mood for sunshine. The air was thick with tension as you reviewed every scrap of information you had gathered the night prior.Â
You sat on the couch, your legs tucked under you as you sifted through endless digital files, recordings, and articles. Your hair was in a messy bun and the cup of coffee in your hand trembled slightly from too much caffeine and not enough sleep. Jungwon on the other hand was sprawled in an arm chair. He had seemed to made the decision to not be bothered by any of the events from last night. It frustrated you a bit that you were here busting your ass trying to find something- anything to help the mission and he just sat there. Tossing a stress ball in the air and catching it with a relaxed motion as if the fate of the world wasnât hanging by a thread.Â
âGeez youâve been hunched over that computer for hoursâ he drawled as he caught the stress ball lazily and looked up from his impromptu game, âhave you even found anything?â
âWell maybe I wouldnât have to be breaking my back for hours if you just decided to help.â you snapped, your patience wearing dangerously thin.Â
âTouchy this morning,â he teased as you clenched your jaw with frustration and annoyance. God- you swore he was the spawn of the devil- âwhat? Didnât sleep well huh?â
âHow could I? With you snoring like a chainsaw the entire damn night??â you spat back your head practically fuming by now.Â
âI do not snoreâ
âWhatever helps you sleep at night,â you muttered scrolling through yet another document.Â
Jungwon finally decides that heâs done pushing at your limits. He snickers as he stands up stretching like he had been doing some serious work this entire time. âWell maybe if you used common sense you wouldnât have to be working so hard.â he stated as you were about at the end of your patience and your hands were itching to grab him by his pretty little neck and- âVienna. Lloyd. Last night. I have to say- I thought with those witty comebacks I thought you would be sharper ___â
Your expression faltered as your mind raced through last night. Heâs right.. Lloyd was there. He was whispering about Vienna and not long after the Codex had disappeared into thin air. It was him again. You sighed exasperated, finally getting up from the couch. You wanted to wipe that smirk off his face- you absolutely despised when he was right, âmaybe your constant stupidity is starting to rub off on me. Just stop smiling and pack your bagsâÂ
As he stood up too he moved to stand behind you as he placed his hands deliberately on your waist. His voice was low and smug as his breath fanned your skin, âWhatever you say babe⌠but just once.. Admit I was right sweetheart.âÂ
The only response he got was a deathly glare from you and his own yelp as you twisted his hands in an awkward angle behind his back, âtry something like that again and you wonât live to see next time youâre right.â you scowled with a dangerous voice as he just grinned like an idiot.Â
 Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The airstrip was alive with activity even in the dead of the night. The soft whine of jet engines and distant echoes of shouted instructions blended with the cold Austrian night. You had surveyed the area already so your movements were calculated. Lloyd had been clear- the Phantom codex was being transported through Vianna tonight, possibly by air. This was your chance to intercept it.Â
âWe have to move quickly and quietlyâ you reminded him as you two sneaked through the grounds. You both blended seamlessly into the dark landscape- just like shadows.Â
âI know sweetheart, donât worry I got itâ Jungwon replied and you could hear the teasing smirk in his voice. You groaned internally at the way his sweet nicknames made your cheeks warm. Thank god for the cover of the night.Â
As you two approached the dimly lit hangar at the far end of the airstrip, your sharp eyes caught movement- a group of armed men were unloading a sleek black case from a private jet. Your heart rate sped up. The Codex.Â
âBingo,â you whispered, pointing towards the hangar. But before you could say anything further, Jungwon covered your mouth pulling you behind the metal walls of a storage unit. You let out a muffed protest as your eyes widened.
You couldnât help but notice the way that Jungwon was pressed flush against you. He had you pinned to the wall as he held a finger to your lips. You could hear his heart beat and his warmth reached you through the gear you both wore. His scent was a subtle one but comforting in a way. âShhh, look-â Jungwon said in a hushed tone as you followed his gaze. There he was. Ebony Lloyd. He was getting off the jet that had been parked in the same hangar from where the codex had been extracted. He had tall burly men flanking both his sides as he made his way to a black van. He was close- way too close. You could practically smell his strong and obnoxious cologne from all the way over here.Â
If you two just stayed quiet and didnât make a sound- CRUNCH!!. Shit. You accidentally shifted against Jungwon as you boots made a small sound on the gravel that was far too loud for the quiet night. Lloyd had a sickening smirk on his face as he made his way over to the two of you. You cursed under your breath as Jungwon stepped away from you, now facing him.Â
âWell well, would you look at that? The lovebirds and the worldâs most dysfunctional duo!!â Lloyd drawled on as he voice was low and condescending.Â
You hated him too- not to misunderstand. But Jungwon had an entirely different fight to pick with him. Lloyd had a way of getting under his skin just like how Jungwon gets under yours. Jungwon was proud no matter how much he protested it. Lloyd had bruised his ego way too many times. You had to give it to him he was smart- thatâs the only reason you ever lost. Its because he was always one step ahead. Jungwon detested him entirely. You could already see his rigid body language and clenched fists. Jungwon was practically fuming- this was something both Lloyd and you could see. And Lloyd took great pleasure in it.Â
âJungwon⌠donât. Heâs testing you.â you clenched your own fists. You knew Lloyd and his love for mind games. But tonight the two of you had no time for his little game. The Codex was right there- so close.Â
But Jungwon ignored you. His teeth clenched as he stormed forward before you could stop him. âAnd you-â he seethed with his eyes cold and hard, âyou little bastard. Got your sights on the Codex huh? Needed something more to show off to your pathetic little mistress? Couldnât please her or your wife?âÂ
âOh stop acting so high and mighty jungwon. You canât seem to win over your pretty little partnerâs heart so donât go insulting my love life.â He chuckled arrogantly. The statement really seemed to strike a chord in Jungwon. âThese harsh words arenât from lingering feelings about Milan right? Or was it Budapest? Or maybe⌠Dubai? Youâve lost so many times Iâve lost track.âÂ
âJungwon no-â you say your voice firm and hard as you eyed the four bodyguards trying to plan your escape.Â
But it was far too late. Jungwon snapped. Without a word he surged even closer towards Lloyd.Â
âDammit it Jungwon.â you hissed desperately as you scrambled to follow him.Â
The two men collided, Jungwonâs fist connected with Lloydâs jaw as a sickening crack rang out. The criminal staggered backwards and his bodyguards were quick to react as they rained down punches on Jungwon. You quickly lept into action kicking one of them square in the head while landing an uppercut to another ones jaw. You fired two quick shots incapacitating the other two. Â
Meanwhile, Jungwon freed himself only to launch back at Lloyd with more rage than before. But the criminal had more tricks up his sleeve. Quite literally!! He pulled a knife from his coat as they grappled. The fight was taking the two dangerously close to another jetâs running engines. Jungwonâs back thudded onto the flightâs metal body. Lloyd landed another strike but this time slashing Jungwon with his knife- drawing blood. Jungwon was too far gone to care at that moment. Lloyd landed one final cut to his abdomen as Jungwon fell to the tarmac.Â
You saw it happed with your own two eyes. The Codex. It had been loaded onto the plane. Lloyd smiled satisfied at the way Jungwon was trying hard to recover. âJungwon!!â your voice rang out as you lunged for him. You caught him just in time. The two of you scrambled out of the way as the jet made its way down the runway.Â
There it was- gone once again, and that too in the hands of Lloyd.
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The tension in your vienna hotel room was suffocating. You paced in front of the window, your arms crossed, your face the mask of frustration. Jungwon sat on the bed, one hand on his cut arm and the other on his abdomen, both trying to nurse the gashes on his body. You were fuming and it only added fuel to the fire that your heart was telling you to help Jungwon with his injuries.Â
âYou completely lost control!!â you snapped instead, whirling around to face him. âWe had the Codex right there, and you threw it away- for what?!? A grudge match?â
Jungwon sighed leaning against the the headboard. He was tired and annoyed himself, you could tell. âLloyd needed to be dealt with. Heââ
âHe got under your skin,â you interrupted, with your voice rising. âAnd now weâre back to square one because of your ego!!â
Jungwon met your glare with his expression softening which only annoyed you more. There was a silence that was filled with tension and something else that was better it remained unspoken. You clenched your teeth as you saw the slight hint of a smile playing at the corner his lips. You scoffed to yourself. Why the hell was he smiling?? You just lost one of the most dangerous artifacts to a notorious criminal. This was most definitely not the time to be smiling. âWhat???â you snapped at him crossing your arms once again.Â
âHm? Oh nothing.. Youâre just really cute when youâre mad.â he said in a matter of factly tone. You hated yourself for the way your brain went blank for a good few seconds. You hated the way your cheeks felt warm and your breath hitched for just a moment.
You groaned loudly throwing up your hands in frustration. âDonât do that! Donât try to charm your way out of this.â
âWho says Iâm trying to charm you? But even if I was.. It looks like its working- no?â he smirks despite the blood trickling from a cut on his lips. His damn lips that curled up even more when he saw your gaze on them. His damn lips that your just wanted to feel against yours- No!! You werenât distracted by his idiotically plump, soft, and full lips.Â
You shot him a look after tearing your gaze away from his lips. Your sharp retort died on your lips when you saw the gash on his arm and abs. Your frustration warred with concern, but, with a heavy sigh, you grabbed the first aid kit from the desk.Â
âTake off the gearâ you ordered your voice clipped.Â
Jungwon had the nerve to raise his eyebrows in mock surprise. âIf you wanted to see me shirtless, you could've just asked babe.â
You shot him another deathly glare as you advanced towards him. The faint pink in your cheeks betrayed you as you made him put down the gauze he had in his hands and took his shirt off. Well I mean- you were just a girl after all. His toned muscles and hard lines of his chest and abs. The slight glisten of sweat and the scars that littered his body were so hot⌠well shit. âGetting distracted sweetheart?â Jungwon teased. You snapped your eyes back up to his face and made sure your gaze was sharp.
âJust hold stillâ you muttered, dabbing at the cut with disinfectant. Jungwon winced but he didnât dare pull away. His gaze was trained on you as you worked with your movements precise and efficient. But your hands lingered on his skin for a few too moments too long. The tension was palpable in the air, the unspoken words and heat between the two of you was at its peak. You met his gaze and this time you could read it- but you didnât want to. You were his partner it was strictly professional. The way your heart beat way too fast gave you away though.
He sliced the tension with a knife when he uttered your name out softly. It lacked any of his arrogance or its usual teasing edge to it. You didnât look up. Too scared to see what you find if you looked up again. âDonât Jungwon. Just⌠donât.â
He reached out, his fingers gently brushing against your wrist. âIâm sorry,â he said, and for once he sounded sincere. There was undertones of something else too. âI screwed up.âÂ
You froze, your breath catching at the unexpected vulnerability in his tone. You shivered at his gently touch, it melted away your anger and replaced it with something warmer, something neither of you could name. You took in a shaky breath as you replied, your voice lacking the earlier bite âyou did.âÂ
Jungwonâs lips curved into a faint smile. âBut youâre still patching me up. Guess that means you care.â
You rolled your eyes, but the corners of your moth twitched up- fighting back a smile. âDonât push it.â you warned but your voice had gone soft.Â
You fell into a charged silence, the air between you thick with unspoken words. Jungwonâs hand lingered on your wrist, but for once you didnât pull away. It was dangerous the way your heart raced at his touch. âYouâre too reckless,â you whispered, your voice barely audible.Â
âAnd youâre too stubborn,â he replies, his gaze dropping briefly to your lips before returning to your eyes. At that moment you knew you couldnât lose him. You hate to finally admit it but it was true. All the times he had risked his life to save you from near death situations, his stupid jokes that lightened up any situation, and his dumb pet names that made you smile every time. You knew you couldnât lose him- so the least you could do for all those times was forgive him. Just this once.Â
You finished patching up his gashes silently before abruptly standing up. You walked to the other side of the hotel room as you set the first aid kit down once again. It was your pathetic attempt at trying your heart to beat normally once again. You turned back to face him- relieving yourself of the weight of your own gear as Jungwon spoke again. âSo just to be clear. You werenât staring at my lips or my abs right? Because then that would mean that you find me-â
âJungwon!â you cut him off with a stern gaze. But his infuriating, smug, dimple filled smile still remained on his lips as he just shrugs.Â
 Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
After that night in Vienna you couldnât stop thinking about him- well you always had him on your mind anyway- but something else nagged at you. This Phantom Codex⌠you knew what it was supposed to do, but it still had a mysterious aura about it. There was something so elusive about this simple piece of tech, and you were determined to find out what.Â
That is exactly how you ended up here. In your shared hotel room with your glasses forming dents on your nose, your hands trembling from too much caffeine, and your eyes had deep circles under them that showed how you had been up for far too long.Â
I mean you canât blame yourself- you tried to sleep. You swear you did. But Jungwonâs words and gaze and touch just wouldnât let you rest. Jungwon groaned as he blinked his eyes open- the bright light of the screen blinding his eyes. â___? Youâre kidding meâ he stated in a rough and groggy voice. He turned his head as he squinted towards the digital clock. âItâs five A.M. Did you even sleep?â
âCouldnâtâ you replied short and distant. âI was too busy doing your job.â
âAh, there it is- the sharp tongue of my favorite partnerâ he said with a smile in his tone as he heaved his body- still marred with the gashes from before- into a sitting position. âMorning to you too, sweetheartâ
You gave him a glare over your shoulder, but the deep circles under your eyes betrayed your exhaustion. âDonât even start with me Jungwon. Iâve been piecing intel while youâve been snoring away again.âÂ
âI do not snore,â he insisted indignantly, crossing his arms as he leaned against the headboard.Â
âOh, trust me you do. After all these years of sharing a hotel room, you most definitely do.â You turned back to your screen, muttering under your breath, âitâs like trying to sleep next to a freight train.âÂ
He just rubbed the back of his neck as he sighed in fake and exaggerated. He watched as you typed away, the sounds of your fingers dancing along the keys an insistent sound in the room. In an amused but concerned tone he prodded, âWhat are you even looking at?âÂ
âThe Codex.â your voice was clipped. But there was an edge of something elseâ anxiety and nervousness. âI hacked into one of Lloydâs encrypted files. I think I found a list of targets who apparently know something about the Codex.âÂ
He nodded as he shifter closer to look over your shoulder at the screen. âOkay, thats progress. But⌠why do you look like youâve seen a ghost?â he questioned carefully.Â
Your fingers stilled on the keyboard and your body tensed. You took a deep breath before meeting his eyes, your expression guarded but your voice trembling just slightly, âMy⌠My sister.. Her name is on his list.â you declare. Your brain was a mess even if you didnât let it show. She was your sister, the few people in this cutthroat world that you loved and trusted blindly.Â
The air in the room seemed to thickened. Jungwonâs teasing smirk disappeared as he processed your shaky words. âYour sister?â
âSheâs a target,â you said, your voice cracking despite an effort to stay composed. âI donât know why or- or what they want from her, butââ you stopped, shaking your head as you pinched the bridge of your nose. Scared of just the thought or Lloyd targeting your sister or losing her entirely. âIf we donât get the Codex back, sheâs in danger. I canâtâ I canât let that happenâ you looked at him with scared and vulnerable eyes. This was the first time you let this happen. The first time you opened up to him.Â
He moved closer to you as he placed a comforting hand on your shoulder. â___, hey. Listen to me.âÂ
Reluctantly, you lifted your eyes to his.
âWeâll get it back,â he said firmly, his voice steady and unwavering. âI swear to you. Weâll find the Code, and weâll protect your sister.â
âYou donât understand,â you said, your voice barely above a whisper. Your eyes distant as you thought about the horrifying possibilities of what might happen. âThis isnât just another mission anymore. Its personal.â
âI know,â Jungwon said, his tone softening. âAnd thatâs why weâre going to win this. Because when it comes to you and the people you care about.. I swear to you- I would rather die than fail.âÂ
You blinked at him, caught off guard by the rare sincerity in his voice. For a moment time slowed and the truth behind his voice rang clearer. The unspoken weight of his words weighed heavy on your shoulders. It was nice. It was nice to know that he would be there, even when times were tough or uncertain. He spoke with a promise that didnât waver at all. His presence was firm and steady. It grounded you even as doubt filled your mind. You knew that from the countless successful missions you two had accomplished, that with him- anything was possible.
âYouâre such an idiot,â you muttered, brushing past the lump in your throat and rapidly blinking trying not to show your vulnerability even more.Â
âThen its a shame that youâre stuck with me isnât it?â Jungwon replied with a smile tugging at his lips. âNow, come on. You need to sleep before you collapse on me.âÂ
âIâm fine.â you insisted stubbornly, standing up and brushing past him.Â
ââIâm fineâ my ass,â Jungwon drawled, following you despite the pain his body faced when he moved. âJust like Iâm the best hacker in this partnership.âÂ
âYou? Hacker? Yeah right- since when??â you show back with your usual sharpness returning to your voice.Â
He grinned like an idiot and his dreamy dimples made another appearance. âThere she is. I was worried the all-nighter had turned you into a zombie.â
You rolled your eyes but the hint of a smile on your lips was still clear as day.Â
Later that evening, after hours of futile attempts to trace the codexâs whereabouts and Jungwonâs incessant nagging, you finally slumped onto the hotel bed, your exhaustion catching up to you. Jungwon walked to you from the kitchen a glass of water in his hand.
âDrink,â he said, holding it out to you.
âIâm fine,â you protested though your voice was hoarse. As much as you silently appreciated his comfort and care, you didnât need to be coddled by your annoyance of a partner.Â
He said said your name in a stern tone of voice that left no room for argument. You sighed but took the glass of water, considering your pounding headache from looking at the computer screen all day, it was the right thing to do. Your fingers brushed his for just a moment too long. âThanksâ you muttered out.Â
He sat next to you, his usual cockiness replaced by a quiet concern. âYou knowâ he started, âfor someone who calls me reckless, youâre not exactly great at taking care of yourself.âÂ
You scoffed, âTakes one to know one.â
He chuckled lightly his head shaking at your retort even with the pounding in your head. âFair.âÂ
The silence that followed wasnât really uncomfortable, but it was definitely charged with something you both refused to acknowledge. You stared down at the glass in your hands. Your mind still running in overdrive with worry for your sister, the Codex, and the precarious line that you and Jungwon seem to be walking on. This dangerous pull that lulled you both towards one another that you just danced around.Â
âYouâre too good at this,â you said your tone suddenly softer and quieter. âAt making me feel like everythingâs gonna be okay,â you admit with your cheeks warming as you turn your head, avoiding his gaze. You sigh as you continued on, trying to lighten the mood, âI guess there is one single thing that youâre good at. Sweet talking your way out of messes?âÂ
âOut of messes? Oh please darling- my sweet talking has a much greater purpose- like sweet talking my way into sitting on the same bed as you.â he pretending to sigh dreamily as the sparkle of amusement didnât leave his eye, âwow~ what an honor.â
This led to you pushing him off the edge of the bed and trying to contain your laughter as he landed with a big thud. He let out a yelp as he rubbed his back, the big boba eyes he gave you only worked on those girls at parties. âHow about you start trying to sweet talk your way into me not beating your ass?â you say with an amused but genuine smile. He huffed in defeat as he stalked his way over to the couch. You couldnât help but let out a small chuckle.Â
âGoodnight sweetheart~â you mocked him as he silently flipped you off.Â
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The streets of Tokyo buzzed with life, the neon lights casting a kaleidoscope of colors over the bustling city. The air was filled with noises of children, adults, and automobiles. It was freezing cold in the night and you could see your breath in front of you, coming out in a cold white fog. You trailed a step behind Jungwon, your arms crossed as you watched him survey the surroundings with an air of practiced nonchalance. The two of you made your way to the looming but sleek and modern hotel. Of course it was a five star experience in Tokyo, only the best for the two best agents.Â
âYouâre unusually quiet,â Jungwon remarked, glancing over his shoulder at you. You couldnât help but groan internally at the situation. And also at the fact that no man should look that ridiculously good with his hair messy and blowing in the wind.Â
âJust trying to figure out how we ended up in this situation,â you muttered with annoyance as you shifted the bag on your shoulder.Â
âActing like a couple?â he smirked, pushing the tall glass door open for you. âDonât pretend like youâre not enjoying it.â
You stepped into the threshold with a sharp glare pointed at him. You had to hide the fast pace of your heart somehow, âYouâre delusional.â
The hotel lobby was elegant and the chandelier shimmered in all the hotelâs elegance. The ambient lighting and soft jazz music filled the space. You took note of the huge glass windows that could be a possible threat. The receptionist looked at the two of you with a practiced smile which widened when she laid eyes on Jungwon. You didnât really know why but it made you roll your eyes.Â
âReservation under Park and Nakamura,â Jungwon said in his usual arrogant and cocky tone of voice. You couldnât help but be more pissed at his voice but also find it a bit endearing as well. It was something you looked up to, he had a certain way with his words and it always worked somehow.Â
âAh yes of course, Iâll be sure to get your bags up to your room. Anything else you needed help with?â the girl at the desk batted her long eyelashes at Jungwon and it made you annoyed even more. Why, though? It's not like you had some weird feelings for your idiotic spy partner or something.Â
âOh no thatâs quite alright, me and my boyfriend can carry our bags up to the room ourselves.â you smiled at her patronizingly. You had to try really hard to ignore Jungwonâs stupid smirk as you lugged the bags to the elevator.
âBoyfriend? Staking your claim sweetheart?â he asked smugly as he struggled to carry the bigger bag towards the elevator. âBesides, why did you stop her?? Now we have to break our backs trying to get these bags into our rooms.â he said as he huffed, putting the bag down for a second to catch his breath.Â
âDid you want her to discover the Glock 19 stowed in our bags?â you asked in a mocking tone. You didnât know exactly why you were so on edge from just a simple look Jungwon had received, but you felt as though from recent events.. You and Jungwon had started to walk down a dangerous path that none of you were ready to acknowledge.Â
You opened the lock with a bit more force than necessary. The hotel suite was spacious, with a panoramic view of the Tokyo skyline. But your heart truly dropped as your bags slipped out of your hands when your view zeroed-in on the centerpiece of the room. The king-sized bed. You shook your head immediately as you spun to face his already wide grinning face. âNo way. Absolutely not. There is no way in hell I am sharing that.â
Jungwon with the most aggravating smile quirked one of his eyebrows, âWhatâs the problem? Afraid youâll be tempted?â he asked with a hint of a laugh in his voice.Â
âIn your dreams,â you shot back. You were not just about to expose yourself completely by sleeping in the same bed as him and then failing miserably to contain your idiotic emotions. No damn way.
âIâm just saying,â he said as he tossed his bags to the side. He jumped onto the pristine sheets, ruining them completely. âWe need to look convincing, even in the hotel. The staff might be watching.â
You scowled. He was right, you both were well aware of the fact that Lloyd had his men lurking everywhere. âFine. But if you so much as cross to my side of the bed, I swear-â
âRelax,â Jungwon interrupted, his hands up in a mock display of surrender. âIâll stay on my side of the bed. Unless you wanted me to-âÂ
âDonât finish that sentence.âÂ
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
You two were in Tokyo just because Mrs. Kwon had heard some rumors of the Codex here. There wasnât any real evidence, but Mrs. Kwon was desperate. So for now the two of you just had to lay low and try to find anything more about the whereabouts of the dangerous piece of tech. That's the reason you couldnât quite wrap your head around why Jungwon was parading the two of you around the hotel with his hand resting gently on your waist. Well you couldnât really wrap your head around anything at the moment with how Jungwonâs fingers were softly brushing against your skin. âRemind me why I agreed to this?â you sighed as you forced the warmth in your cheeks to retreat.
âTo keep up appearances sweetheart,â Jungwon whispered with his tone low and teasing, as his thumb rubbed absent minded circles on your skin, which only made your mind spiral even more. He had insisted that being stuck in your room all day reviewing the same five documents wouldnât do you any good. So now you are here doing âbonding activitiesâ with your despised partner.Â
âIâm going to kill you one day,â you murmured through a tight lipped grin.Â
âIs that a challenge princess?â Jungwon asked a bit too loudly as you passed the receptionist once more. For some twisted reason this gave you satisfaction as you continued walking through the lobby. You couldnât resist shooting her a devilish glance.Â
Still though, you forced yourself to keep up your act. âLay it on any thicker and theyâll drown in it.â you hissed through gritted teeth.Â
You spent the entire rest of the day âbondingâ with Jungwon. But it was the small moments that caught you off guard. One of them was when you two were playing pool. He insisted that your posture was just offensive to the game. So he made a show of holding your arm as his strong chest pressed against your back. His breath lingered on your neck as his other hand rested on your waist once again. âLike this sweetie,â he muttered, his voice deep and velvety, as he paid no attention to the pool, his eyes only on your face, as if trying to memorize every little scar and contour. Your heart and mind were both unwell. They were working overtime trying desperately to process any of what was happening.Â
Another time he had you on your toes was when you were mid reach about to strangle him. The two of you were spending time in the arcade and as both of your personalities would permit it. The competitive streak was at another level entirely. So you were at your witâs end when he interrupted your focus again as you concentrated on smashing the moles wherever they popped up. You had given him a fair amount of warning but you were running out of patience and points because you insisted on a rematch every time. A couple had strolled in and they were just about to take in the sight of you committing homicide. But before you could move you were pressed back against the machine with your arms unknowingly wrapped around his neck. âPlay along if you donât want to get caught ___.â he whispered, tightening his grip around your torso. You tried not to let the hammering of your heart and heat in your skin give you away.Â
The moment the couple had left you pushed him off but the smirk on his face didnât budge.Â
When dinner came around you two had decided to eat at a fancy restaurant. But you cursed Jungwon as he smiled smugly at you. Obviously he was the center of attention for everyone there, so you couldnât even curse him out without blowing your cover. He was taking full advantage of it though. âSay âahhâ babe~â he cooed, holding up the spoon to your mouth. You rolled your eyes discreetly before you let him feed you. But before he could get too smug you sharply stepped on his foot from under the table. After all, you couldnât let him think you were succumbing to his stupid flirting. You hid the smirk behind a glass of wine as you sipped it innocently while he glared at you from across the table.
It was late at night now. Even the beautiful city of Tokyo had dimmed its lights and gone to sleep. But you and Jungwon just couldnât rest. Mrs. Kwon wanted answers and she wanted the Codex even faster. But after Jungwon had tired you out the entire day, the documents looked like they were from some other alien language. Your eyes were half lidded and bleary from the need to sleep.Â
You were just about to reach for the jug of coffee when Jungwonâs own sleepy voice called out to you. âAbsolutely not. Hands off. Do you want a caffeine overdose?â he asked as he got up and took the jug away from you. You let a loud whine fall from your lips as you shot him a glare. You hate when he was right. But before you could shoot back at him with a snarky response, it all happened.
Both of you heard the footsteps from outside the door. Your head snapped up mid scroll. âDid you hear that?â you asked in a hushed whisper. The two of you were already in action though. You shoved the important files, weapons, and gear into your bag. Jungwon tossed you your gun as the two of you crouched behind the bed. The footfalls of the people outside were far too heavy and far too deliberate to be of normal guests.Â
âHow did they find us??â Jungwon hissed as he reloaded his gun quietly. The footsteps paused and you took a deep breath before the chaos started.Â
The explosion rattled the room as the heavy wooden door came flying down. Splinters flew across the room like shrapnel, and you barely managed to miss the lamp that flew past you, shattering on the ground.Â
âDown!!â Jungwon yelled as the hail of bullets followed quickly. He dove towards you just in time before the air filled with gunfire.Â
Lloydâs men poured into the room by the dozen. Their movements were swift and calculated but you two were like a well oiled machine. Nothing could stop Jungwonâs instinct and your precise aim.Â
Jungwon fired the shots, taking out the lead man with two clean hits to the chest. You rolled out from behind the bed, your gun steady in your hands as you aimed at the intruders. You picked the men off like birds on a wire, one by one with deadly accuracy.Â
âLeft!â you shouted, and Jungwon pivoted, shooting the man who was trying to flank you.
âNice call,â he said, his voice tight before he ducked for cover again.
You didnât respond., your focus entirely on the men in front of you. One of them charged at you, his gun jammed, but you dropped him like a fly with one well placed kick to the chest, before you finished him off entirely with a shot.Â
âWatch out!!â Jungwonâs voice cut through the chaos and you turn just in time to see a man tossing a grenade towards the center of the room.Â
Your heart froze. You thought this was the end.Â
But Jungwon was faster.
He lunged, grabbing your arm and pulling you against his chest as your back hit the wall of the far corner of the room. The grenade exploded a second later, the blast shaking the entire suite. Glass shattered, furniture splintered, and a cloud of smoke and debris filled the air.Â
Your ears rang, and your vision blurred with tears as you struggled to breathe through the dust. You realized your head was pressed against Jungwonâs chest as he wrapped his arms tightly around you. When you looked up to see his distressed expression it's like you were looking at an angel. The sparks and gunshots whizzed behind him, there was a bleeding cut on his cheek, and his heart was racing. But in this life threatening moment all you could see was him.Â
âJungwonâŚâ you said, your voice barely audible over the ringing in your ears.Â
âIâm fine,â he said, though his voice was strained. But in all the chaos, you could see the bullet that was lodged in his arm. He grimaced as he moved to shoot more men that tried to advance.
âYouâre hit,â you said with a trembling voice as the sight of his blood made you sick to the stomach.Â
âItâs nothing,â he replied, wincing as he moved, pulling you up to your feet. âWeâre not done yet.â
More men surged into the room, but your initial shock and fear quickly transformed into fury. God when you got your hands on Lloyd⌠You grabbed your gun that had slid out of reach when the explosion rattled. You fired with precision, covering him as he pressed his hand to the wound. He winced at the sight of his own crimson blood as you shot down three more men. The room was a mess of bodies, blood, and debris.Â
âWe need to move!â you shouted, helping Jungwon up as he grabbed the bag.Â
Jungwon scanned the room. The floor was unstable because of the explosion, more of Lloydâs men just kept filling in through the door, so the only escape was.. âWindow,â he said.Â
You both ran towards the large glass pane just as another explosion rocked the suite. Jungwon kicked out the window, the glass shattered into a million pieces. âOut,â he ordered.
âWhat abou-âÂ
âNow!!âÂ
You hesitated but still climbed onto the narrow ledge. Jungwon followed, his movements slower but determined despite his injury. You both got out just in time before another explosion rocked the building. The rain was pouring down in sheets. The slick surface of the ledge made every step even more treacherous than the last. But you two made your way to the emergency fire escape.Â
You two raced down the long dangerous steps as you covered Jungwon, shooting at the men who tried to pursue and pulling Jungwon when bullets whizzed onto the metal of the staircase. As soon as you were on the wet pavement, your hotel room burst into flames.Â
Bullets licked your heels as you narrowly avoided death, making a run towards a bike parked on the side of the road. You immediately got to work, hotwiring the bike as fast as you could. While Jungwon clutched his arm but still covered you with fierce determination.Â
âGet on!â you yelled, though you couldnât hear much over your heart racing in your ears. You and Jungwon quickly sped away into the maze of streets. You rode like a maniac, avoiding cars by just small fractions of millimeters. The shouts echoed behind you but before Lloydâs men could even rev the engine of their cars, you were gone.Â
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The rain still lashed against the window of the safe house, the dim light of a single lamp casting long shadows across the room. The air was quiet but filled to the brim with tension. You sat on the edge of the couch, your hands tightly clasped in your lap. Your mind swirled with worry. Your sisterâs face flashed in your thoughts- innocent, unsuspecting, completely unaware of the danger the Phantom Codex posed to her. She was a high ranking government official, both of your lives were forced to be kept secrets from each other. Yet the bond you shared with her was unbreakable and eternal. And she was only in more and more danger, if anything, the ambush today showed just how open Lloyd was being with his attempts. It showed⌠just how ruthless he could be.Â
And Jungwon⌠he had risked his life, gotten shot all for you. He sat across from you, his injured arm freshly bandaged after extracting the bullet and disinfecting the wound. His posture was more relaxed, the chaos had taken a toll on him too but he handled it like it was a normal Tuesday. His eyes watch you, sharp gaze softened by concern.Â
âYouâre too quiet,â he said finally, his voice breaking the heavy silence.Â
You looked up at him, your lips pressing into a thin line. âWhat do you want me to say, Jungwon? That Iâm fine? That everythingâs okay?â you shook your head, your hands tightening into fists. âBecause itâs not. My sister is in danger, we just got ambushed by Lloydâs men, and youââ your voice caught and you looked away.
âMe?â Jungwon prompted, leaning forward despite the strain it put on his arm.Â
You couldnât live with the thought. The horrifying thought that⌠you could have lost him. You stupid, idiotic, funny, loyal, and annoyingly handsome partner. How could you live with yourself if his dimpled smile wasnât there to brighten any situation? How could you live with yourself if his grounding presence wasnât there to calm you before missions? How could you⌠live without him?Â
Your voice was trembling now. âYou could have died. Do you even understand that? If you hadnât pulled me away from that grenadeââ you cut yourself off, exhaling sharply.Â
He whispered your name, but you wouldnât hear it.
âNo, let me finish,â you said, your voice rising. âYou threw yourself in harmâs way without even thinking, and Iââ you buried your face in your hands, your body quivering like you had been reduced to some little girl- not a world class spy. âI canât lose you. Not like this. Not when weâre so close, and when I stillââÂ
He was in front of you before you could finish, he was crouching despite the sharp pain in his arm. He placed his hands gently on yours as he pried them away from your face. You met his gaze and it was sharp, like he could see to the depths of your soul.
âHey,â he said softly, his voice steady. âIâm not going anywhere. Do you hear me? Iâm right here, and weâre going to get that Codex. For your sister. For you. For us. But youâve got to stop thinking the worst, or youâre going to drive yourself crazy.âÂ
Your lower lip quivered but you nodded still. He was trying his hardest to comfort you, so despite the gnawing fear and doubt in your mind you believed him. Because when he was here with you, it felt like nothing in this world was impossible. Your eyes shimmered with tears, you refused to let fall, âYou can't keep scaring me like this Jungwon.â
âIâll try,â he said, his signature smirk softening into something more vulnerable and sincere. âBut Iâm not going to apologize for keeping you safe.âÂ
You stared at him for a long moment, the weight of his words sinking in. He had done what he did, to protect you, he put his life on the line because he cared for you. Then something inside you brokeâ no, shifted. Before you could process what you were doing and meticulously overthink the consequences, your hands gripped the front of his shirt, and you kissed him.
It wasnât soft or hesitant like the previous brushes of affection the two of you had. This kiss was deep, desperate, and full of the emotions that they two of you had buried for years. It was full of that desire that the two of you had danced around for so long. Your fingers curled tighter into his shirt, as though afraid he might disappear. He responded just as fiercely, his hands coming up to cradle your face, careful to avoid the still-tender bruises.Â
You couldnât pull back from him- not until your last breath. Just like he had stood by your side promising to protect you till his last breath. But you had to when the air in your lungs ran out. Your forehead rested against each other as your breath came out in pants, mingling with his in the quiet room.Â
âI canât lose you Jungwon.â you whispered out between pants. And this time when you looked into his deep brown eyes, you could finally decipher what they said. They declared his love and fear of losing you. But this time you didnât dance around it. You faced the emotions head on, because now you finally had someone to love.Â
âDonât get all mushy on me now sweetheart,â he said with a hint of his signature smirk in his voice, that now seemed to be something you could rely on no matter what.Â
Whatever this is, it isnât perfect- far from it. But it's something that has been inevitable since you first saw the black haired man with his big boba eyes. And for a moment the tension lifted, and neither of you pulled away. You two stayed like that- close, vulnerable, and finally honest. It wasnât easy and it definitely wasnât perfect but it was real. And you knew that whatever came next, you would face it together.Â
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
Whispers of the underworld led you to this shining city. Monaco. But it wasnât a whispering voice that had threatened you. No- Lloydâs voice was firm and dangerous. âYou think your petty little agency will be able to protect your precious sister? I know where she is, I will get her- so have fun with your little lover boy while it lasts.â and that's when the radio message had cut off.Â
Your agency was keeping your sister in lockdown. Apparently she knew something about a key? The key to unlock the Phantom Codex. Not just Lloyd but every criminal was racing to find her. You werenât naive though. You knew there was only so much the agency could do. Criminals had their resources and they would stop at nothing for power.Â
Thatâs the reason your body was so tense as you leaned against the railing of the balcony. The shimmering city with its population of only the worldâs most elite was alive this evening. The luxury and sports cars were lined up in front of the Casino de Monte Carlo. You had a clear view of the location where the Phantom Codex would be held. Lloyd apparently hadnât let it out of his sight since the moment he got his hands on it. He had kept moving so no one could track him and steal his prized possession. Tonight he was here, and you had your sights set on it. Lloyd had no business with your sister and her information about the key if he didnât have the Codex itself.Â
You practically jumped out of your skin when you felt his hands snaking around your waist. You grew even tenser before letting yourself bask in the way his lips moved slowly down your neck towards your shoulder. You werenât accustomed to his affection but you had to say you werenât complaining.
âYouâre tense sweetheart,â he murmured when his mouth was right next to your ear. His breath fanning your skin, sent shivers down your spine.Â
âYou were there Jungwon, heâs threatening her. My sisterâs life is on the line..â you say as you stop his roaming hands. You had a really important mission to complete tonight. But he looked so damn irresistible when he stepped in front of you with the top buttons of his shirt undone, his sleeves rolled up to his elbow, and his smirk on his pretty lips.Â
âBaby, you have to trust that the agency will do their part,â he said as his hands remained on your hips, his thumbs tracing small soothing circles.Â
âYou know that bastard Jungwon. He has the resources and the nerve, if we donât get the Codex this time then its not only going to be my sister-âÂ
Jungwon rested his hands on your cheeks as he tilted your head so you looked him in the eyes. âHey. Weâre not losing. Not yet. And not ever. Youâve got me, okay? I wonât let anything happen to herâ or you.â
The rational part of you wanted to argue, to remind him that youâd already failed too many times, but the way he looked at you, so steady so sure. It made the rational side of you crumble as you believed his promise. Before you could say another word, he leaned down, pressing a soft reassuring kiss to your lips.Â
You stiffened in surprise once again, still not used to this gentler side of Jungwon. It was worlds apart from the cocky, aggravating partner you had grown used to. And yet, you resolve softened as you kissed him back, a reluctant smile tugging at your lips when he pulled away.
âIâm telling you, I should be handed an award or something- no normal person can get you to shut up as fast as me,â he teased, his familiar grin returning.Â
You rolled your eyes but the faint color in your cheeks gave you away. âYouâre insufferable.â
âAnd yet, you kissed me anyway.â
Before you could retort, the shrill beeping of the burner phone youâd been using for intercepting communication interrupted you. Jungwon let his hands drop from your cheeks as he grabbed it. His face grew serious as he watched the small screen.Â
He held up the phone for you to see, âLloyd is on the move,â he muttered, snapping the phone shut. âLooks like our Codex is on the move too.â
You nodded, already slipping into your professional mode. âLetâs go.âÂ
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The two of you were past all of the excitement and precarious bets of the casino, instead you were pressed behind a pillar. Lloyd and another criminal seemed to be having a meeting, maybe an alliance over the most powerful artifact in the world?
The air was filled with quiet but incriminating chatter as the two gave practiced smiles to each other. This was obviously going to end badly. So you planned to get the Codex and slip out before either of them noticed it was gone. It was almost time that the two powerful men would get up from the table to move to the bar. There was a sliver of opportunity when the Codex would be brought out by one of Lloydâs men. Like you mentioned before- he wouldnât let it out of his sight.
That would be the prime time where you could steal it right out of his dangerous hands and he wouldnât even know till much later. That was the plan. The easiest, most simple plan. But there went Jungwon, with his killer instinct.
Right as the two men were about to move to the bar, some idiot criminal from the smaller leagues decided to get involved. You almost jumped in joy, this was perfect. All the focus was trained on that idiot and you and Jungwon could just slip in, get the Codex, and get out. You turned to tell Jungwon about the new plan- but when you turned to face him he was gone.Â
You cursed internally, you knew this would happen. Jungwon and his instinct, his need to do the right thing, his stupid moral compass. The criminalâs legs shook as he realized what a grave mistake he had made storming into the lionâs den. Jungwon though, didnât seem to see the bigger picture. He stepped out from behind the marble pillar, his gun poised, he shot the two bodyguards that had the criminal in their grasp.Â
The criminal made a run for it but now the bullets rained onto you two. You forgot all about the Codex, in your mind now only one thought rang clear. Protect Jungwon. You lunged for him, pulling him back behind the pillar to shield him from the shower of hurt.Â
The men started making their way up the stairs but you were too fast. You grabbed Jungwonâs hand and pulled him behind you as you two ran for the window. The fall hurt, but not enough to forget the imminent danger the two of you would be in if you stayed here for any longer. You made a run for it and Jungwon wasnât far behind. You were already fuming, this lead was very hard to find. It might even be your last one. Your last chance to protect your sister⌠After todayâs events you knew Lloyd would try even harder to get to your sister. He didnât want anything to hinder his progress to harness the power of the Codex.
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
In the hotel room you were done. You had worked night and day for that lead, for what?? For Jungwon to help some charity case of a criminal? The tension followed the two of you inside like an unwanted guest. Every inch of you was radiating fury. Jungwon walked in behind you, quiet for once, knowing that the storm was about to hit.Â
âYou have got to be kidding me,â you snapped, spinning around to face him. Your voice was sharp and your eyes set ablaze. âWhat were you thinking, Jungwon?!?â
He sighed, running a hand through his disheveled hair. âI couldnât just leave him there. He wouldâve been killed.âÂ
âAnd because of that, we lost the Codex. Again!â you shot back, your voice ringing. The fear of losing your sister was becoming far too real for your liking and right now- the only person to blame in your mind was Jungwon. âDo you even realize whatâs at stake here? Do you even care?â
âOf course I care!â he said, his voice finally rising to meet yours. âBut Iâm not going to stand by and watch someone die if I can stop it.âÂ
You laughed bitterly, throwing your hands into the air. âGreat! Youâre a hero. Congratulations!! Meanwhile Lloydâs probably halfway across the world with the Codex. And you say that you canât stand by and watch someone die?? Well thatâs about to be my sister, and while you play the hero, I canât even be there to save her life!âÂ
Jungwon stepped closer, his jaw tight. âYou think I donât care about your sister? About the Codex? About you?â
âActions speak louder than words Jungwon,â you said, your voice trembling with anger. âAnd your actions tonight told me that youâd rather play savior than focus on what actually matters.â
âDonât you dare,â he said, his voice low and dangerous now. âDonât you dare stand there and act like I donât care. Iâve been right here with you, every step of the way. Iâm the one who pulled you out of that explosion last week. Iâm the one who's been patching you up after every mission.âÂ
âAnd Iâm the one whoâs trying to keep us focused,â you snapped back. âYou think I donât see how reckless you are? How every time you're the one lets something slip, who makes us lose our lead?â
Jungwon took a step back, your words hitting him like a physical punch to the gut. âIâm doing my best, ___â he said, his voice quieter now but no less tense than before. âIâm not perfect, but Iâm trying.â
âTrying isnât good enough,â you said, your voice cracking. âWe take so many lives everyday, it's our job. But you couldnât let this one criminal die?? Even when my sisterâs life is on the line??!âÂ
There was a long pause, the weight of your words settling heavily between you two.Â
âYou think I donât know that?â he said finally. His voice was painstakingly raw. âYou think I donât feel that pressure every second of every day? That I donât know if I screw up one more time, itâs all over?âÂ
âThen why the hell do you keep screwing up?â you asked, your voice breaking now. You knew you were being unfair but you couldn't really bring yourself to care at the moment.Â
Jungwon looked away, his hands clenching at his sides. âBecause Iâm human, ___. I make mistakes. And yeah maybe I let my heart get in the way sometimes, but Iâm not going to apologize for that.â
You laughed bitterly, shaking your head. âYour heart? Is that what weâre calling it now??âÂ
âYes,â he said firmly, stepping closer again. âBecause whether you want to admit it or not, I care about people. I care about you. And Iâm sorry if that gets messy sometimes, but it's the truth.â
You froze, your breath catching. He cared⌠he cared for you. For a moment, you looked like you might say something but instead, you turned away, pressing your hands to your face. Rubbing your temple in frustration.Â
âThis isnât about me,â you said after a long pause, your voice muffled.
âNo, itâs not,â he agreed. âItâs about us. About the mission. About everything weâve been through together. And if you think for one second that I donât care as much as you do, then you donât know me at all.â
You dropped your hands, turning back once again to face him. Your eyes were glossy, your anger had faded away into something more vulnerable. âI donât know if I did the right thing. I donât know if kissing you was right. And I donât know if I can keep doing this,â you said quietly.Â
Jungwon was stunned for a bit, but he spoke again, his voice softer now. âYou can. And you will. Because youâre the strongest person I know. And because Iâve got your back, no matter what.âÂ
You shook your head, a stray tear escaping and slipping down your cheek. âYou couldâve died tonight Jungwon. And for what? A stranger?â
âNo, for doing the right thing.â He said simply.
You stared at him for a long moment, your emotions warred within you. Your undeniable care and love for Jungwon, and your worry for your sister and the millions of lives at stake. Finally you sighed, your shoulders slumping. âI donât even know what to say to you right now.â
âThen donât say anything,â he said, stepping closer and gently reaching out to take your hand in his own. âJust trust me. Please.â
You couldnât help the way your breath hitched yet again at his touch. You didnât pull away, but you didnât look at him either, closing your eyes and breathing slowly. âIâm tired of losing, Jungwon.â
His grip on your hand tightened. He felt some hope flicker within him. âWeâre not going to lose. Not you, not your sister, not this mission. I promise you.â
You finally opened your eyes and met his eyes. They were desperate and apologetic. Your heart made your gaze soften and the tension eased for just a moment. But just as fast, you pulled your hand away, your brain taking over now. You were never too good at thinking with your heart anyway.
âGet some rest,â you said, your voice steadier but colder now. âWeâve got some serious work to do.â
You could almost see his heart shatter. But he didnât say anything, he just watched as you walked farther away. Farther away from whatever you two had started, farther away from his grasp, farther from these complicated emotions. He sighed, running a hand through his hair again.Â
âGood talk,â he muttered to himself before slumping onto the couch, the weight of the missionâ and your fractured partnershipâ weighing heavily on him.Â
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
You woke up in a daze as the incessant ringing of your laptop startled you out of your subconscious. You groaned as you sat up, the digital clock showed 4 A.M. You heaved your laptop from the bedside table and opened it. It showed a contact that looked suspiciously like⌠your sister??
You were suddenly wide awake as you accepted the call. âHello? Sora? Is that you..?â you whispered. It looked like your sister, but her surroundings were dimly lit and she looked pale. Concern shot up inside you. âA-are you okay? Where is the agency keeping you?â
She was breathing hard, she looked around agitated, âHey sis, slow down slow down. Iâm okay- but I donât have much time. I found something⌠about your Mrs. Kwon.â
You furrowed your eyebrows, Mrs. Kwon? Well she had been acting a bit on edge but this was a huge mission. Your voice wavered at her cautious tone and your chest tightened. âWhatâs wrong? And Sora, where are you? Did something happen?â
Sora hesitated before whispering, âIâm okay, Iâm escaping from where the agency kept me. But Mrs. Kwon.. sheâs planning to use it for herself.. I heard her talking about how the Codex would give her leverage over every agency in the world. Sheâs going to blackmail people, threaten them, and use it as a weapon to gain power. She doesnât have the right intentions and sheâs a dangerous woman with all that power already.âÂ
Your mind reeled from the information, âNo⌠that doesnât make any sense. The agency, weâre supposed to stop people like Lloyd, not become like him. Mrs. Kwon hates people like him. She.. she wouldnât do that.â But you knew that she could pull something like this off. Still.. It hurt. It hurt to finally find out that the organization you dedicated half your life to, thinking you were helping people, it actually was all a fluke.
Sora saw the confusion and the pit that was forming in your stomach. She sensed it through the screen. Her voice broke slightly. âI donât think you know whatâs really happening, _____. You canât trust them, you canât trust anyone. Please be careful. Iâm scared for you.â
You swallowed hard, your throat tight. Still you manage to give her a reassuring smile that seemed uneasy anyway. âIâll figure this out, Sora. Stay safe okay? Iâll take care of myself, I promise, and Iâll protect you too no matter what.âÂ
Sora nodded and returned your smile before the screen went dark. You sat frozen, still stunned at the revelation, your mind spinning. The betrayal felt like a knife twisting in your gut. How could the place- no, the person you put so much trust into stab you in the back like this?? It was done, years of your life had been wasted away but you wouldnât let Mrs. Kwon do this. You wouldnât blatantly let her harm innocent people. In two quick actions, you grabbed the burner phone and took out the chip, crushing the feeble metal in your hand. Betrayal burned in the pit that had formed in your stomach, you would stop that crazy lady. No matter what.
You pushed open the adjoining door to Jungwonâs room. He was sprawled out on the bed, his chest rising and falling steadily, the faint glow of the moonlight casting soft shadows on his face. For a moment your breath hitched, he looked so peaceful, so ethereal, almost like an angel- but the memories from a few days ago started to rush in again. Your gaze went from starstruck to cold once more as you stepped closer to his bed.Â
âJungwon,â you said quietly, but he didnât stir.Â
You took a step closer as you gently nudged his shoulder. âJungwon, wake up.â
He groaned as he rolled over to face you. His eyes were still closed though. â_____, if this is about my snoring again-â
âGet up,â you snapped, your voice cutting through his grogginess. How could he be talking about his obnoxious snoring right now?
He blinked up at you, his confusion quickly replaced with concern when he saw your expression. He was so attuned to your feelings⌠âWhatâs wrong?â
You crossed your arms, your jaw tight. âSora called. She overheard something about the Codex and Mrs. Kwon.â you say as you sigh softly, the dread and betrayal still fresh in your mind.
Hearing about the Codex woke Jungwon up completely. He swung his legs over the edge of the bed, his expression serious now. âWhat did she say?â
You hesitated, your voice quieter now. God- even you couldnât believe it yourself. âMrs Kwon, she doesnât want to destroy the Codex. She wants to use itâ for blackmail, for power. Everything weâve been through, risking our livesâŚ. It's all been for nothing. Itâs a lie Jungwon.â
Jungwon was shocked for a moment just as you were. His mouth opened but no words came out. You could see the gears turning in his head. Despite your recent⌠differences, you knew he had risked his life for it too. You knew he had been through what you had for the Codex. He felt the same way you did. He ran a hand through his hair, his brows furrowed, âare you sure about this?âÂ
âShe overheard it directly,â you say as you start pacing around the room, feeling restless. âAnd she told me not to trust anyone. Not the agency, not anyone.âÂ
He leaned back against his hands, exhaling sharply. âWell thatâs just great. So, weâre completely on our own now? I mean we canât just go back there and ask Mrs. Kwon to stop being evil nicely right?â
You rolled your eyes at his childish words, you stopped pacing to shoot him a glare. âPretty much. Which means we need to figure out what to do next.âÂ
Jungwon observed you carefully. Your shoulders tensed, your eyes absolutely refusing to meet his voluntarily, and your not so gentle bite of your lip. âYouâre still mad.â Jungwon voiced, softly.
You turned away from him but your shoulders were still tense. âMad doesnât even begin to cover it.â
âHey,â he said, his voice impossibly softer now, âI get it. I messed up. But right now, weâve got bigger problems than my poor decision-making skills.â
âYou think I donât know that??â you snapped, spinning to face him. The fire now present in your eyes as you met his. âBut I canât just pretend everythingâs fine when itâs not. You almost got us killed for some random criminal. And now Sora is out of any semblance of protection because of our stupid agency.â
He stood up. His expression was unreadable but a hint of determination lingered in his eyes as he approached you. âYouâre right. I screwed up. But if thereâs one thing you should know by now, it's that Iâm not going to give up. Not on the mission. Not on people. And definitely not on you.â
Your breath hitched, damnit, he was making those stupid unnecessary nagging feelings bubble in your chest. But you quickly looked away as you spoke in an ice cold tone. âDonât do this. Donât make this about us Jungwon. This is about the mission. About Sora. Aboutââ
âThis is about everything,â he didnât back down. Instead his tone was firm as he continued. âAnd whether you like it or not, weâre in this together. So, you can stay mad at me if you want, but Iâm not going anywhere.âÂ
You clenched your fists. You hated this, the way you even had to choose between your anger and the comfort his words provided. But even after all of what had happened- you could never bring yourself to hate him. âFine. But donât expect me to trust you like I used to.â
âIâll earn it backâ he said easily like it was the simplest thing in the world. His gaze never faltered either. And as much as you hated to admit it, in this uncertain time you were glad to have Jungwon there. At least you knew you had someone who would never tire of you. Who was there even if he made your blood boil.
You held his gaze as you challenged him silently. But he never backed down.. He never gave up on you. You broke away from his eyes as you sighed deeply. âWe need a plan.âÂ
Jungwon nodded. âThen letâs make one, yeah? Together.â
You didnât respond but still silently sat down at the small desk to start mapping out your next move. You couldnât help but glance at him from the corner of your eye. For all his flaws, you knew one thing for certainâ Jungwon would fight for you, for Sora, for this mission. And no matter how angry you were, part of you couldnât help but feel grateful for that.Â
After destroying the chip in Jungwonâs burner phone too, you both sat down with your own laptops. It was time to dig, for a lead, for a radio message, for anything that would help.
It took a while, but after multiple hours of trying to find something- anything a lead popped up. Lloyd had become sloppy with one of his radio messages. He had said something about going underground for a while. His estate in Russia, no one would be idiotic enough to penetrate his heavily guarded and almost unreachable mansionâŚ. Except the two of you of course.
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The storm raged over the sprawling Russian estate, casting an ominous shadow over the towering walls and wrought iron gates. Lightning illuminated the sprawling mansion, its sharp spires cutting into the dark sky. Dark walls with crawling vines seemed to threaten and ward off anyone who dared to enter. Icy rain poured down in sheets as it soaked through the gear that adorned your body. The sound of thunder masked the faint rustle of movement as you and Jungwon crouched in the dense shadows near the perimeter.Â
âThis place screams âvillain lairââ Jungwon mutters, his breath annoyingly warming up the back of your neck. He adjusted the hood of his black jacket against the freezing rain.
âFocus,â You said sharply, your voice barely audible over the wind. You didnât spare him a glance, your gaze fixed on the towering structure ahead. More specifically on the armed men who were about to exchange shifts in just a matter of minutes.Â
Jungwon sighed, casting a sidelong glance at you. âWow you sound like youâre going to bite my head off. Personally, I think you should wait until after we grab the Codex to kill me, yeah?â
You didnât respond. Pressing on to the side entrance you were going to infiltrate. It didnât help that this was the most important mission of your life. The Codex was finally in your sight again. Not to mention that Sora was still on the move. No place was safe for her as long as the Codex was at large. It was also absurdly hard to get here after you had gone MIA from the agency. Mrs. Kwon seemed to have gone crazy because she stopped some of the most important missions to employ the agents to search for you and Jungwon.Â
But what was worse was the ever annoying tension. It was cold and biting like the air that howled around you two. You didnât like to say that you held a grudge, but your anger still lingered like a storm of its own. And though Jungwon tried to break through it with his normal flattery and charm, you wouldnât budge. Not yet.Â
You moved once again the moment the men turned their backs to change shifts. Stopping by the gate, you pressed yourself against the wall as you were met with the high tech digital lock. âThis is it,â you whispered as you nodded to the door. The lock looked a bit advanced but it's nothing you couldn't handle. You knelt as you connected your hacking device into the lock. Your fingers were steady despite the icy rain that soaked through your gloves.
Jungwon knelt beside you, watchful eyes scanning their surroundings. âStill canât believe you stayed mad this long. You know, if we die here, itâll make for a tragic love story.â
You shot him a glare for bringing your personal relationships (or lack thereof) into the conversation. âIf we die here, itâll be because you canât stop running your mouth.â
Not even a minute after the lock clicked. You pushed the door open and closed it just as the next guards arrived for their patrol.Â
The interior of the mansion was cold and dark, the air heavy with the scent of damp stone and expensive leather. You moved in silence, your footsteps muffled by the thick carpet as you made your way towards the vault. You had to snicker at the hideous pictures of Lloyd that decorated the walls. Him in nothing but leopard fur, him showing off his (nonexistent) muscles, one with two girls fawning over him, and yet another where he was sitting on a pony?? Goes to show just how self centered he was.Â
You kept your focus sharp as you two sneaked silently towards the vault. You were blatantly ignoring how Jungwonâs presence at your side felt like both a comfort and an annoyance . You couldnât afford to be distracted right now anyways.Â
Jungwon, for his part, stole glances at you whenever he could. The tension between you was eating away at him. He hated the thought that you didnât trust him anymore. He thought about this every time, but today it felt more real. This mission could be your last, and he would hate to have that happen with you still angry at him.Â
The vault was hidden behind a bookshelf in one of the many studies this estate had. You had thoroughly researched beforehand. There shouldnât be any people in this part of the estate right now. You turned to Jungwon abruptly as both of you got in place. Your tone was just the slightest bit accusatory as you gave him an unreadable look. âOnce we are inside, you know the plan. No distractions, no detours.â
âUnderstood boss,â Jungwon said, his hands raising in mock surrender. The two of you tugged at the two dark blue books on each side of the study. There was some mechanical whirring behind the door, as it opened with a hiss. The huge metal vault sparkled at you, just the menacing door stood before you and the Codex now.Â
You ignored the jab and turned back to the vault door. It was protected by an intricate keypad and a biometric scanner. You pulled out the small device again as you started working once again. The gloves you wore would bypass the scanner no problem.Â
âTimeâs ticking..â Jungwon murmured, his ears on high alert for any sound outside the closed study door.Â
âAlmost⌠thereâ you said your voice tight with concentration.
The lock disengaged with a heavy click, and the vault door creaked open. Inside, the metal room glimmered with Lloydâs wealth. Gold bars, stacks of cash, priceless artifacts, ancient jewelry, huge jewels. But at the center of the room, bathed in the glow of a single overhead light, was the long behold Phantom Codex.
The codex was exactly as you had remembered it. How could you forget the piece of tech that had basically ruined your life anyway? Obsidian black, diamond shaped, etched with glowing cerulean symbols. It seemed alive, faintly humming as you listened carefully. You had to shake your head so you didnât get entranced like everyone had at the gala in Paris.Â
âThere it is,â you whispered, your breath catching.
âFinally,â Jungwon said, carelessly stepping forward. But before he could even take a single step closer the floor detected his weight. In an instant, lasers shot from the walls as ear blasting sirens rang through the sound of the storm.Â
âMOVE!!â you shouted, as you dodged the lasers skilfully but Jungwon beat you to it. He snatched the Codex from the pedestal.Â
âIâve got it, lets go!!â he yelled as the both of you could hear the thunder of the probably hundreds of guards all swarming to your location.Â
You both made your way outside the study. You could taste the adrenaline as the window in front of you taunted you. But this time you would do it. This was your escape, your victory.Â
Jungwon ran as fast as he could, his focus was on the window just the same as you. The pounding of boots and shouting of the men spurred the two of you to go even faster. You were just a few steps behind him.
Thatâs when you stopped. The bullet flew through the air as you felt time stop. Your eyes darted to Jungwonâs retreating figure, then to the guards that grew closer. The bullet pierced your abdomen. You felt the stinging pain, not from the blood that stained your gearâ no. It was from the realization that this was it.
Still you didnât care. Jungwon had secured the Codex, he would do whatâs right. And you had to protect him no matter what. Instead of running to Jungwon, you turned your back to him. Facing the absurd amount of guards that closed in onto you. For Jungwon.Â
But while you tackled one guard to the floor, you knew it. There were way too many. You still placed a kick to another one as they surrounded you. You were sloppy, your movements too slow. Another guard grabbed your arm as suddenly, someone else lifted the butt of their rifle, bringing it down onto your back harshly. You felt pain through your entire being as you inevitably blacked out, watching the window shatter just like your freedom.Â
You fell unconscious. Your body crumpled.
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
Jungwon jumped through the window. The glass shards cutting his face as the rain immediately greeted him in the courtyard. He clutched the Codex tightly against his chest. He turned back, adrenaline and victory coursing through him. He expected to see you, standing victoriously beside him. That satisfactory smirk gracing your lips anytime you both succeeded in a mission.Â
But his heart dropped. There was no sight of you. He felt his blood run cold as his chest felt like it was caving in on him. No! This couldnât be happening. He didnât feel the tears stream down his face because of the rain that poured down onto him.Â
You were captured. Gone from his protection into Lloydâs demonic hands. His hands shook as he held onto the Codex. He promised himself that he would get it for you. But not like this. Not at this cost. âDAMNIT!!â He yelled your name as his brain finally caught up with the events happening.Â
Fear for you clawed in Jungwonâs chest, but more than that white hot rage burned through him. So much so that it threatened to consume his whole being. The what-ifs of what Lloyd could do lingered in his mind for just a moment, but they disappeared the moment he imagined you at that bastardâs mercy. His hands clenched and his jaw set as he stared back at the estate. No rational thought in his mind. He couldnât think of anything elseâ didnât want to. The mission, the Codex, everything else blurred into insignificance. You were all that mattered.
Jungwon moved through the stone halls like a man possessed. He was soaked to the core but he didnât once shiver. He let himself think with his instinct and his instinct alone. Something you probably would have reprimanded him for. But it was his instinct that was guiding him to you.Â
The guards who crossed his path didnât stand a chance. Anyone who dared to move towards him was struck with precision and speed. His movements were raw and fueled by a fire that burned hot inside him. A punch to the throat, a kick to the ribs, a quick disarmâ he left them crumpled in his wake, barely sparing them a second glance.Â
The Codex was clutched tightly in his hand. The dark obsidian surface shone with rain. Every time some stupid guard tried to grab it, he twisted away, taking them down before they could make a move. Like the big burly men were some flies he needed to flick away.Â
He was there, he was at the inner sanctum now. He was breathing hard and his gaze deathly. His focus never wavering.
The room where you were being held was flanked by at least ten guards. They stiffened at the sight of Jungwon, their weapons raised. But the sight of his gaze and rigid form struck fear into their hearts.Â
Jungwon didnât slow down. âGet out of my way,â he growled out. His voice was low, dangerous, and shaking with rage.
The guards still stupidly didnât budge.Â
Jungwon lifted the artifact that they all were after up high. âIf you idiots donât move. Iâll destroy this thing right here and now.âÂ
The threat worked. The guards exchanged glances. Debating if they should really move and face Lloydâs wrath or Jungwonâs. One of them moved and the others followed. Their eyes showed uncertainty but watching Jungwon move swiftly they knew they would have been done for if they hadnât.Â
Jungwon almost broke the heavy wooden door down, his heart pounding as his eyes immediately sought you.
The room was dim, the occasional burst of lightning illuminating it. It was freezing cold and Jungwon observed how there were no guards inside. You were on your knees in the center of the room. Your hands tied behind your back in a rough grip that would leave your wrists red. Your hair was damp still, plastered to your forehead. But your expression remained fierce. Your head held high despite the position you were in. You refused to give in to Lloyd no matter what.
Your heart leaped in frustration and unbelievable relief as Jungwon burst through the door. It was so damn frustrating that he had done this, risked his life and the lives of so many others just for⌠you. Only for you. You couldnât help but observe how rigid his form was. The moment he lifted his head to look at Lloyd, it scared you. You had never seen him this uncontrolled, this angry.Â
Lloyd was stood behind you with a gun pressed to the back of your head. His face split into a wicked, wide, mocking grin as Jungwon entered the room. The Codex sparkling blue in his grip.
âWell well,â he drawled, his voice oozing amusement. âThe knight in shining armor returns. I must admit, I didnât think youâd be stupid enough to come back for your little girlfriend.â
Jungwonâs gaze was locked on you. His fury only heightened once he saw how Lloyd was holding you at gunpoint. He shook his head as he straightened up. âYou donât understand what Iâd do for her.â he said his voice barely audible but full of anger.
âJungwon!! NO!!!â you shouted, finding your voice once again. âYou shouldnât be here!! Take the Codex and go!!â The shout made your bullet wound in your abdomen sting with unbearable pain, as you gritted your teeth.
Lloyd chuckled, amused by the little display. He menacingly nudged the barrel of the gun into your skull. âListen to her boy. Sheâs smarter than you are.â
Jungwon ignored the both of you. His expression was hard, no one could tell what ran through his mind. His focus was entirely you. The grip he had on the Codex tightened. âLet her go, Lloyd!âÂ
Lloyd almost laughed. He raised his eyebrows âand what position are you in to make that demand? Besides, why would I do that?? Sheâs quite the leverage. You hand over the Codex, or I blow her pretty little brains out.â
âJungwon!!â you said in a warning tone, a certain urgency in your voice. âDonât. Donât give it to him. Itâs not worth it. I did this so you could escape!! SO GO DAMMIT!!â
Jungwonâs heart clenched at the barely masked fear in your voice. His mind still pissed that you cared more about the stupid artifact more than yourself. How could you be so blind? You had to have known. To Jungwon, nothing mattered but you. âYou want the Codex? Fine. Take it.â
âJungwon no!!!â You yelled in vain.
He strode across the room and without hesitation, Jungwon tossed the Codex across the room. It landed at Lloydâs feet, and the bastardâs grin widened.Â
âAh~ the hero sacrifices everything for the damsel. How predictable.â Lloyd kicked the Codex aside and turned his evil eyes toward Jungwon again. âBut youâre a fool if you think this ends well for you.âÂ
He cocked the gun.
Jungwon moved before Lloyd could even think to pull the trigger.Â
With lightning speed, he lunged forward, grabbing a knife from his belt and throwing it with deadly accuracy. His fury at its peak, his vision completely red. The blade sank into Lloydâs shoulder, forcing him to drop the gun and stagger back with a howl of pain.Â
You fell forward as the gun was wrenched away from him, landing hard on the cold stone tiles.Â
Jungwon couldnât see anything but rage. He was already on Lloyd, tackling him to the ground and landing a flurry of punches. The sickening sound of flesh hitting flesh echoed through the empty chamber. The only other sounds being Lloydâs groaning and Jungwonâs labored breathing.
âTHIS IS FOR HER!!â Jungwon growled loudly, slamming Lloydâs head into the floor. The crack of his skull was loud and clear, but Jungwon didnât seem to hear it. âFor all the people youâve made suffer. For everyone youâve hurt. For everything youâve done!âÂ
Lloyd was done. He was lifeless, his body limp but Jungwon didnât stop. Jungwon didnât think of any intel, of what use he could have been. All he could think of was slamming his skull into the floor over and over and-
âJungwon stop!â your voice cut through his haze of rage.
His eyes seemed to finally refocus as the anger slowly dissipated. His heart clenched when he looked over his shoulder at how you were struggling to your feet, your hands still bound.Â
âHeâs done..â you said in a soft whisper. âWe need to go.âÂ
Jungwonâs chest heaved as he stared down at Lloyd, who was lifeless. After he scowled at him, his eyes narrowing, he nodded and stood. Pocketing the gun that laid close to Lloyd. He picked up the damned Codex before making his way towards you.
No words were exchanged between the two of you as Jungwon untied your hands with surprising gentleness. Considering how angry he had just been it was astonishing how he handled you like a porcelain doll. The moment that your hands were free, you threw your arms around him, burying your face into his strong chest. You felt an inexplicable amount of relief and warmth as you were finally able to wrap your arms around him once again.
âYou⌠youâre an idiot, Yang Jungwon.â you whispered, your voice shaking as Jungwon felt you wet his jacket that he wore. He hugged you back tightly. His hands wrapped around your whole body as he pulled you close to him. You cursed as the pain shot up in your abdomen once more.
He immediately pulled back as his hands rested carefully on your hips, â___?? Whatâs wrong?â he said with big boba eyes that showed nothing but concern.Â
âIâm okay won, just got shot.â you told him, the smile on your face looking like an idiotic grin. The tears still shone bright in your eyes. You ran your fingers through his soft locks as your eyes darted trying to memorize every single detail of his beautiful face.
âJust???-â he was about to tell you off, when the door flew open. The remaining guards poured into the room, guns drawn and shouting commands in Russian.Â
You and Jungwon immediately broke apart, your instincts kicking in. Jungwon reached for Lloydâs gun in his pocket while you ducked behind him, your sharp eyes scanning for an opening.
âWeâre not out of this yet,â Jungwon muttered, his tone laced with a mixture of irritation and exhilaration.
You smirked at him despite the chaos. The dynamic between you two undeniably felt right again, âthought you liked dramatic exits.â
Jungwon tilted his head, just barely dodging a bullet that whizzed past. âThat I do.âÂ
Jungwon fired a few warning shots wildly into the air. Forcing the guards to take cover as the two of you darted for the hallway. The storm still raged outside but there was a hint of blue skies not too far from the gray clouds. Thunder rumbled as the pair of you sprinted through the sprawling mansion. The ache in your abdomen was still present but you could bear it, because the taste of freedom was too sweet.Â
âYou couldâve reminded me about the cavalry!â Jungwon called out over his shoulder as you rounded a corner, narrowly avoiding another group of guards.Â
You scoffed, breathless but focused. âI didnât think you would be stupid enough to actually throw the Codex to Lloyd, but here we are.â
Jungwon laughed, his sweet stupid laugh. It rang out in your ears the sweetest melody youâd ever heard. âAnything for you babe! You know that.â
You couldn't afford the butterflies raging within you, but god you couldnât stop them either. Just like the foolish grin that spread across your face.Â
The hallways seemed endless, a labyrinth of opulent decor and deadly ambushes. Guards spilled out from doorways, but you and Jungwon moved in a seamless unit. You kicked a marble bust, sending it crashing into the path of the pursuers, while Jungwon threw his knife that found its mark in another guardâs leg.
Finally, the mansionâs main entrance came into view, its grand double doors flanked by a pair of guards. You didnât slow down one bit though, your mind racing. You didnât have a plan sure, but you had Jungwon and his killer instinct. âLeft or right?â you hissed at Jungwon.
âBoth,â his eyes twinkled as he veered right.
You rolled your eyes, but couldnât help the burst of joy as you saw the look in his eyes. You darted to the left, sliding low as you kicked one guardâs feet out from under him. Jungwon tackled the other, knocking his weapon away before landing a solid punch to his jaw.
The doors were pushed open by the two of you as the storm had seemed to ease up a bit. Rain still softly pelted you as you bolted down the stone steps toward the row of motorcycles parked outside. You flipped off the estate in the background, the grin not leaving your face. âHA!! You bastards!!âÂ
You let out a breathless laugh as the two of you mounted the Kawasaki Ninjas. You grinned at Jungwon, for the first time in a while feeling the thrill of freedom and success. âHowâd you know Iâd have these ready?â
Jungwon revved the engine, smirking at you, âBecause youâre you.â
âAnd what does that mean?â
âIt means you're crazy detailed and brilliant as hell.âÂ
Your stomach flipped at the unexpected sincerity in his tone, but there was no time to dwell on it. The two of you sped off into the night. Kicking back gravel and mud in your wake. Shots were being fired into the air but you were too far from the estate to worry about any of that.Â
Ëââ§ę°á âą ŕťęą â§âË
The cool night air softly tousled your hair. The two roaring engines fell silent as the bikes came to a stop at a beach by the road. The two of you were far off the path of the storm and far enough away that Lloydâs men werenât catching up anytime soon. The air was biting at your skin but still it was calm. The only sound was the rhythmic crashing of the waves. The scene in front of you was truly breathtaking. Gray sands giving away to dark waves. Except the fact that the waves werenât as black as they seemed. On occasion as some of them crashed onto the shore, they lit up to be an azure blue. Bioluminescence graced the waves curves and foam.Â
You had time to think. And while on the ride here you contemplated. Jungwon had done something foolish that had no guarantee of working out. But by some godly will it did. You couldnât help but be just a bit pissed that you risked your life for him just for him to save you in the end. There was a small part of you that said to tell him off for it. Now that you were past the rush of adrenaline you could think clearly once more.Â
Jungwon had hopped off the bike shaking the water out of his hair. You couldnât help but stop and stare for a second as he looked angelic. The moonlight illuminated his pale skin and the moon itself shone bright in his eyes. Itâs like he was struck by the beauty of the moon. His broad shoulders tensed when he looked at you. Standing with your arms crossed and an unreadable expression on your face.Â
âI hope you know Iâm not letting you off the hook. That was stupid what you did.â You say trying to sound stern but there was no real bite to your voice.Â
âI heard you loud and clear the first time.â He said with a chuckle leaning casually on his bike.Â
You huffed at his nonchalant attitude as you strode towards him. You poked his chest hard. âYou threw the Codex at Lloyd like a fool! Do you realize how reckless that was?? You-â
âSaved your life?â He interrupted. His hand laced his fingers with yours as he leaned in closer. His voice dropped to something deeper, more serious.
You were frozen in place. Itâs like your brain shut off once again when his hand was grasped in yours. He was way too close too. You could see the soft shadows so his eyelashes and his deep dimple poked out as he smirked. You opened your mouth to say something but the words died on your lips. He was right, he had saved your life. Again. You hated when he was right- you were supposed to be the smart one. You stared at him as your heart pounded for reasons you couldnât entirely blame on anger.Â
âYou put the entire world in danger,â you whispered, as if saying anything louder would break this perfect moment. âFor me.â
His smirk softened into a smile as he brought his other hand up. Tucking a piece of damp hair behind your ear. His hand lingered for just a moment too long. He stared at you with so many emotions you couldnât decipher them all. âBaby⌠you are my world.â
Your breath hitched. You were rendered completely speechless. The only sound was the waves beating on the shore and the thump of your heartbeat. The petname, the way his hand was still in yours, the way his eyes softened just for you. You didnât think anymore, letting your instincts take over. Just like he would have done.
You grabbed him by the collar of his jacket as you stared into his moonlit eyes before your gaze landed on his lips. You shoved him against the side of his parked bike.
âYouâre impossible.â You muttered, but the way your lips twitched threatening a smile betrayed your resolve.Â
âAnd you love itâ jungwon managed to shoot back. His grin faltered the moment you pulled him down by his collar.Â
Your lips met in a collision of fire and fury, a kiss born of unspoken emotions and pent-up tension. It wasnât soft or tentative; it was deep, desperate, and raw. The way your mouths moved in sync like they were trying to make up for lost time. The kiss was sure and firm.Â
His lips were soft, plump, and pillowy just as you had remembered them. You couldnât lie and say that you hadnât missed him. The way he slightly smiled into the kiss. His tongue darting out to trace the outline of your lower lip.
His hands found your waist. Making sure to be extra careful that he didnât irritate the wound on your abdomen. But the way he slightly tightened his grip when his tongue finally entered your mouth, he was holding on like you might slip away again if he lets go.
Your hands were in his dark and damp locks as your knuckles curled around his soft hair. You tugged slightly, earning a low groan from him that vibrated against your mouth. The sound makes shivers run down your spine.Â
You pressed him harder against the bike. Your body molded to his in a way that felt like you were trying to crawl into his skin. His hands roamed over your back as he traced soft patterns, grounding you like an anchor in the moment.
âJungwon-â you whined when he pulled away for a breath. The sound only made him cup your cheek as he angled your head while he went in again. You couldnât resist whimpering against his mouth when he caressed your cheeks with so much tenderness you could melt.Â
It wasnât just a kissâ it was a release, a declaration, an unspoken promise. The world faded into the background, nothing seeming to matter more than the two of you right now. It only left the two of you, connected in a way that felt inevitable.Â
When you finally pulled apart, your breaths came in ragged gasps. Your forehead rested against his and your hands remained on his shoulder. You looked into his eyes. And you knew this was right, youâd never felt anything more intense than this. You needed Jungwon and the way he stared right back at you, you knew he needed you too.
âYou drive me up a wall Jungwon. Donât ever scare me like that again.â You whispered. Your voice breaking.
Jungwon chuckled softly as he ran his thumb over your cheek with love in his eyes. His own breathing uneven, âno promises.â
You stayed like that for a few moments. Wrapped up in each other. Just enjoying the otherâs presence and touch. But you stepped back slowly, your hands trailing down Jungwonâs built chest before falling to your sides. Your gaze dropped to the object that stuck out of his pocketâ the Phantom Codex, its dark, intricate surface glinting in the moonlight.Â
You slipped it out of his pocket. Staring at some stupid piece of tech that almost ruined your life and the lives of many more innocent people. The blue hue that it exuded along with the faint whisper of the symbols moving were almost trying to convince you to stop. But without hesitation you held it up in the air before slamming it against the asphalt with all your strength.Â
It was done. The Codex shattered into a million pieces, shards scattering across the sand. The sound echoed briefly before being swallowed by the night.Â
You straightened your posture as you turned to Jungwon. It was gone. Your sister was free and Mrs. Kwonâs evil plan had come to a halt. Your eyes were a mix of joy, fierceness, and determination.Â
âItâs over.â You stated simply.
Jungwon nodded, a small, proud smile tugging at his lips. He slipped his hand on your shoulder as he pulled you close once again. His lips brushed against the crown of your head. âIt is.â
You had to gasp softly as the horizon began to blush with the first rays of dawn. Jungwonâs arm fell as he stared in awe at the world slowly emerging once again from the embrace of the night. The golden light stretched over the waves, illuminating the water in hues of pink and gold. The storm had long passed, and the gentle breeze carried the salty tang of the sea. The world was quiet, peaceful.Â
You felt the breeze nip at your skin as you hugged your arms around yourself. Jungwon noticed and he silently draped his jacket over your shoulders. You glanced at him, your lips curving into a small smile you didnât bother hiding.Â
âYouâre really laying it on thick arenât you?â You teased, still pulling the jacket closer.Â
âCan you blame me?â Jungwon replied with a grin. He stepped closer to you standing by your side with his hands in his pocket like he wasnât just making out with you a minute ago. âItâs not everyday I get to watch the sunrise with the love of my life who happens to be the woman who also saved the world.â
You tried to hide your blush but it crept up on you anyway. Your smile softened as your gaze returned to the horizon. The rising sun painting your face with warmth. You looked like you were glowing to Jungwon. But even with the warmth your thoughts were heavy. âWe didnât save the world- there is no saving it. We just stopped it from getting worse.â
âSame difference,â Jungwon said lightly. âAnd weâre not done yet.â
You nodded, your eyes scanning the open sea that stretched in front of you. âWeâre on the run now. The agency wonât stop hunting usâ
Jungwon smirked. Hid confident aura returning, âlet them try princess. Weâve outsmarted Lloyd and destroyed the Codex. Whatâs a few corporate nerds?â
You rolled your eyes but you couldnât suppress the laugh that escaped your lips. âYou really donât know how to take anything seriously, do you?â
âNot true,â he said, stepping even closer as his voice softened,. âI take us seriously.â
Your heart skipped a beat as you looked away desperately trying to hide the blush and idiotic grin that threatened to break. âDonât get all sappy on me now.â
âToo late.â He grinned , reaching out to brush some hair out of your face. â____, weâre free now. No rules, no lies, no one pulling the strings but us. We can make a real difference, fight the way we want to fight.â
Your expression shifted, the weight of his words settling over you. For years, you had operated within a system that used people like tools. Simply sacrificing lives for power plays. Now, standing here with the man who had saved you from danger and yourself multiple times, you felt the stirrings of something your prior life hasnât allowed: hope.Â
The sun crept higher. Itâs light washing away the remnants of the night, and with it, the shadows of your past.
âIf we are going into this chaotic world of crime, corrupt organizations, and horrible people. Iâm glad youâre the one Iâm doing this with.â Jungwon said suddenly.Â
You could hear your heart beating in your ears as you grinned like an idiot. âGood. Because youâre stuck with me Jungwon.â You wrapped your arms around his neck as you took him in again.
âNo one Iâd rather be with,â he whispered, his lips brushing against yours.Â
It was morning now. The sun had finally risen. The path ahead was clear despite the dangers that lurked at every turn. The rays washed both of you in warmth as your lips met for the nth time. Your life had only just begun, and it was going to be a wild ride.Â
The fact this is your first fic ever is crazy like 20k words?!?!?! Anyway this is so good I love cute lil spy fics they're so cute đ
that time as a new engene where i couldn't find any content of them because i always spelt it 'enhyphen' and wondered why it was so quiet đ
[dead]
sure thing â part two.
pairing: yang jungwon x f reader
genre: coworkers au, underground boxer jungwon
part two word count: 10.8k
warnings:Â swearing, descriptions/depictions of physical violence, blood and minor injuries, jealousy, a bit of a love triangle I'M SORRY, a kiss or five
note: aaaand here's part two! thank you to everyone that left a comment/reblog on part one. this is the conclusion to the story. suffer with me while we daydream about blonde boxer jungwon and enjoyyyyy âĄ
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
An employee in the marketing department of a large company, your days are filled with poorly worded emails, unrealistic deadlines, and passive aggressive friendly reminders from your superiors. On a particularly awful afternoon, a chance encounter with a coworker from the programming department down the hall is the first thing to make you smile in weeks.
But the more you uncover about Yang Jungwon and his mysterious injuries, flimsy excuses, and always occupied Friday nights, the more you begin to realize that you really donât know him at all.
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
PART TWO
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
Itâs been a while since you felt anything but dread opening your work inbox.Â
Monday morning, however, the first message that greets you is a reminder of a time when you did. When you used to keep your email tab open just in the hopes that a certain programmer would send you messages about a jammed printer for you to reread a dozen times.Â
This time, though, excitement is the last thing you feel. Itâs curiosity, more than anything, combined with an urgent need to know what the hell happened between your date and your coworker, that has you clicking on the message.Â
From: [email protected]Â
Subject: Printer Issue
Good morning, ___.Â
I hope this message finds you well. I am currently trying to resolve an ongoing issue with the workroom printer and was hoping you would be able to provide some input at your earliest convenience.Â
Thank you in advance,Â
Jungwon
Part of you wants to archive the message without responding and let him simmer in your rejection.Â
But spite has never held much weight against curiosity, and despite your better judgment, you soon find yourself walking towards the shared workroom.Â
As expected, itâs already occupied. This time, however, Jungwon is leaning against the wall, arms crossed over his chest. The printer, just as you suspected, is in perfect working order.Â
Thereâs a fresh bruise on his forehead, and this time, you donât wonder where itâs from. It makes sense now. The bruises on his knuckles. The cut on his cheekbone. His seemingly intimate knowledge of head injuries that one fateful Monday afternoon he found you in this very room.Â
Theyâre all the result of his hidden hobby, you suppose.Â
As soon as you enter, some of the rigidity seeps out of his stance. Immediately, his arms fall to his sides, expression softening. â___,â he whispers, like he canât quite believe you actually came.Â
Where he softens, however, you cage up.Â
âYou have one minute,â you tell him.Â
âOne minute?â He echoes, brow creasing in confusion.Â
âOne minute to explain what happened Saturday night.â
Jungwon sighs. âIâm sorry. Really, I⌠I shouldnât have reacted like that.â
You donât say anything. An apology is appreciated, yes, but itâs not an explanation.Â
With your silence, Jungwon continues, âI was just⌠caught off guard. I didnât expect to see you there, and especially not with him.â
He pauses for a moment, biting at his lower lip. âLook, ___. I know it probably isnât my place, but I donât think heâs being honest with you. Jay isnât the person that you think he is, andââ
Your scoff cuts through his words, stopping him in his tracks. âThatâs funny,â you interrupt. But humor is the last thing on your mind. âHe said the exact same thing about you, you know. But it has to be bullshit. I mean, what could have possibly happened in middle school that two adults with jobs are still hung up on a decade later?â
Jungwonâs lips part in surprise. âHe told you about middle school?â
âWhy?â you prod. âIs there something to know?â
But now youâre at a stalemate, neither of you willing to disclose what exactly you know.Â
After another beat, Jungwon sighs. âLook, Iâm not trying to tell you what to doââ
âCould have fooled me.â
âBut I just want you to be careful, okay? Itâs⌠itâs important to me that youâre safe.â
âSafe?â You scoff. âIt was a boxing gym. I donât know why youâre acting like I was trying to push my way into the ring with you.â
âYou donât get itââ
âNo.â You throw your hands in exasperation. âI donât get it. But youâre not explaining it to me. Youâre just being evasive and acting like Iâm the one in the wrong. So unless you actually have something of substance to say, Iâm done having this conversation.â
â____âŚâÂ
Already halfway to the exit, the sound of your name is lost on you. Itâs bad enough that Jay has yet to reach out to you since last night. You absolutely do not need Jungwon bringing this issue into the office as well.Â
As if on cue, your phone dings with an incoming message.Â
Half expecting to see a virtual string of apologies from your coworker, youâre mildly surprised to see a different name instead.Â
You were right about the apologies, though.Â
Jay: Iâm sorry about last night. You were right about deserving an explanation and I want to give you one. I think this is a conversation we should have in person. Are you free Friday night for dinner?
Friday night. Two nights from now. Itâs soon enough that you wonât have to stew in resentment, but will give you both the time and space you need to think.Â
It doesnât take you long to consider, but you do wait another long minute before giving him the satisfaction of responding.Â
You: Iâll plan on Friday.
âŚ..
Friday morning comes with a vengeance.Â
Already teeming with nervous energy at the prospect of your upcoming date with Jay and the conversation that is sure to ensue, youâre a bit of a mess by the time you arrive at work.Â
Hair windswept, outfit mismatched, lipstick slightly smudged, you already know youâre in for a long day at the office.Â
But when you arrive at your desk, you find something that softens the blow, just a bit.Â
Grace, ever the instigator, is already learning over your cubicle by the time you notice it.Â
âWhew,â she whistles appreciatively. âSomeoneâs pulling out all the stops.â
And sheâs kind of right. The bouquet sitting front and center on your desk is massive. Overflowing with seasonal flowers that already emit a pleasant fragrance even from where you stand. The vase itself itâs gorgeous, too.Â
Imbued with a myriad of colors, it reminds you a bit of a stained glass window on a sunny afternoon.Â
Reaching for the small note tucked at the top, you open the envelope with slightly shaky fingers.Â
 ___, it reads.Â
I wish I had more to give you than an apology, but Iâve been told that flowers are a sure thing when it comes to brightening someoneâs day. I hope these are able to do that for you.Â
â J
Frowning, you read it once. Twice.Â
Jay has already apologized for the incident from a couple of nights ago, and the timing of this second apology seems odd, given your plans for tonight.Â
Youâre left to stand in your own confusion for a moment longer before a text message vibrates your phone in your pocket.Â
Reaching for it, the flowers suddenly start to make a lot more sense.Â
Jay: I am so sorry, but I have to reschedule our plans for tonight. It completely slipped my mind, but my sisterâs baby shower is tomorrow morning, and Iâve been voluntold to help set it up. I promise to let you know as soon as I can when Iâll be available
Jay: And again, I am so, so sorry
Sighing, you put your phone back in your bag. You canât blame him. Not really. His sisterâs baby shower is undoubtedly an important event, even if the timing is rather unfortunate for you.Â
Grace, blissfully unaware of your inner turmoil, is still gushing about your flowers. Turning to you, she wiggles her eyebrows suggestively. âSo, what are those for? Got a hot date this weekend?â
You sigh, recently canceled plans still dampening your mood. Deciding thereâs no harm in telling Grace your woes, you say, âI wish. Jay just had to cancel on me for tonight.â
âNo.â Grace gasps. If you didnât know any better, youâd think she was personally affronted. âHe better have had a good excuse.â
âHe did,â you admit. Unlike someone you know. âFamily stuff.â
âAh,â Grace nods. âI suppose thatâs acceptable. Have you rescheduled?â
Frowning at the message you have yet to answer, you shake your head. âNot yet.â
âMm,â she hums, sensing your disappointment. âIâm sure something just came up at work, and heâll get back to you soon.âÂ
âYeah,â you nod hollowly. âIâm sure he will.â
You: I understand. Is there any chance we could meet Saturday evening or afternoon? Itâs important to me that we talk about it soon.
Itâs not as if you expect an immediate response. Like you, Jay is probably at work for the day. Busy and drowning in deadlines and assignments. Maybe even stuck in a meeting.Â
But thirty minutes pass. And then an hour. Two.Â
And your message is still completely unanswered.Â
The more time that passes, the harder it becomes to shake the funny feeling that starts to build in your gut. It builds and builds and builds, all the way until closing time.Â
And Jay still hasnât texted you back.Â
Thatâs annoying enough all on its own, but thereâs something else that just isnât adding up.Â
You canât quite put your finger on it, the thing thatâs bothering you so much. But even as you make your way towards after clocking out for the day, something still doesnât sit right with you. Opening your message thread again, you reread Jayâs last text.Â
Jay: ⌠my sisterâs baby shower is tomorrow morning, and Iâve been voluntold to help set it up.Â
Sisterâs baby shower.Â
Thatâs whatâs been bothering you. Because unless Jayâs sister is just finishing the shortest known pregnancy in human history, heâs lying to you.Â
You remember it now. The first time Grace mentioned Jay to you. She had just seen him for the first time since he moved back home.Â
At his older sisterâs baby shower.Â
Sitting in your car, you scoff out loud in disbelief. The ice he treads on has been dangerously thin since your run in with Jungwon at the boxing gym, and he had the audacity to lie?Â
Part of you wants to catch him in it. For your own confirmation and for the satisfaction of not letting him get away with trying to pull a fast one on you. But you need an excuse. Some reason to seek him out and find him where he isnât supposed to be.Â
Racking your brain, you try to think of a plausible explanation for turning up at his house tonight.Â
Still sitting in the parking lot, a car turns past you, headlights shining in through your windshield in a way that makes you squint.Â
In a way that reflects off of the tiny piece of metal jammed in the crevice next to your cupholder. Frowning, you reach down, tugging at it until itâs freed from its confines.Â
Youâre not sure what divine forces are working in your favor, but you make a mental note to properly thank them later. Because clutched between your fingers is Jayâs missing ring. The one that heâs been looking for since he messaged you about it last week.Â
Itâs perfect, you think. An absolutely perfect excuse to drop by his house, even if you should be under the impression that heâs not there at the moment.Â
Turning the piece of jewelry between your fingers, your eyes catch on an inscription on the inner band. Squinting, you can just make it out.Â
2013.11.13 King Pen
Youâre pretty sure the numbers are a date. November 13, 2013, to be exact. But King Pen. You have no idea what that is.Â
It sounds like it could be related to boxing, maybe. Pulling out your phone, you do a quick online search.Â
The results that flood your screen are mostly generic, nothing that gives you any real leads. You try a few different search combinations, including the date and finally, the name of your city.Â
That does send an old article to the top of your search results. Something published in a local newspaper in 2007.Â
Clicking on the link, you scan the article for anything relevant.Â
Samuel Kang, one line towards the beginning reads, shared his plans to open a boxing gym right here in the city. Although there are other similar gyms in nearby towns, this would be the first gymnasium dedicated solely to boxing in the area.Â
You skip down a few more lines.Â
When asked if he knows what heâd like to call his project, Kang just smiles and nods his head. âKing Pen,â he tells us. âI plan to call it King Pen.â
You frown. Your earlier search is proof enough that King Pen never came to fruition. As a final attempt at getting some answers, you type Samuel Kang into the search bar instead.Â
This time, the first article that pops up does carry an air of familiarity. Clicking on it, you confirm your suspicion.Â
Samuel Kang, as it turns out, never opened a boxing gym called King Pen. But he did open one called Kangâs Gym.Â
Looking through the photo gallery, the weightlifting equipment appears to have been in much better shape in 2008 than it was a couple of weeks ago. But even though the paint was still bright and the training pads were fully intact, it is undoubtedly the same exact gym.Â
Thereâs no reason for you to go there now. If anything, you should just drive straight to Jayâs house. But something still doesn't sit right with you.Â
Why does Jayâs ring say King Pen instead of Kangâs Gym? Especially since itâs dated five whole years after the gym opened under its actual name.Â
Besides, the gym is on your way to Jayâs apartment. If anything, itâs just a quick pit stop. A confirmation that youâre not going crazy.Â
Putting your car in drive, you set the ring on your passenger seat and drive out of the parking lot.Â
Itâs already dark by the time youâre pulling into Kangâs Gym. Switching your car off, you remove your key from the ignition.Â
Your automatic headlights still illuminate the strangely full parking lot in front of you. Frowning, you wonder why so many people are here. Even the night that you came with Jay, the parking lot wasnât nearly this full, and yet, most of the boxing rings inside were occupied.Â
Stepping out of your car, you close the door behind you softly. Youâre not sure why youâre overcome with the urge to tiptoe. Itâs not like you need to sneak around. Youâre not doing anything wrong, after all.Â
But the whole thing feels strange, has you on edge. You make it only a few steps before your eyes land on a familiar car.Â
âSisterâs baby shower, my ass,â you whisper out loud to no one. Unless she decided to celebrate her new child at a run down boxing gym, Jay is absolutely lying to you. Because thatâs his sleek black car, right in front of you. Youâd recognize it anywhere.Â
And a few rows down, you confirm your other suspicion. Youâve never seen him drive it, but you have seen that particular navy blue SUV in the office parking garage before. Jungwon. Youâre sure itâs him.Â
For a moment, you hesitate. It might be easier, cleaner, to just take a picture of Jayâs car and send it to him. After all, that would get your point across clearly enough. Especially if you block him afterwards.Â
But heâs been evasive about everything related to this place since he first brought you here. And heâs not the only one.Â
Eyes falling to Jungwonâs car, you decide that catching Jay in a lie isnât the only thing you want to do tonight.Â
You want answers.Â
So the picture you take of Jayâs car remains unsent for now. Instead, you hike your bag a little further up your shoulder and continue walking in the direction of the gym.Â
Nearing the door, you brace yourself to be met with the large crowd that surely waits inside. Judging from the parking lot, this place must be near full capacity. But as you push through the unlocked door, the gym is completely and entirely empty.Â
Eerily so.Â
All around you, workout equipment and boxing rings sit untouched, devoid of life. There isnât so much as a sound to disturb the uncanny silence.Â
Frowning, your brow creases in deep confusion. Nothing about this makes any sense.Â
But you didnât come all the way here to add to your pile of questions. Instead, you push forward, past the rows of boxing rings towards the locker room where Jay left his bag a handful of nights ago.Â
It feels wrong to open the menâs locker room. But if no one is here, then surely it couldnât hurt. Warily, you start to crack open the door, inch by inch.Â
The locker room, to your unending puzzlement, is just as empty as the rest of the gym.Â
Youâre about to turn back to search the rest of the gym when you notice it. Just across from you, behind the first set of empty lockers. Thereâs another door.Â
Itâs probably nothing, you tell yourself, even as your feet carry you closer and closer. It probably just leads to a storage closet or a boiler room orâ
Pushing the door open, the first thing youâre met with is sound.Â
Voices. Loud voices. Lots and lots of them. In your surprise, you drop the door, and it clicks shut again.Â
Immediately, the sound stops. Plunged in silence again, itâs all you can do to not gasp.Â
Soundproof, you realize. Itâs soundproof. And not just the locker room. The entire gym was dead silent until you opened this door.
This time, when you push it open, you expect the cacophonous cheers that greet you. Youâre still too far away to make out what anyone is saying. Right now, it all blends into a wall of sound.Â
Vision is of little help, too. The only thing you see when you open the door is a staircase. In the low light, all you can tell is that it leads down.Â
Hoping that youâre not currently making the stupidest decision of your life, you place one tentative foot on the first step. Follow it with your other foot. And then you let the door close behind you, plunging you into complete darkness.Â
Immediately, a surge of panic claws at your throat. The lack of light, combined with the sheer volume of cheers and shouts, is enough to have you crawling in your skin.Â
Reaching blindly for the door handle behind you, you decide that sending Jay a picture of his car will have to be satisfying enough. But no matter how hard you try to twist the doorknob, it wonât budge.Â
No. No.Â
Youâre trapped. Effectively locked in.Â
As the reality of the situation sinks in, you feel the pit of your stomach begin to drop.Â
Part of you wants to just stay in place, wait for whateverâs going on to end and hope that a stroke of luck will set you free. But then another thought occurs to you.Â
What if this is the only entrance?
You donât know how many people are down there, but if the sound and parking lot are anything to go by, itâs a lot.Â
Youâre sure that Jay and Jungwon are among them, but stillâŚ
Both of their warnings start to come back to you.
âHeâs not who you think he isâŚâ
âI just want you to be carefulâŚâ
âItâs important to me that youâre safeâŚâ
Is this what they were talking about? Is this why Jungwon was so angry with Jay for bringing you here? Not because he didnât want you to see a boxing gym, but because thatâs not what this place is at all?
The more you mull it over, the more it starts to make sense.Â
Still submerged in darkness, you decide that the only way youâll confirm anything is by moving forward. Slowly, you reach for your phone, turning the flashlight on its lowest setting.Â
Keeping it clutched in your hands in case you need to shut it off at a momentâs notice, you begin to walk, descending down the staircase.Â
After two flights on uneven steps, you start to see a light in the distance, a clue that youâre getting closer. And with every step you take, the voices only get louder and louder.Â
On the third landing, youâre given two choices: continue down the stairs or move into a hallway that stretches to your left. Deciding that staying as far away from the crowd as you can is likely your best option, you opt for the hallway.Â
Youâve barely walked a few feet when you nearly stumble into a wall. Itâs not the end though â just a corner. The light from your phone confirms that the hallway takes a sharp turn.Â
Following it, you come to another door. This time, youâre even more hesitant. There could be people on the other side.Â
Pressing your ear against it, the only thing you hear is the same scrambled shouting, the same boisterous crowd. Itâs hard to tell for certain, but you donât hear anything that makes you think thereâs someone waiting on the other side.Â
Slowly, carefully, you begin to open the door.Â
The sudden light is nearly blinding. It takes your eyes a moment to adjust, but once they do, your mouth drops open.Â
You were right, thankfully. The small room you enter is mercifully empty.Â
But itâs also lined with windows that give you a direct view into the room one level beneath you. Jaw dropping, you take in the scene below.Â
There must be at least five hundred people crammed into the stands that encircle the room. All of them are on their feet, shouting jeers and cheering with equal fervor.Â
And in the center of it all is a boxing ring. On the side that faces you, bold letters give it a name:
King Pen.
Itâs empty for now, but youâre only left wondering for another handful of seconds before a middle aged man steps into the center, microphone in hand. With an open palm, he gestures towards the crowd, commanding them to listen.Â
Whoever he is, he holds weight here. With the flick of his hand, literally, the room all but falls silent.Â
âLadies and gentlemen,â he says into the microphone. âNext up is the fight weâve all been waiting for.â
He pauses for a moment as more cheers and shouts fill the room.Â
âI hope your bets are placed, because these two always manage to surprise us. Please welcome our first challenger to the ring. Back to the city for the first time in years, itâs Jaan!â
But itâs not Jaan. Or at least, itâs not someone you know as Jaan.Â
No, itâs Jay. The same Jay that took you to an art exhibition and convinced you to try sweet coffee instead of your usual bitter black. The same Jay that flirts with you over text and whispers sweet nothings in your ear after a long day of work.Â
The same Jay that lied to you about why he had to cancel your date tonight.Â
The crowd has barely died down when the man presses on, âAnd your second challenger, the reigning champion⌠Please give your warmest welcome for Jakah!âÂ
The alias booms around you, echoing through the room. And of course itâs him. Of course Jakah, the reigning champion, is someone you used to think would have trouble hurting a fly.Â
Someone you thought embodied gentleness, patience, with every ounce of his being.Â
But no matter how badly you want to deny it, no matter how much the cognitive dissonance wars inside your brain, itâs him.Â
Itâs Jungwon who enters from the other side of the ring.Â
âNow, remember,â the man addresses the audience again. âCheer for your favorite. Scream at his opponent. And donât forget our golden rule: in the Kingâs Pen,â he begins.Â
âAnything goes,â the audience shouts back in unison.Â
Anything? Your heart falls from your throat to the pit of your stomach. As if it wasnât bad enough that Jay is here, that he lied to you, that heâs fighting Jungwon.Â
Taking a closer look at the ring beneath you, you notice the odd, rust colored stains that nearly cover it.Â
Blood, you realize after a sickening moment. The ring is covered in blood stains.Â
It makes sense, suddenly, why King Pen didnât appear in any search results. Why this entire place is completely soundproofed. Why Jungwon wanted you to stay far, far away.Â
This isnât a sparring match. Itâs a duel.Â
One where, like the audience just affirmed, anything goes.Â
As the man steps out from the center of the ring, Jay and Jungwon start to circle each other, fists raised in anticipation.Â
Even from a distance, you can see the tight coil of muscle in their shoulders, the way their bodies prepare for the inevitable fight.Â
âSay it with me now, folks,â the man booms, now standing on the side of the ring.Â
âThree.â Jayâs eyes narrow, fists rising an inch higher.
âTwo.â Jungwon flicks a stray strand of hair out of his eyes.Â
âOne.â You feel your last bit of breath whoosh out from your lungs.Â
âFight.â
Itâs like a dance, you think. A sickening, deadly dance that you canât look away from no matter how much you want to.Â
Despite your lack of knowledge, it quickly becomes apparent to you why this is the main event of the evening.Â
Where Jay is sheer, brutal strength, Jungwon is all evasion. He moves with the agility of an athlete, the lightness of a dancer.Â
He makes it look easy, the way he ducks beneath carefully timed swings and always seems to predict what Jay will do next.Â
But even dancers stumble sometimes.Â
You canât help it, the gasp that slips out when one of Jayâs punches lands true. You watch, horrified, as Jungwon staggers backwards, adding to the crimson stains on the floor of the ring.Â
Slightly dazed, he brings the back of his palm to the broken skin along his cheekbone, assessing the damage. When he brings it in front of his face, it comes back red.Â
Jay takes no pity on his opponent. Following his retreat, he aims for another bruising blow. This one hits Jungwon just beneath the ribs. Echoes around the makeshift stadium with a dull thud you hear even from your hiding place.Â
Again, Jungwonâs sure steps falter.Â
The rise and fall of his chest is rapid as he struggles to catch his breath. But when he looks up again, thereâs a fire in his eyes. Pure, unadulterated hatred that permeates the scant distance between him and his rival and sends a shiver down the length of your spine.Â
Not one to take things lying down, Jungwon takes advantage of Jayâs momentary lapse in focus.Â
His fist connects with the bridge of Jayâs nose with a sickening crunch. Head falling backward, the immediate flow of blood is gruesome. It drip down his chin, landing on the floor beneath him in an arrhythmic pattern.Â
Thereâs little grace to it now. Gone are the remaining fragments of inhibition as both boys put away their judgment and leave the rest to instinct.Â
Itâs messy, sloppy, angry.Â
Theyâre so close; itâs hard to tell which blows come from who. Hard to tell whose wounds are multiplying faster, whose blood is falling more freely.Â
And then, just when you think you canât stomach watching any longer, itâs done.Â
Itâs so fast. You canât quite be sure how it happens. But one second, both boys are standing, and the next, Jay is flat on his back, Jungwon hovering above him.Â
Still, the crowd is silent. Everyoneâs eyes are on the ring.Â
Jay is down. Trapped beneath his opponent, itâs clear to you who the victory is. But then you remember the words the crowd chanted at the beginning of the fight.Â
Anything goes.Â
Your stomach twists with nausea.Â
Even from here, you can see the tension that still strains the muscles along Jungwonâs back. The rigidity of his shoulders.Â
For a moment, you think heâs going to do it. To strike again, even though victory is already in his hands.Â
You see his lips move with words you canât hear. Beneath him, Jay remains stoic. Thereâs still fight in his eyes, even if itâs been drained from his body.Â
Jungwonâs mouth moves again.Â
This time, Jay nods. Itâs a tiny movement, barely perceptible. But itâs enough.Â
With an agitated flair, Jungwon stands again.Â
Blood is still dripping from his face, his knuckles. Sweat covers his body, drenches his hair.Â
Heâs won, yes, but the expression on his features is not one of satisfaction.Â
ARound him, the audience begins to boo, throwing jeers and insults like extra change. They were hoping for more than a fight. They were hoping for cruelty Jungwon isnât willing to give.Â
Without a second glance back, he turns and leaves the ring.Â
Still reeling, you nearly jump out of your skin when the handle on the door to your room begins to turn.Â
If you had a stronger grip on your sense of logic, you would do something. Try to hide. Scramble to think of an excuse for your presence.Â
The door opens before you do any of it.Â
âOh,â Heeseung says, eyes widening as he finds the room already occupied. And then it registers with him who exactly is already occupying said room. âOh,â he repeats. âHe is not going to be happy about this.â
âŚ..
Heeseungâs fist rings out against the door in three sharp raps. For a moment, silence is the only response. And thenâ
âIâm not in the mood.â
âUh,â Heeseung glances at you sideways. âI think you should open the door anyway.âÂ
âIâm serious.â Jungwonâs voice is pure ire. âIâm not doing this with you right now, Heeseung.â
âOkay,â Heeseung concedes. âBut I really still think you should open theââ
âWhat?â
Jungwonâs glare lands on his friend before his gaze slides to you. Immediately, his features slacken in surprise. âOh.â
And itâs stupid, foolish, naive. But the first thing you feel when you see him standing on his own two feet is pure, unadulterated relief.Â
Heâs injured. Itâs obvious from the wounds that line his face and the way his breath is still shallow in his chest. But heâs okay.Â
Heâs here and heâs in front of you and heâs okay.Â
âYeah,â Heeseung repeats. âLike I said, I think you shouldââ
âGo away.â
âWhat?â Heeseung balks. âWhere am I supposed toââ
âAway,â Jungwon reiterates, eyes still locked on you.Â
Heeseung is sulking, but he follows Jungwonâs command regardless. And then itâs just the two of you.Â
You both speak at the same time, near identical questions overlapping with one another.Â
âWhat the hell are you doing?â
âWhy are you here?â
A beat of silence passes. Another.Â
As if he is suddenly remembering your surroundings, Jungwon looks around you, a new urgency in his gaze. You donât know what kind of consequences places like this carry, but common sense tells you itâs best that youâre not seen. âCome in,â he opens the door a bit wider, giving you space to enter.Â
You shouldnât. He hasnât lied to you, not exactly, but itâs not like heâs been particularly honest either.Â
And coworkers donât owe you the truth or the nitty gritty details of their lives, but itâs been a long time since Jungwon and you treated one another like coworkers. No matter what you want to call it, the relationship that youâve built between conversations in the workroom and email threads and kind gestures in the office feels a lot more like friendship. Or at the very least some iteration of it.Â
So youâre not mad at him for keeping this from you, not really.Â
But other emotions are swirling in your gut, and you donât know what to do with them. Most of all, youâre worried. For his safety. For his wellbeing. For him.Â
Obeying his command, you step inside the small room. You hear the door click shut behind you.Â
Looking around, there isnât much to see. Itâs a locker room, essentially, designed for one person. Thereâs a counter to your left with a small first aid kit and a chair in the far corner of the room.Â
A gym bag, Jungwonâs you assume, rests next to it.Â
And, of course, thereâs the two of you.Â
Glancing up, you take a look at him. A long, real look.Â
Heâs wearing the same clothes he entered the ring with. A white athletic shirt that moves with him, gives his long, lean muscles space to move. To flex and contract with every shallow breath.Â
Heâs still just as gorgeous as always, even with a split lip and a nasty cut that spans the length of his temple. Even with the bruising thatâs already begun to discolor his near flawless skin.Â
Sighing, you nod towards the chair behind him. âSit down.â
âWhat?â Confusion draws his brow downward, and he hisses in pain at the movement.Â
âDonât tell me your illegal fights have ruined your hearing too.â
âWhat? No.â Jungwon shakes his head. âMy hearing is perfectly fine, I mean.â
âThen sit.â You glance pointedly at the chair again. âDown.â
This time, he doesnât try to argue. You watch from your periphery, frowning at the slight limp in his left leg as he walks toward the chair, easing himself down.Â
Reaching for the first aid kit on the counter, you bring it with you as you move across the room.Â
Your steps are slow and even. They carry you all the way to the far corner, until youâre forced to stop.Â
Standing above Jungwon, your lips pull into a tight line as you begin to assess his injuries. Hesitation might be wise, but you canât find any of it left in you.Â
Your movements are sure, gentle but firm. Hands sliding to his jaw, you adjust his face slightly, turning the gash on his temple towards the light. Itâs an echo of the way he examined you in the workroom, long weeks ago.Â
This time, itâs him thatâs easily manipulable underneath your touch.Â
âWhat are you doing?â He whispers.Â
Your hesitation is gone, but so is your patience. âDonât talk.â Jungwonâs lips fall shut. Heâs pliant in your hands as you adjust him.Â
Reaching for the kit, the first thing you pull out is antiseptic cream.Â
âThis might sting,â you whisper.Â
âItâs okay,â he assures you. But he hisses at the contact all the same. âDoesnât even hurt,â he lies through gritted teeth, forcing a smile.Â
If heâs trying to be funny, his attempt at humor is lost on you.Â
Gaze still narrowed in concentration, you busy yourself by cleaning the worst of his wounds first.Â
As you move from his forehead to his lip, you donât think you imagine the sharp inhale he draws between parted lips.Â
âIt stings?â You ask him.Â
âJust a bit.â You feel the ghost of his whisper against your fingertips.Â
You look up for a moment, and you find his gaze already locked on yours. It takes a significant portion of your willpower to stop yourself from reaching up to brush his hair from his eyes.Â
It feels wrong, even if you call it friendship. Even if you and Jay never discussed exclusivity.Â
Your heart is fluttering, and thatâs what makes it all seem so illicit.Â
With no small amount of effort, you force your eyes down again. Standing above him, your fingers move from his face to his hands. His wrist clasped in your fingers, you sink to your knees in front of him.Â
Jungwon swallows audibly.Â
Pulling his hand closer, you examine the series of shallow cuts, of angry, violet bruises that line his knuckles. With another long sigh, you reach for the cream again, applying it generously before carefully wrapping it in a bandage.Â
After giving the same attention to the other hand, you lean back, assessing your handiwork.
For a moment, neither of you moves. Youâre still kneeling in front of him. He still sits above you.Â
And then, after a breath of hesitation, one carefully wrapped hand finds its way to your face.Â
Gently, with a touch so light you hardly feel it, he lays his open palm against the expanse of your cheek. Cradles it. Â
He whispers your name, and you canât find it in you to look up.Â
âI donâtâŚâ you trail off, not sure how to communicate the swirling mix of emotions simmering just beneath the surface. âI donât want to be mad at you.â
âBut you are,â Jungwon assumes. He accepts it, and he doesnât let it change anything. His hand is steady against your cheek. His thumb starts to draw small circles, just under your earlobe.Â
âIâm not,â you correct. âBut this isnâtâŚâ again your words die. Itâs frustrating, the way you feel like you can never be straightforward with him. The way you always feel like you have to navigate through subtext and half truths and partial reveals just to get a point across.Â
âBut you donât owe me anything right now.â
His thumb stills against your skin.Â
âWeâre coworkers,â you continue. âWeâre just coworkers, so it doesnât matter if you fight in illegal boxing matches. You donât have to worry about what I think of it, and I donât have to be mad at you for it.â
You do look up at him, begging for a bit of his understanding. âYou can be evasive with your excuses and reject all of my invitations. We can meet by chance in the workroom on Monday afternoons, and none of it ever has to mean anything. Neither of us ever has to feel anything about it.â
âBut,â Jungwon whispers.Â
âYeah,â you nod. Your cheek slides easily against the soft skin of his bruised hand. âBut.â
Jungwon is silent for a moment, eyes darting between both of yours. Then, tentatively, he asks, âAre you mad at him?â
He doesnât say Jayâs name, but the venom he wraps around the word is all you need to know who heâs talking about.
You shake your head, eyelids fluttering. âWeâre coworkers.â You reiterate the boundaries heâs always maintained with you. âYou donât get to ask me that.â
Jungwonâs hand slides to your neck, thumb tracing the length of your jaw now. âAnd if I want to?â
You shake your head again. You can only give him so much on a silver platter. If he wants anything to change, heâll have to find a bit of his own bravery. âThatâs not the question you need to ask me.â Looking up at him, you draw another line. âAnd not tonight.â
Youâve both been through enough. Heightened emotions rarely lead to good decisions, and the last thing you want is his indecisiveness. His impulsivity.
Quietly, you stand, his hand falling from your face as you rise to full height in front of him.Â
His eyes look wider from this angle, from above. Even shinier than usual. No matter how many boundaries you draw or how many ways you deny him, heâs someone thatâs hard to say no to. Hard to walk away from.Â
Steeling the last remnants of your resolve, you manage to look him in those dark, sparkling eyes when you tell him, âGood night, Jungwon.â
âGood night, ___,â he whispers to your retreating silhouette.Â
Closing the door behind you, you barely have a moment to catch your breath before a voice interrupts your wandering thoughts.Â
âYou like him, donât you?â
The gasp you give is out of shock more than anything. And the âWhat?â you ask is a knee jerk reaction.
 âYang.â Jay materializes from his position in the darkness, jerking his chin towards the door behind you. âYou like him.â
Immediately, you find yourself on the defense. Even if youâre just delaying the inevitable, itâs cagey when you tell him. âWe work together.â
Jay just looks at you. âMy favorite color is green.â
âWhat?â
âSorry,â Jayâs tone is flat. Heâs not annoyed, but heâs coming close to it. âI thought we were stating irrelevant facts.âÂ
With a sigh, he drags an open palm down his face. âI know you work together. But you like him, too," he sighs again, reading the horror in your expression. Mostly due to the fact that he read you like an open book when you thought you were keeping your feelings close to the chest. âIâm not⌠mad. It sucks, but itâs not like I was honest with you either. Iâm sorry, by the way, for lying about tonight.â
Itâs too much to process, all at once. Your head is swimming and your heart is pounding.Â
It was a shitty thing to do, yes, butâÂ
âYou donât have to say sorryââ
Again, Jay doesnât let you finish. âIâm not saying sorry because I have to. Iâm saying it because I am. I like you.â Heâs so honest. So blunt with his feelings. He makes things so easy. âI like spending time with you. I think we both know thatâs not enough anymore,â he casts another meaningful glance at the door behind him. The one that leads to Jungwonâs locker room, âbut itâs still true.â
âIâŚâ you trail off, unsure what to say. Heâs not wrong. In fact, heâs all but hit the nail right on the head. With deadly accuracy.Â
Heeseung was the one that found you, that brought you to Jungwon, but still.Â
Itâs not Jay that you checked in on fist. Itâs not Jay whose wounds you just cleaned. Itâs not Jay who youâre thinking about now.Â
Like he said, it sucks, but itâs still true.Â
Jay has bruises, too. Has cuts that line his knuckles and his jaw. Heâs here because heâs part of an illegal underground boxing ring. He lied to you about it.Â
But you just⌠youâre not mad at him about it. And thatâs the final nail in the coffin.Â
Jay just looks at you for a moment longer. For the third time, he sighs. âYouâre really gonna make me do this part too?â He inhales, steeling his resolve. âOkay, then. ___, I think we shouldââ
âI think we should stop seeing each other,â you finish for him. You can give him at least that much. âI had a great time getting to know you, but I think we want different things right now. I wish you all the best. Really, youâre a great guy, Jay.â
He is.Â
âI mean it.â
You do.Â
âThank you, ___.â
He means it too.Â
When Jay walks away from you, his shoulders are straight and his head is high.Â
You feel a lot of things, as you watch his retreating figure.Â
But no matter how deep you search, regret isnât one of them.Â
âŚ..
Monday morning brings with it a distinct sort of dread.Â
Partly because it marks the beginning of another long week. Mostly because going back to the office means potentially seeing him.Â
If youâre honest with yourself, youâre not sure if youâre ready for that. If youâre ready to face the feelings youâve been forcing down for months and the potential fallout they may bring with them.Â
So, when you open your inbox first thing in the morning, an unreasonable request from your supervisor isnât the thing youâre most afraid of finding.Â
Jungwon, however, isnât planning to stick to old routines. When he seeks you out, he does it in person.Â
Graceâs eyes are anywhere but on her own work when he walks through the door of the marketing department half past ten.Â
â___,â he breathes.Â
The wounds on his face are already fading, hardly even noticeable. You wish you could say the same for the turmoil raging inside of you. You canât decide if you want to throw your arms around his neck or tell him to fuck off.Â
In the end, you just look at him blankly.Â
âCan weâŚâ he trails off, visibly frustrated. He isnât sure how to do this either. âCan you help me with something? In the workroom. I think the printer is acting up again.â
The printer is fine. You used it five minutes ago.Â
But heâs not asking you to help him with work or the printer or anything else. Heâs asking for a bit of your time, a fraction of your understanding.Â
Itâs messy. It has so much potential for heartbreak, for complication.Â
But heâs here and heâs looking at you like your answer means the world to him. Like he might forget how to breathe if you donât say yes.Â
So, with a rising bout of uncertainty, you tell him, âLetâs go take a look at it.â
The printer, just as you suspected, is in perfect working order. Jungwon doesnât even spare it a second look.Â
Instead, he closes the door to the workroom behind you. And then he says, âI started boxing when I was a kid. I think I was eight, nine maybe.â
âWhat are youââ
âJust listen,â Jungwon begs. âPlease.â
You want to protest. Youâre not sure why, but the urge is strong. But after a moment of warring with yourself, you finally nod, giving him permission to continue.Â
âIt was just a hobby. Something to keep me busy on long afternoons when both of my parents were working in the restaurant my family owned. But I kept at it, and they could see how much I enjoyed it. By the time I was ten, my mom enrolled me in actual classes.â
Jungwon smiles, reminiscing on the tidbits of a happy childhood. But then his smile starts to falter. âA few months later, my grandpa died. It wasnât a surprise exactly, but it did have some unexpected consequences on the business. My family started to struggle. With money, more than anything.â
He sighs, and your heart hurts for a past version of him, too young to make sense of all of the sudden changes in his life. âI had to quit taking lessons. I kept practicing on my own, though. And when I started middle school, there was a free boxing club I joined. I met a lot of my friends there. Heeseung, who you met the other night, along with a few others. I also met Jay.â
Jungwonâs lips pull into a line. âI didnât hate him. Not exactly. He was nice enough, and we had a lot in common. But he had everything that I wanted. Money, mostly. His family never had to worry about it. He could take private lessons and always had all the nicest gear. He didnât flaunt it, but I noticed. And I envied him for it.â
Looking back at you, he continues, âHeeseung was the one that found the King Pen. He was like me, in a way. His family didnât come from money. We were young, too young, but we were good. We made them money, so they let us fight. Jay found out and wanted in too. It didnât matter that he didnât need the prize money. He just wanted to prove that he was better than us. That he was the best. It was me and him in my very first championship fight. He won, and I hated him for it.â
The ring, you realize. Jayâs ring that he dropped in your car. It was a championship ring.Â
Jungwon looks down at his hands. The bandages that you put there. âHe moved away once high school started. We didnât keep in direct contact or anything, but I always heard about him. Jay and his international boxing titles. Jay and his new sponsorship deal with a major boxing gym. It just added fuel to the fire that was already there. Made me resent him more, even if it wasnât his fault.â
No matter how you spin it, you canât imagine any of that was easy to deal with. Especially as a teenager.Â
âWith him gone, though, I started to make real money fighting. Good money. I lied to my parents and told them I got a part time job. Moving cargo so that they wouldnât be too suspicious when I came home with bruises.â
Jungwon flexes his fingers. âBoxing became my saving grace. I could give a good chunk of my earnings to my family, and the rest of it, I saved. It put me through university. Let me earn my programming degree.â
You understand him a bit more, then. Why he never seemed annoyed by his job. Why even things like jammed printers never seemed to get to him. Heâs thankful for where he is. Has nothing but gratitude for his job when he earned it with years of his own blood, sweat, and tears.Â
âI have a steady income now, but itâs just⌠hard, I guess. To let that part of me go. And if Iâm honest, part of me has always been afraid too. I mean, my parents had a steady income until they didnât, you know? I like knowing that even if something happens here, Iâll still be able to support myself. And them.â
It makes sense. It does.Â
âAnd then Jay came back.â Jungwon scoffs. âHeâd barely been in town for a full twenty-four hours when he showed up at Kangâs with all of his fancy gear and asked to be added to the roster for the next round of fights. And then he showed up there with you and I⌠I thought I was actually going to lose it.â
Even now, Jungwonâs shoulders are visibly tense. âThe actual gym is usually fine, safe for outsiders, but still. He shouldnât have risked your safety like that. He should have known better. And IâŚâ Jungwon trails off again.Â
You donât think youâre imagining the slight tinge of pink that starts to color his cheekbones.
âI was already having a bad enough time with the fact that you were seeing someone. When it turned out to be him, I just⌠Well, you know.â
Jungwon takes a deep breath in, releases a long exhale.Â
âI donât like making bets, and I donât like situations I canât predict. Things I donât have control over. I guess thatâs part of the reason why I always liked boxing so much. In the ring, I feel like I have a say in what happens. That even if I lose, itâs because I didnât move fast enough. I didnât think quick enough. Things I have control over. Things I can get better at.â
Jungwon looks at you. âI hate guessing. I hate having to wonder. I like sure things.âÂ
His chest is rising and falling a little faster now. Your breath is just as shallow.Â
âWhat are you saying?â you ask him.Â
âIâm saying that I donât just want to be coworkers with you. I want you to be mad at me for fighting in illegal underground boxing matches.â Jungwonâs gaze is imploring, pleading for your understanding as his eyes search yours. âI want you to call me when the printer jams and when you have a hard day and when you want someone to go to a stupid work event with you on a Friday night.âÂ
He takes a step closer to you, and you feel your spine press against the door of the workroom.Â
âI want you to be a sure thing,â he breathes, âeven if everything about you â the way I feel about you, the thoughts I have about you, the things I want to do to you â have always felt out of my control.â
âOh.â Your voice is small. Your mouth is dry. Caged in against the door, words are suddenly a hard thing to come by.Â
âOh,â Jungwon echoes. âIs that a yes?â
Heâs even closer now. Nose brushing against yours, he interlaces the fingers of his less injured hand with yours, reaching up until your hands are intertwined above your head.Â
âNo,â you shake your head.Â
âMm,â Jungwon hums, and you feel the vibration travel the length of your spine, settling somewhere deep, just beneath your navel. His lips brush against the corner of your mouth when he asks, âItâs a no, then?â
Again, you shake your head. Trapped in his embrace, the movement is tiny, restricted. Sends goosebumps scattering across your skin everywhere the two of you are touching.Â
âAn oh is just an oh,â you tell him. âThis is a yes.âÂ
There isnât any distance to close. Just pressure to add. He accepts it willingly, even if the sudden contact against the still broken skin of his bottom lip has him releasing a hiss through his teeth.Â
Itâs a discomfort he gets over quickly. His other hand, the one not currently tangled with yours, relocates to the curve of your jaw before heâs doubling down, pain all but forgotten as his lips part against yours.Â
A repeated motion. A rhythm thatâs stilted at first but starts to feel natural the longer you continue.Â
Over and over. Again and again until the action starts to feel useless. Until youâre not quite sure where his breath ends and yours begin.Â
Youâre in the office workroom, pressed against the door, and the printer is starting to beep in protest.Â
Youâre sure youâll be thoroughly embarrassed when you inevitably leave long minutes later with mussed hair and swollen lips and a certain programmer trailing behind you that canât contain his self-satisfied smile.Â
But for now, you get what he means. It feels good. It feels like relief, to finally know where you stand with him.Â
So instead of worrying about what your supervisor will think of your mussed collar and smudged lipstick, you pull him down a little firmer by the back of the neck, fingers tangling in the hair along his nape.Â
You sigh into his mouth, and the fervor he returns with leaves you well and truly breathless.Â
And for once, it feels like a sure thing.Â
âŚ..
epilogueÂ
Jungwon: SOS
Jungwon: Babyyyyyyyy
Jungwon: I know youâre reading my messagesÂ
Jungwon: PLEASE ___ I really need your help
You: Iâm BUSY what do you need
Jungwon: The printer is jammed again
You: And what do you want me to do about that? Call maintenance
Jungwon: Oh pleaseÂ
Jungwon: Last time I called maintenance they sent a guy that couldnât tell A4 from A3 this is not the job for them
Jungwon: Plus they donât have the magic touch like you
You: Literally what are you talking about
You: The last time I tried to fix the printer, I broke it so bad it was out of commission for two whole weeks
You: The entire floor was mad at me
You: I had to buy Grace coffee every day for TWO WEEKS
Jungwon: PLEASEEEEEE
Jungwon: Just try once and if it doesnât work Iâll call maintenance
Jungwon: I promise
You: âŚ
You: FINE
You: On my way
Tucking your phone back into your pocket, you sigh. The workroom door opens with little resistance, but as soon as you step inside, you frown.Â
Jungwon, for starters, is nowhere to be seen.Â
And the printer, at least from first impressions, appears to be working just fine. Completely jam-free.
Youâre not left in the dark for long. A moment later, the door opens behind you.Â
Tumbling in like an overexcited kitten, your boyfriend looks all too enthused to be dealing with a supposed jammed printer.Â
Gesturing towards the machine in question, you frown at him. âWhat were you talking about? The printer is perfectly fââ
He cuts you off with the press of his lips against your own, pushing you backwards until you run into the printer, spine arching against the copier tray.Â
âJungwon,â you protest once he finally lets you up for air. âItâs like you want HR to start a case against us. You have got to stop doing that.â
âDoing what?â He feigns innocence, even as he leans in again for another long kiss.Â
âMm,â you mumble, breaking free again. âYou know exactly what Iâm talking about. Faking printer emergencies as an excuse to make out. Weâre at work.â
Jungwon leans back, but the only thing he uses the space for is to let himself scan you from head to toe. Biting his bottom lip, he runs a set of fingers through the hair that falls across his forehead. âYou know, youâre a really terrible liar.â
âIâm not lyââ
âIf you actually wanted me to stop, you wouldnât fall for it every.â He presses a kiss to the tip of your nose. âSingle.â The top of your cheekbone. âTime.â The corner of your mouth. Â
And you hate to admit it, but he kind of has you there.Â
âWhatever.â You pout, but he just uses it as an excuse to plant another long kiss on your pursed lips. âIâm serious, Jungwon,â you tell him, even if youâre just as breathless as he is, despite the fact that youâre actively pulling him in by the back of his neck. âThis has to be the last time.â
âMm,â he smiles against your lips. âSure thing, ___.â
âŚ..
outtake â seven months ago.
The tinted window of Jungwonâs secondhand car is hardly an ideal mirror, but heâll have to make it work.Â
Giving himself a final once over, he straightens his already immaculate tie. Tugs at the collar of his button down shirt so that it lays just a little bit nicer, the edges of the folds just a fraction of a millimeter sharper.Â
Bending slightly, he smooths down his hair, pushing it away from his eyes. Catching his reflection again, he suddenly has second thoughts about the version of himself that he sees.Â
Bleaching his hair had seemed like a good â no, great â idea a few weeks ago. But now, dressed in business casual and about to begin his first day at a new job, doubts start to swirl through Jungwonâs mind.Â
What if they donât think the blonde is professional enough? What if it breaks some kind of unspoken dress code?
He knows it doesnât break the actual, company mandated dress code. Mostly because heâs already read through the handbook.Â
Twice.Â
With annotations.Â
Frowning slightly, Jungwon tilts his head to the side. Heâs gotten pretty good with concealer, but thereâs still a faint purplish tint that sits just along the edge of his jaw.Â
It takes a decent amount of effort not to wince at the memory. Sunghoon had gotten him good that day.Â
Jungwon forces his shoulders to relax. Forces himself to take one big breath in. Release it out slowly.Â
He has no reason to panic. He went through the same, brutal rounds of interviews as everyone else and was deemed to be the most qualified candidate. He graduated summa cum laude in the same field heâll be employed in now.Â
And itâs not like anyoneâs going to be looking at his face close enough to notice any slight discoloration. Or, at least, he doesnât think they will.Â
To be honest, heâs not really sure how this whole thing works. Office jobs, no matter how many online forums heâs scoured and articles heâs read, are still a bit of a mystery to him.Â
He hates it. Hates feeling out of his depth and ill prepared. Hates knowing that heâll have to ask too many questions and stumble through tasks until he gets the basics down.Â
But part of him is excited too.Â
He did it. Standing in the parking lot of an otherwise rather unremarkable company, it hits him all at once.Â
He actually fucking did it.Â
All those nights in the ring. Every bruise, every scar, every drop of blood. Every saved penny, every skipped opportunity.Â
They landed him here. An 8 to 5 office job that isnât flashy or anything special from the outside, but to him, means the world.Â
Heâll have it all: a steady salary, a place to be in the mornings, coworkers to notice when heâs not around. Itâs not much, but itâs his.Â
So, with one last deep inhale, Jungwon turns away from his car window and tracks a steady path on even footsteps towards the front door.Â
And a handful of hours later, when Terry from accounting is still talking his ear off about his sonâs latest hockey match in the doorway of the staff kitchen, Jungwonâs heart gives an unsteady lurch.Â
âHey, Terry,â you nod in acknowledgement, entering the kitchen in search of an early afternoon refill for your empty coffee mug. âHey, oh.â Your eyes meet his, lips parting. Your words die when you realize you donât know what to call him. When you realize youâve never actually seen him before.Â
And itâs not like Jungwon has never seen a pretty girl before, but â oh.Â
Oh.Â
Dressed in a rather simple, work approved ensemble, hair loose around your face, thereâs nothing specific that he can pinpoint. All Jungwon knows is that thereâs something about you that makes him want to keep looking.Â
âJungwon,â he supplies, a bit breathlessly.Â
Behind him, Terry is still regaling the details of his kidâs game-winning goal.Â
Eyes locked on him, a beat of heavy silence passes. And then â
âHi, Jungwon.âÂ
Your eyes. He thinks it must be your eyes. Or maybe your lips. The delicate curve of your cheekbone. His gaze canât decide where to land.Â
âHi,â he manages.Â
Eyes sliding over his shoulder to Terry, you release a small, amused breath. âHey, Terry?â
Stopping mid sentence, the middle aged man turns to you. âOh, hi, ____. How are you?â
___. Jungwon thinks it suits you. A pretty name for a pretty girl.Â
âJust fine, thanks.â You flash him a quick smile. Just a bare hint, and Jungwon feels his knees getting a little wobbly beneath him. âBut I was wondering if you could help me with something.â
âOf course,â Terry nods a little too enthusiastically. Fifteen years at the same company, and heâs the kind of person that still jumps at the opportunity to be needed. Helpful. Jungwon thinks itâs kind of sweet, even if he wishes the manâs gift for brevity in storytelling could be a bit more apparent.Â
âYou know the printer in the workroom?â
Terry nods.Â
âItâs jammed again,â you frown, the slightest hint of a pout pulling at your lips. Jungwon canât quite find it in himself to look away from the movement. âDo you think you could take a look at it for me?â
Terry beams. âOf course! Iâd be happy to.âÂ
And then itâs just the two of you.Â
âHe means well.â You smile again, softer this time. Like youâre discussing an inside joke only the two of you know about.Â
Jungwon is suddenly finding his breath a difficult thing to maintain.Â
âDoes the printer do that a lot?â He finally manages to ask. âJam, I mean.â
âAll the time.â You roll your eyes. âYouâd think a company raking in this much profit would have the cash to spare on a new machine, but no. This entire floor is just ill fated to sufferâ Thereâs an air of humor to your words, a slight hint of teasing, even if Jungwon thinks thereâs an undercurrent of truth to your words.Â
You smile again. Teeth tugging at your bottom lip, Jungwon can only describe your expression as slightly devious. âItâs not jammed now, though.â
His brow furrows. âItâs not?â
You shake your head. âI was given the gory details of Terryâs sonâs soccer game yesterday. Trust me, I saved you a headache and an extra thirty minutes.â You wink at him, and Jungwon really, really hopes the sudden heat in his cheeks doesnât look as obvious as it feels.Â
âI think it was a hockey match, actually.â
âOh.â You pause for a moment, considering. âRight.â
A moment of silence passes. Another. Jungwon has never minded the quiet, but heâs not quite ready for this interaction to end. Suddenly, he feels like heâs scrambling for something to prolong it.Â
âThank you.â
Your brow furrows. âFor what.â
âThe extra thirty minutes and the absence of a headache.â Jungwon taps two fingers against his temple. âI appreciate it.â
âAh,â you smile, and this time itâs a bit brighter, wider. Jungwon, not for the first time today, thanks his lucky stars that he was accepted for this position. That it landed him here, sharing a staff kitchen with someone like you. âAnytime.â
He hopes you mean it.Â
And when you turn away from him a few moments later, original mission to refill your coffee remembered, Jungwon looks up at the ceiling with his eyes screwed shut and takes a long, much needed breath.Â
âJungwon,â you turn back. Luckily, heâs just returned to a more natural standing position.Â
âYeah?â
âItâs nice to meet you. Donât let this place get you down too quickly.â You wink again. Jungwon does his best to keep his features neutral. âIâll see you around, yeah?â
âYeah,â he agrees, even though youâve already turned back to the coffee machine. âSure thing, ___.â
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
note: and we're done! thank you for reading! and thank you for bearing with me and the fact that this unfortunately had to be split into two parts. I hope you enjoyed this story, and as always, I would love to hear any thoughts you have. all the best âĄ
the little reference at the end oh gosh I'm crying I didn't expect this to get emotional they're so in loveđđ pls this series was amazing pls don't die

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch ⢠No registration required ⢠HD streaming
sure thing â part one.
pairing: yang jungwon x f reader
genre: coworkers au, underground boxer jungwon
part one word count: 12.9k
warnings: swearing, descriptions/depictions of physical violence, blood and minor injuries, jealousy, a bit of a love triangle Iâm SORRY, blonde boxer jungwon because yes I think that does warrant a warning, I had to split this into 2 parts because post block limit got me everyone say BOOOOO TUMBLR!!!!!!
note: this is what happens when you watch the no doubt music video and then also listen to too much chase atlantic. ALSO let me duck before the sacred monsters readers start throwing tomatoes at me I PROMISE I am working on part 4 I just... had this idea and it would not leave me alone. but cheers to another fantastic enhypen release (daydream and no doubt are both on repeat for meeeeee) and to my first jungwon fic. enjoy!
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
An employee in the marketing department of a large company, your days are filled with poorly worded emails, unrealistic deadlines, and passive aggressive friendly reminders from your superiors. On a particularly awful afternoon, a chance encounter with a coworker from the programming department down the hall is the first thing to make you smile in weeks.
But the more you uncover about Yang Jungwon and his mysterious injuries, flimsy excuses, and always occupied Friday nights, the more you begin to realize that you really donât know him at all.
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
The printer is jammed.
It takes a very exaggerated eye roll and an embarrassing amount of self control to refrain from kicking the damn thing. Besides, youâre pretty sure your previous wording was too kind.Â
Because a more accurate depiction of the situation would be:
The printer is jammed. Again.Â
Youâre not sure which cruel deity is responsible for the creation of Monday afternoons, but youâre sure theyâre laughing at you now. Dressed in business casual and praying against all odds that the clock hanging on the office wall will start ticking a little faster, you almost wish the ground would open up and swallow you whole. Spare you from your miseryÂ
And itâs not like a jammed printer is the end of the world. From a logical, unbiased point of view, youâre sure itâs nothing but a small, easily solvable problem.Â
But itâs four pm on a Monday afternoon and youâve had back-to-back meetings since you clocked in at eight this morning. The only real break you had lasted twelve minutes. Most of which were spent dabbing coffee stains from your blouse after Terry from accounting knocked into you in the staff kitchen.Â
Your head is pounding and your feet are aching and your bladder is overly full and your left bra strap is starting to dig into your shoulder in a way that is entirely too overstimulating.Â
And you really, really just need this report to print.Â
After all, your boss made it very clear that you would not be clocking out for the day, no matter what hour of the evening it is, until said document is laid on his desk. Never mind the fact that you werenât made aware of this demand until a handful of hours ago.Â
So yeah, the printer jamming â again â does kind of feel like the end of the world.Â
The screen is still flashing with an angry reminder to fix the paper jam in Tray 2. The instructions are starting to blur a little as you furiously blink away hot tears.Â
You wonât cry at work. You wonât.
But your exhaustion is catching up with you, and the first thing it usually takes with it is your control over your emotions.Â
The more you try to will them away, the more insistently they want to escape.Â
Bent over the printer, youâre in the middle of trying to dislodge a particularly stubborn piece of A4 when the first tear finally does escape. It falls in a thick, wet train down the length of your cheek, settling for a moment at the base of your chin before dripping, a little pathetically, right onto the stack of papers in the printer tray.Â
Your hands go slack on the sheet youâre warring with.Â
For a moment, all you can do is sigh. Hang your head and hope some higher power takes pity on you.Â
Stressed, burnt out, overworked. This was not how you thought youâd be spending your early twenties. But a salary is a salary, and fighting with an inanimate object on the worst day of the week keeps your lights on and your stomach full.Â
Hunched over, youâre suddenly glad that the printer is kept in a separate room outside of the main office space. That there are no witnesses to your slightly pathetic meltdown.
Save for a few, itâs not like you care all that much about what your coworkers think of you. But the last thing you need to add to this day is a fresh bout of humiliation.Â
Just one more minute, you tell yourself. One more minute of silence before you pull yourself together and finish dislodging the stupid piece of paper.Â
It must be at least 4:10 by now, which means you have less than an hour to go. You can do it. You can. You just need one more minute of silenâ
âEverything okay?âÂ
The sudden intrusion is so startling that your head jerks up in a subconscious reaction. Only, of course, to be met with the open printer tray youâre currently trying to troubleshoot.Â
The clunk that echoes through the tiny printer room as your temple comes in direct contact with hard plastic is almost as loud as it is painful.Â
âAh,â you wince, hand instinctively flying to the side of your head.Â
âOh my god, Iâm so sorry, ____.â Youâre not sure if your hesitation comes from embarrassment or the fact that you head is still spinning. Either way, youâre slow to move as you look up at your sudden audience.Â
Over your shoulder, Yang Jungwon has nothing but apologies written all over his delicate features. Brow pulling into a concerned frown, heâs quick to kneel to your level.Â
If anyone was going to find you like this, you suppose youâre glad it was him. A recent hire fresh out of university, Jungwon has carved out a quiet kind of reputation for himself in the office.Â
His presence isnât commanding, but it is steady. The kind of person that you never see get worked up or angry or even annoyed no matter how many last minute deadlines are assigned or how many printers get jammed when he really needs to use them.Â
And from what youâve gathered, he mostly keeps to himself. Itâs not from a lack of effort on your coworkersâ behalf. You know firsthand that heâs been invited to multiple post work gatherings and weekend events.Â
His popularity doesnât exactly surprise you. Even with his quiet demeanor, he has a striking presence. One that makes you curious, leaves you wanting to know more.Â
Never mind the fact that heâs absolutely gorgeous.Â
Still, despite their efforts, you also know that heâs politely declined each and every invitation without ever giving any real explanation.Â
In all honesty, youâve always just assumed there was a girlfriend he was eager to run home to.Â
But even that is nothing more than a mindless assumption. After all, youâve only had a few interactions with him, and nothing beyond the typical small talk all office workers develop a talent for.Â
Even now, he makes the simple button down and slacks heâs wearing look like they came right from a runway.Â
Youâre not quite sure why, but it almost makes you want to cry harder.Â
At the very least, youâre pretty sure you donât need to worry about rumors of you having a minor meltdown in the printer room spreading through the office. Jungwon might be a hot topic of office gossip, but heâs not one to spread it.
âI am so sorry,â he repeats, âI didnât mean to startle you.â His words are spilling out a bit too fast, blurring into each other around the edges. âI just saw you in here, and I couldnât tell if you were okay or not, so I wanted toââ
âJungwon,â you interrupt. Thereâs no kind way of telling him that his rambling is only making your headache worse. That itâs only making your tears fall faster. Instead, you abet his misplaced guilt. âItâs okay. Iâm fine.â
A bit shakily, you muster up your most convincing smile. But your smudged mascara, slightly puffy eyelids, and still visible tear track suggest otherwise.Â
Jungwonâs brow just pulls together a little further. âAre you sure?â Heâs unconvinced. Taking a wary glance at the printer tray, he looks back to you with concern in his eyes. âThat sounded like it hurt.â
âReally,â you force another weak smile. âIâm sure.â
âCan I at least take a look at it?â Guilt is still written plain as day across his face.Â
Assuming heâs referring to the printer, you nod before taking one big scooch to the side. Within the confines of this tiny room, it only puts you closer to him.Â
And it takes less than a second for you to realize your assumption was wrong. Because Jungwon doesnât reach for that stupid piece of A4 still jammed inside Tray 2 or even the printer tray that just nearly concussed you.Â
No, instead, his long fingers trek a steady path towards your hand. The one that still rests against your temple. Gently, he pries it away, replacing it with his own careful touch.
Youâre all but immobile as gentle fingers press lightly against the side of your face, adjusting it slightly. His fingers are cool, soothing as he turns your injury towards the overhead light.Â
Pliant in his hands, itâs all you can do to watch as his brow furrows in concentration, eyes scanning over your skin. Taking the skin of your bottom lip between your teeth, you pray he doesnât notice the sudden heat in your cheeks.Â
From this angle, with this proximity, you can practically count his eyelashes. Theyâre long, you notice. Long and wispy where they frame his dark eyes.Â
âNo broken skin,â he finally asserts. You can feel his breath against your skin. It takes nearly all your concentration to suppress the shiver that threatens to trace your spine. âBut I wouldnât be surprised if it bruises. Thereâs a bit of swelling, too. Keep an eye on it these next few days, and let me know if it doesnât go down on its own.âÂ
Youâre not exactly sure if Jungwon â quiet, gentle Jungwon â would be the first person youâd go to for first aid advice, but you nod anyway.Â
And youâre not sure where it comes from, the sudden urge to cry again. But somewhere between the pain in your head and the soft probing of his fingers against your skin, emotions are starting to bubble beneath your stoic facade.Â
Itâs subtle, barely perceivable, but you can feel your bottom lip beginning to quiver.Â
Much to your unending humiliation, youâre not the only one who notices.Â
Youâre not sure how he does, but he does.Â
âHey,â Jungwon tries. His hand is still on your face. His voice is impossibly soft, and it only makes you want to cry harder. You feel like a skittish kitten heâs trying to lure in from a rainstorm.Â
His lips part as if heâs going to continue. They fall shut again before he can.Â
Something in his brow softens. Concern is replaced with empathy.Â
Hand falling back to his side, he suddenly changes the subject. âYouâre in the marketing department, right?â
Lips still trembling, you turn your eyes towards the floor before giving him a small nod. Â
From this angle, the only thing you see are his shoes. Standard leather work shoes, theyâre slightly scuffed where they rest against the carpet.Â
They still look formal, of course. Nothing that would raise any eyebrows in a professional setting. And from far away, youâre sure they appear pristine.Â
But from this close, you can make out all sorts of rough edges. Little marks and dents and scuffs that serve as evidence of where heâs been.Â
âWhy donât you head home for the day,â Jungwon suggests gently from above you. âIâll let your team and your supervisor know that youâre not feeling well.âÂ
You take a deep breath, do your best to make sure your voice is steady before you respond. Shaking your head, you point out, âItâs almost the end of the day anywayââ
âExactly,â Jungown nods, kind but firm. âThereâs nothing that canât wait until tomorrow.â
âActually,â you grimace, trying not to let the truth inspire another round of tears. âI need the report I was trying to print. I have to turn it in before I leave today.â
Thereâs a beat of silence. Youâre worried that Jungwon will keep offering you too much kindness, so you rush to fill it. âItâs fine, though. I think the paper jam is almost fixed, and I already sent the report to the printer, so Iâm sure it will come through in a minuteââ
âPerfect,â Jungwon interrupts again. âIâll take it to your boss, then. Alan, right? Iâve spoken with him before. Iâll also let him know that you went home for the day.â
âJungwon, you donât have toââ
âI know.â At the interruption, your eyes snap back to him. Thereâs an intensity in his eyes when you match his gaze. Something so sincere that itâs hard to look away. Even though you know your eyes are still shiny with tears you wish youâd hidden better. Even if the stress and exhaustion and weariness are probably written plain as day across your features.
âI know,â he repeats. âI want to. Go home and get some rest, okay?â
Itâs probably stupid, to agree so easily. But something in his eyes has you believing, even if just for a moment, that everything will be just fine if you do what he suggests. That all of your concerns and worries will work themselves out and youâll be able to come into the office tomorrow feeling refreshed for once. For the first time in a long time.Â
So you nod. You let him help you up off the floor and donât bother hiding your face as you wipe the last of your unshed tears from your eyelashes. It probably only smudges your mascara further, but you canât find it in yourself to care about that, either.Â
The printer is still jammed and your report isnât turned in and youâll have to walk past your entire team back to your desk to get your things on your way out.Â
But for this fleeting moment, those worries feel small. Distant. Manageable. Able to be tucked away and saved for later.Â
You still donât know much about Jungwon. The only knowledge you have comes from speculation and wishful thinking. But now, more than ever, you really wish you knew something of substance.Â
But you have no idea how to tell him that. Donât know if you even should. So instead, you say what you can.Â
âThank you, Jungwon.â
For a moment, all he does is smile. Itâs small, but it reaches his eyes. Makes them sparkle a little brighter.Â
His voice, like the rest of him, is gentle when he says, âSure thing, ___.â
âŚ..
Despite the fact that it accounts for roughly eighty percent of your job, you prefer to avoid your email inbox like the plague.Â
Most days, by the time you do get around to checking it, itâs already jam packed with unreasonable requests and last-minute changes and passive aggressive friendly reminders from your superiors.Â
When you sit down at your desk on Tuesday morning, youâre extra reluctant. After the printer fiasco yesterday, youâre feeling particularly sensitive to all of the potential bullshit. And you have the distinct feeling that a rather nasty message about leaving the office early unannounced is surely waiting for you.Â
But the inevitable can only be delayed so long. With a wince and a final swig of coffee, you muster the courage to give the mail icon on your desktop a double click.Â
The top of your inbox is filled with the usual nonsense. A request for a meeting tomorrow morning on a project idea youâve had finalized for months. An RSVP form for the optional, but highly encouraged, upcoming staff party. A reminder from your boss that final quarterly reports need to be submitted by Friday at the latest.Â
A few lines down, though, something out of the ordinary catches your eye. Checking the time stamp, you see that it was sent right as the day started.Â
From: [email protected]Â
Subject: Printer Issue Follow-Up
Contemplating for a moment, you frown. The first floor of Vesselsoft is no stranger to printer jams. Theyâre typical occurrences, not major problems to be resolved via email. You didnât think there was a printer issue to follow up on.Â
But itâs far more intriguing than anything else on your work account. So, ignoring all of the other messages, you open the email from Jungwon.Â
Good morning ____,Â
I hope youâre doing well. I wanted to let you know that the workroom printer jam has been fixed, and your report was delivered safe and sound yesterday evening. I also wanted to check in and see how your head is feeling.Â
Best,Â
Jungwon
You reread it. Once. Twice.Â
Itâs a simple message, all things considered. But it has you searching for subtext where there likely isnât any. If anything, this serves as a confirmation of what you already knew about Jungwon.Â
Heâs kind. Considerate. The type of person that would help you fix a jammed printer and check in on you the next morning. Right when he clocks in.Â
The type that could probably tell that your head was the least of your concerns yesterday, but still chooses to ask how youâre doing without drawing excess attention to it.Â
For a moment, you almost wish he would make a habit of attending after hours work events. You have the distinct feeling that sucking up to your superiors would be a little less awful if someone like him was around to do it with you.Â
From: You
Subject: Re: Printer Issue Follow-Up
Good morning Jungwon,Â
Thank you for resolving that printer issue! And thank you for checking in. My head is feeling much better today.Â
Thanks again,Â
____
After a final once over, you press the send button, watching as the animation shows the message flying out from your inbox.Â
You imagine it flying into his. Itâs subconscious, the way you start to picture what his face will look like when he sees it.Â
You know heâs in the programming department, which is on the same floor as your office. Honestly, youâre a bit surprised you haven't seen him around more.Â
Will he smile, you wonder. Will he have that same, gentle fondness in his eyes he seems to carry with him everywhere?
You donât get an answer to that particular question, but you do learn that Jungwon is an incredibly prompt communicator.Â
Itâs barely been ten minutes before your inbox is chiming again.Â
From: [email protected]Â
Subject: Re: Printer Issue Follow-Up
Sure thing, ___. Glad to hear it.Â
Jungwon
You canât hide the small smile that threatens to turn the corners of your lips upward. Itâs not like heâs done anything particularly groundbreaking. But even bits of kindness have become a bit of a rarity for you these days.
You canât think of anyone else in the office that would insist on sending you home thirty minutes early and offer to finish up your work for you. You canât think of anyone else who would have navigated yesterdayâs fiasco with as much gentle care as he did.
You canât remember the last time someone bothered to consider you. To lighten your load when they noticed you starting to sink under the weight of it.Â
So youâre smiling. Despite the fact that itâs still a Tuesday morning and you have a long week ahead of you. Despite the fact that youâre still very much locked into a job you mostly despise.Â
Mentally, you make a note to give some gesture of your gratitude. To do something that will brighten his day a bit, too.Â
But you donât know him. Donât know how he takes his coffee or if he has a favorite brand of ballpoint pen or if he could use an extra favor from someone in the marketing department. All the sorts of things that coworkers do to show a little bit of appreciation.Â
But the universe, at least in part, seems to be on your side today.Â
When you head into the staff kitchen for your mid-morning coffee refill, you find it already occupied.Â
Itâs a bit ridiculous, the way you suddenly feel flustered. Have the urge to smooth your hair, fix your blouse.Â
He has his back turned to you, and it takes you nearly half a minute of contemplation to decide whether or not to say something. In the end, the decision is made for you.Â
Your phone lights up with an urgent request that you check over the second half of the report you â well, Jungwon â submitted last night.Â
Sighing, you turn away from the kitchen. Your second cup of coffee, and a conversation with a certain programmer, will just have to wait.Â
You do, however, notice one last thing before you go. Watching silently, you canât help but smile a bit as you watch Jungwon add two sugar packets to his mug.Â
Sweet, you think. Just like him. And now you have at least one bit of information to work with.Â
After submitting the edits on your report, you decide to use your recently earned knowledge. Deciding that heâs worth the splurge, you open the delivery page of the cafe down the street, the one thatâs ridiculously overpriced but undoubtedly makes the best coffee in the area.Â
And when you order it in his name, a hot coffee with two sugars, you ask the barista to attach a note.Â
Thank you again for yesterday. I hope this is how you like your coffee!Â
An hour later, your inbox chimes with another message.Â
From: [email protected]Â
Subject: Thank You
Youâre too kind, ____. Thank you for the coffee. How did you know just how I like it?
All the best,Â
Jungwon
If his words make you smile a little too hard, well, you figure no one ever has to know.Â
The universe, however, would seem to have other plans.Â
Of everyone in the marketing department, you find your coworker Grace to be the most bearable. A few years older than you, she was by far the most welcoming when you joined the team.Â
And you have the sneaking suspicion she has just as much disdain for your supervisor as you, even if the two of you have never openly discussed it.Â
Unfortunately, she does have the fatal flaw of never being able to finish her work day without getting herself involved in someone elseâs business. For the most part, youâre spared from her nosiness.Â
Mostly because your life doesnât carry the same flair for drama that she loves most. But today, she decides to give it a shot anyway.Â
Standing behind your office chair, she nearly startles you out of your seat when she asks, âWhoâs got you smiling like that?â
Closing the email as quickly as you can, you turn to face her.Â
âNo one.â Itâs too rushed, too evasive. She sees right through it.Â
âMhmm.âÂ
Heat rising in your cheeks, you double down. âNo, really.â Scrambling for a lie, your eyes land on one of your desk photos. One that shows your childhood cat, affectionately named Mr. Snuggles by your elementary school self. âI just heard from the vet that my cat is feeling a lot better. I was worried she was really sick.â
Itâs a bold faced lie. Mr. Snuggles has been dead since your third year of high school.Â
âAh,â Grace says. Her features fall slightly as she realizes she wonât be getting a worthy scoop from you. Realizing thatâs probably not an appropriate reaction, she forces a smile. âThatâs great! Iâm happy for you.â
âThanks,â you nod, hoping it will mark the end of the conversation.Â
But Grace isnât quite ready to let it go. âThat does remind me, though. Iâve been meaning to ask you something.â
Uh oh.Â
âYouâre not seeing anyone, right?â Youâre not sure how a sick cat would remind her of your dating life, but you suppose there are larger mysteries to be solved.Â
And on second consideration â oh. Is it really that obvious? âNo,â the syllable drags as you attempt to tread carefully. âWhy?â
Grace shrugs, but the conversation feels more calculated than nonchalant. âI was at my friendâs baby shower a couple of weeks ago, and her younger brother just moved back to the city. Heâs been living abroad since high school. Heâs around your age and a total catch. I didnât talk to him much, but he reminded me of you a bit. I think the two of you would get on.âÂ
âOh,â is all you say. Your uncertainty must be written all over your features, because Grace is quick to continue.
âNo pressure, of course. But let me know if youâd like me to pass his number along.â
Do you? Itâs been ages since you went on a date. And even longer since you went on a date with someone youâd describe as a total catch.Â
And apparently, your single-ness is painfully visible to the people around you if Grace was able to pick up on it so easily.Â
Besides, it might be nice, you think. To have a conversation with someone that isnât about quarterly reports or upcoming deadlines or jammed printers.Â
But then your mind wanders to the last conversation you had about a jammed printer. To a set of pretty, dark eyes and a pair of gentle hands.Â
To a string of email conversations that donât really mean anything. But you almost wish they did.Â
Itâs messy, you think. Far from ideal. JUngwon might not be in your department, but he still works just down the hall. Inter company relationships arenât forbidden, but they do carry a certain amount of risk.
Jungwon isnât petty. He wouldnât make your life a living hell if things were to end badly. But you might start feeling awkward in the staff kitchen and you might have to start timing your walks to the parking lot so that they donât coincide with his.
Small adjustments. Minor inconveniences more than anything.
Besides, itâs all conjecture.Â
You can count the conversations youâve had with Jungwon on your fingers, and the majority have been channeled through your work email.Â
Itâs hardly romantic.Â
But even as you try to see things from a detached, logical perspective, one thought keeps swimming back to you.
You think you could talk about jammed printers forever, as long as it was with him.Â
Sighing, your heart canât decide if it wants to sink to your stomach or crawl up your throat at the realization.Â
Turning back to Grace, you just offer her a tight smile. âIâll let you know.â
âŚ..
In the coming weeks, your coincidental run-ins with Jungwon start to become more and more frequent.Â
First, itâs the two of you just so happening to need a coffee refill at the same time. When your path cross in the staff kitchen, you raise an eyebrow at the sugar packets he adds to his mug and he shakes his head as you take a long sip of your plain, bitter drink of choice.Â
Then, itâs the morning in the parking lot when the two of you just so happen to arrive at the same time, pulling into adjacent parking spots. His smile is gentle, albeit a bit sleepy, when he bids you, âGood morning.âÂ
Your heart flutters a bit when you return the sentiment. You do your best to ignore it.Â
Next, you stumble across him in the staircase on an otherwise quiet afternoon. This time, however, heâs already deep in another conversation. Or, you realize at second glance, trying very hard to wiggle his way out of another conversation.Â
For all intents and purposes, Jenna from the legal department is a sweet girl. A bit overbearing at times and doesnât always take well to being told no, but sheâs harmless for the most part. Smart and driven and you admit a little glumly, quite pretty.Â
Even underneath the overhead fluorescents in the stairway, she manages to avoid looking washed out.Â
Theyâre already talking by the time you get there, and the only thing you catch is the tail end of their rather one-sided conversation.Â
âItâs a great place, really,â Jenna insists, smiling a little too brightly. âAnd the food is to die for. Theyâre always running really unique specials. I think youâd really like it.â
And you could just turn around and pretend not to have seen anything. You could just take the elevator instead. In fact, you probably should.Â
But suddenly, itâs as if your shoes have been filled with lead. Feet frozen to the earth, all you can do is watch.Â
âOh,â Jungwon reaches for the back of his neck. âThanks for thinking of me, Jenna, but I donât think Iâll be able to make it.â
âOh, really?â she pouts. âIs there another night that would work bettââ
âJungwon!â Your voice is too loud, reverberating off the walls of the stairway in a way that has two pairs of eyes immediately darting towards you. And interrupting had seemed like a good idea a few seconds ago, but now you realize your fatal mistake.Â
You have no plan. No idea what to say next.Â
Still, you force a smile. âJust the person I was looking for.â
You donât think youâre imagining it, the immediate wash of relief that colors Jungwonâs features.Â
âHey, ___,â Jenna waves, a bit dejectedly. She doesnât exactly look pleased to see you, and you canât really blame her. âCould you give us a minute? I was just in the middle ofââ
âSorry, Jenna,â you shake your head. âThis is kind of urgent.â
âRight,â Jungwon nods, looking at you again. âWeâd better go then.â
âBut Iââ
âSee you around, Jenna.â Youâre tone is too bright as you spin around, making a beeline back towards the door. A flicker of satisfaction warms in your chest when you realize Jungwon is right on your heels.Â
He waits until the two of you are back in the empty hallway, closed door serving as a barrier between you and Jenna, before he speaks.Â
Looking at you, he quirks his head to the side. âSo, whatâs the urgent thing you need help with?â
Oh. Right.Â
Sighing, you decide honesty, or at least partial honesty, might be your best bet.Â
âSorry,â your smile is sheepish, âdid I read that wrong? Thereâs nothing urgent. I justâŚâ you trail off, searching for the words. âIt just looked like you might have needed an exit.â
For a moment, he says nothing. The silence gives your mind too much room to spin
Maybe you did read things wrong. Maybe he was enjoying a perfectly pleasant conversation with perfectly pleasant Jenna. Maybe he was looking forward to going to a nice restaurant with her and trying all sorts of unique specials andâ
âThank you.â
âWhat?â
Jungwonâs eyes soften. If you didnât know any better, youâd almost describe his expression as⌠fondness. âAn exit,â he clarifies. âI did need one. So thank you.â
âRight.â Your voice is suddenly breathless, and you canât think of a good excuse for it. Feigning a nonchalance you donât feel, you wave off his gratitude, âAnytime.âÂ
âCareful,â Jungwon warns, but the same hint of teasing, the same glimmer of affection, is still there. âI just might take you up on that.âÂ
âItâs a good thing I meant it, then.â
Jungwonâs features soften into a smile. A small one, meant just for the two of you. Reaching up, he pushes a stray strand of hair from his eyes.Â
Itâs only natural that you follow the movement. His hands are nice, you think. Long, lithe fingers, andâ
You frown, eyes zeroing in on the knuckles of his right hand.Â
Bruises, you realize. Dark, purple bruises span the length of his knuckles. Angry and mottled and from what you can tell, recent.Â
And so many. You canât imagine what he could have possibly done to earn them.Â
Gaze still trained on the injury, your eyes widen. âAre you okay?â
Itâs Jungwonâs turn to be confused. âWhat?â
âYour hand,â you nod at it. âAre those bruises?â
âOh.â He shrugs, brushes it off like itâs nothing. But his hand falls to his side, obscured from your sight, all the same. âYeah, I just slipped the other day trying to hang a picture in my apartment. The frame caught me funny when it fell.â
âYou⌠slipped.â
Your disbelief must be apparent, because Jungwon is quick to add, âMy hand slipped, really. My phone started ringing, and it caught me off guard.â
âOuch,â you grimace. âThat sounds like it hurt.â
Again, Jungwon shrugs. But his eyes are doing that thing again. Sparkling. âItâs not so bad.â
âStill,â you insist. âYou should be more careful.â
âYeah,â Jungwon agrees. Itâs just the two of you, alone in a dimly lit hallway. His gaze is trained on yours. The distance between you is respectable, appropriate. Suggests that the two of you are coworkers and nothing more. But you have the distinct feeling that heâs not entirely talking about hanging pictures when he says, âI probably should.â
âŚ..
The next morning, Grace is the first person you see as you walk into the office. And sheâs already waiting for you. As soon as you come in, she hands you a coffee with an apologetic smile.Â
âUh oh.â You hang your coat, accepting the cup from her hands. Itâs not unusual to receive coffee from a coworker, but it usually comes as a form of consolation. âWhatâs this for?â
âItâs from Alan, actually.â
Your lips flatten. âThat doesnât make me feel better.â
âItâs not that bad, really.â Graceâs smile is less than convincing. âHe just wants us all to get together this Friday night after work at that bar down the street. Yâknow, to network.â
You groan internally. There go your plans for a relaxing Friday at home.Â
âHow is it networking if itâs just our team? We see each other every day.â
âThatâs the other part,â Grace nods towards the cup in your hand. âDidnât you notice he pulled out all the stops? Thatâs from the shop down the road. The one that charges eleven dollars for a small latte.â
âOh god,â you groan, this time audibly. âWhat else does he want?â
âWeâve all been strongly encouraged to invite people from different teams around the company.â
You suppress a strong urge to roll your eyes. âOf course we have.â
Privately, you think that if Alan wants to network so bad, he should be responsible for creating the guest list himself. Outwardly, you just sigh.Â
As if you didnât have enough on your plate already. Now you need to schmooze some other poor employee into wasting their Friday night talking about work.Â
Sitting down at your desk, you take a sip of your coffee. It is admittedly delicious. The thought only makes you want to bang your head on your keyboard even more.Â
The problem of finding a plus one follows you all the way through the afternoon. All the way to the workroom, where you once again stumble into a certain blonde programmer thatâs beginning to feel like part of your daily routine.Â
This time, Jungwon is alone.Â
Heâs frowning at the printer, brow furrowed.Â
âDonât tell me itâs jammed.âÂ
When he sees that itâs you, his features immediately soften. He smiles and something tugs at your heart. Itâs enough to have you forgetting about Friday night, even if just for a moment.Â
âNo, thankfully. My computer just doesnât seem to want to connect to this printer.â
âMm,â you hum. âSend it to me, and Iâll try printing from mine.â
Jungwon shakes his head. âYou donât have to do that. Iâll just go up to the accounting department and try their printer.â
âJungwon,â you level him with a look. âYou are the last person to be telling me I donât have to do you a favor. Itâs really no problem. Just send it over.â
âOkay,â he finally relents.Â
Waiting for it to ping through on your end, an idea suddenly strikes you. Youâre not sure if itâs a good one or if your judgment is starting to be warped by all of the toner cartridge fumes, but here, in a quiet workroom with nothing but Jungwon and a half-working printer to keep you company, you find a bit of your bravery.Â
âI know this probably isnât your idea of a perfect evening,â you start. Your words feel too loud in this tiny space. âBut the marketing team is getting together after work for drinks this Friday night. Weâre also encouraged to branch outside of our department and invite other company employees, so if youâre free, weâd love to have you.â The more you say, the worse it sounds to your own ears. Why would anyone, much less Jungwon, want to come to a work event for the marketing team. Suddenly embarrassed you even brought it up, you find yourself rambling. âThe bar is actually pretty nice. Itâs not super fancy or anything, but it has, uh, really great chandeliers. Itâs a nice ambience, andââ
â___.â Jungwon interrupts with the sound of your name.Â
âYeah?â Youâre trying not to sound too hopeful, but you have the distinct feeling that you fail miserably. Despite your hesitance, you realize something.Â
You want him to say yes.Â
You want him to give you a different response than he gives everyone else. A different response than he gave Jenna.Â
You want him to say yes, even though no one wants to go to a work event for the marketing team on a Friday night.Â
You want him to say yes anyway, because itâs you.Â
âIâd love to, really.â He reaches up, scratching at the back of his neck. âBut Iâm busy Friday night.â
Short. Succinct. To the point. He doesnât spare any extra details.Â
You already knew it was a long shot. But it stings all the same.Â
You wanted to be the exception to the rule. Someone that would finally get him to say yes. Or at the very least, someone he would bother to give an actual reason for his absence to.Â
âOh.â Your voice is smaller than you mean for it to be. âOf course!â And now itâs too loud, too bright. You canât find the happy medium, canât find your natural tone. âIâm sure whatever it is will be way more fun, anyway.â
Jungwon just gives you a small smile, not bothering to affirm or refute your assumption. Not deigning to add any more details.Â
It kind of makes you wish that the ground would open up and swallow you whole.Â
âWell, I should probably get back to my desk.â You donât know why youâre scrambling for excuses. Jungwon clearly doesnât feel the need to provide any. âDid everything print okay?â You nod towards the small stack of papers in his hands.Â
Jungwon is still looking at you. His lips part, as if he wants to say something. Brow creased, itâs as if heâs at war with himself. As if he canât decide what to say or how to say it.Â
After a beat, his mouth falls shut again. He gives a minute shake of his head. You watch as his hair sways in time with the movement.Â
âYeah,â he tells you. But he still hasnât bothered to look down at the document between his fingers. âEverything printed fine.âÂ
âOkay.â You nod again. âGood.â Your voice sounds hollow in your ears. âWell, Iâll see you around, then.â
Iâll see you around?
Iâll see you around?
It takes all of your willpower not to cringe outwardly. Itâs the most awkward, stilted thing you could have possibly said, but youâre not sure how else to fill the stifling silence.Â
âOf course,â Jungwon nods. âHave a good day, ____.â The worst part is that he looks like he genuinely means it. âAnd enjoy your Friday night.â
âRight.â Your smile is feeble, doesnât reach your eyes. âYou too.âÂ
Youâre so caught up in your own humiliation that you donât notice the way his smile doesnât quite reach his eyes either. âSure thing.â
âŚ..
Changing your clothes in the last stall of the office bathroom kind of feels like a new low for you. But by the time Friday evening comes around, the last thing you want to do is attend a mandatory â scratch that, highly encouraged â work event at a bar still wearing your blazer and slacks.Â
The jeans and sweater you replace them with are still nice by any standard, but theyâll feel a bit less stifling after a handful of drinks.Â
Grace, at least, seems to have the same idea. Deciding sheâs by far the most bearable person of the evening, you slide down next to her in the booth.Â
Of course, that thought only makes you think of another person youâd invited. Someone whose absence feels especially notable as you nurse the remnants of your first cocktail.Â
You donât really want to get drunk tonight. You donât want to be here at all.Â
You put in your forty hours of work this week, and the only place you want to be is at home in a pair of sweatpants.Â
The only person that would have made it a little more worth it made it very clear that he had better things to do. The details of which, of course, he didnât bother to share.Â
The thought spurs you to take another long sip.Â
You donât want to get drunk. But you donât want to think about him either.Â
Besides, Grace doesnât seem to share your reservations.Â
Itâs barely been forty minutes when she pulls out her phone, thoroughly tipsy, and decides that you are the best person to help her sort through her list of matches on her favorite dating app.Â
âHeâs cute, right?â She flashes her phone screen towards you.Â
He is. You nod and tell her as much.Â
His eyes might not sparkle very much. And his hair might not fall perfectly over his forehead. And he might not furrow his eyebrow in concentration whenever the printer in the workroom gives him a hard time â
No.Â
Tonight is not about him. He made it very clear that he had no interest in being here tonight, and the last thing youâre going to do is spend the evening fixated on him.Â
Grace, at least, seems willing to help on that front.Â
âOh,â she suddenly interjects from your side. âThat reminds me. Iâve been meaning to show you a picture of my friendâs brother. You know, the one I mentioned a couple of weeks ago?â
Itâs a bad idea, probably. Youâre still feeling slighted and bitter and no matter how many times you tell it not to, your mind keeps wandering to Jungwon.Â
Despite your reluctance, the cocktails are catching up with you. Thereâs a pleasant, slightly numb haze in your mind. It makes resistance feel futile.Â
All you do is nod, and Grace starts searching for his social media profile. It takes her a few more tries than it would sober, but she does eventually find it.Â
âHere,â she says, offering her phone to you. âHis name is Jay. He grew up here until he left to go to an international high school. Heâs been living abroad ever since, but he recently moved back. Their dad is pretty high up at a software development company. I think he came back because he landed a job there too.âÂ
You do your best to absorb the information, to nod along with what she says, but in all honesty, youâre quite distracted.Â
Jay is quite distracting. His feed is well-curated without being overbearing. Covered in travel photos, unbelievably flattering candid shots, and stunning nature pictures, he immediately piques your interest.Â
Not to mention the fact that heâs stunning. Maybe not quite as stunning as â
No. Again, you refuse to go there.Â
Youâre not sure if itâs the drinks or the photos or the spite that makes it suddenly feel like a good idea, but youâre telling Grace to pass your number along to Jay before you can think better of it.Â
And if nothing else, at least he doesnât seem like the kind of person that will make you wonder. Or even wait for long.Â
Youâve barely gotten home, mind mostly clear even if it is still a bit muddled from the exhaustion of a long week, when your phone screen lights up with a notification.Â
Itâs just a string of numbers for now, but youâre quick to create a new contact.Â
Hey, the message reads. This is Jay. Grace gave me your number. I hope thatâs alright!
A few seconds later, another text comes through.Â
Jay: How do you feel about art exhibitions? Thereâs one opening this weekend right next to one of the best coffee spots in the city. Iâd love for you to join me.Â
Itâs simple. Straightforward. Not something youâll search for subtext or pick apart for weeks.Â
And itâs easy to respond to.Â
You: That sounds great! Iâll look forward to it
âŚ..
Another week at work passes with the same monotonous, sluggish flow as any other. But this time, itâs interspersed with messages youâve started to look forward to.Â
Youâve just sat down with your third cup of coffee on Monday morning when the first one chimes through.Â
Jay: Good morning, ___. I hope your Monday is off to a better start than mine.Â
A second message comes through. This one is an image. One that unmistakably shows a stack of papers covered in a dark brown stain you recognize all too well.Â
You: Oh no!Â
Pausing for a moment, your teeth worry at your bottom lip. Deciding to go for it, you send your own picture in return.Â
The image of your full coffee cup goes through, along with another message.Â
You: I think it might be. My coffee is still in my cup, at least
It takes him less than a minute to respond.Â
Jay: Black coffee! Oh, you mean business. Iâll deny it if you tell anyone, but I always have to add sugar and cream to mine.Â
You canât help the smile that starts to spread over your lips. Sugar and cream. An aversion to bitterness. It reminds you of someone else that always adds a little sweetness to their â
Shaking your head, you force the comparison away. Putting the other man firmly out of mind, you decide to return Jayâs lighthearted message with one of your own.
You: Donât tell anyone, but this is my third cup of the morning.Â
Jay: Third cup of straight black coffee. Whew, remind me not to get on your bad side today.Â
Jay: Speaking of which, do you always drink it black or could you be persuaded into something a little sweeter?Â
Heâs talking about coffee, yes, but it feels just a little bit like flirting. Biting at your lip again, you decide there isnât much to lose.
Besides, itâs kind of⌠fun. You canât remember the last time you were well and truly flirted with.Â
You: Depends whoâs asking
Jay: Hmm
Jay: Iâll have to work on my persuasion skills then
Jay: The place Iâm taking you to on Saturday has an insanely delicious caramel latte, and I need to know what you think of it
You: Tempting
You: But Iâm not sure Iâm convincedÂ
Jay: Iâll work on that, then
You canât hide your smile this time.Â
A minute later, two more texts ping through.Â
Jay: Duty calls, unfortunately
Jay: The rest of my Monday is stacked, so if I am slow to respond to any messages, thatâs why. Enjoy the rest of your day, ___
Heâs straightforward. Communicative. You appreciate the notice. The fact that if you do send another message without a response, you wonât have to waste your day wondering why.Â
You: Ugh, donât you hate it when you actually have to work at work?
You: I hope all goes well! Enjoy the rest of your day too, Jay
Setting your phone down, you return your gaze to your computer screen and unfortunately very full inbox.Â
Your focus, however, remains half-occupied by a message thread sitting dormant on your tucked away phone.Â
âŚ..
Jayâs messages begin to become a highlight of your work day. Despite the fact that thereâs often a large lapse in time due to both of your busy schedules, you start to anticipate every text he manages to send.Â
And they only serve to build more excitement around your upcoming date.Â
By the time Thursday comes around, youâve all but mentally clocked out for the week. Refilling your water bottle in the staff kitchen, your mind is so occupied that you almost run right into the person coming through the door the same time youâre leaving.Â
âOh, Iâm so sorry! I wasnât looking where I wasââ
â___.â The sound of your name stops you in your tracks. âBreathe,â Jungwon is smiling, but thereâs a hint of concern there, too. âYouâre okay.â
âJungwon,â you exhale. Your frantic apology begins to subside, replaced by an overwhelming surge of self-consciousness as you tuck a stray strand of hair behind your ear.Â
You havenât spoken to him, havenât even seen him, since he rejected your invitation last Friday.Â
Heâs not trying to pick at old wounds, but it still stings a bit when he asks, âHow was Friday?â
âOh, you know,â you shrug, âIt was a typical work gathering.â Then again, it occurs to you that he might not know. Since he never bothers attending any of them.Â
Not that it really matters. Besides, youâre lying a bit anyway. Typical work gatherings donât usually end with you setting up a date. Not that you want Jungwon to know about that either.Â
You can't pinpoint exactly why, but the thought of him knowing doesnât sit with you quite right. Besides, itâs not like heâs ever shown any interest in your personal life, anyway. He would find it weird, most likely. Annoying, if you were to divulge any details.Â
âOh, well, Iâm sorry again that I couldnât come.â Just like that day in the workroom, he reaches back to scratch at his neck. You have the distinct sense that heâs the one who suddenly feels a bit awkward. âFriday nights areâŚâ he trails off, âFriday nights are hard for me, usually. Iâm always pretty free on Saturday mornings, thought, so ifââ
âDonât worry about it.â Oh god. Your intention certainly wasnât to make him feel guilty for having a social life outside of the office. Suddenly worried that you read the situation all wrong, youâre quick to assure him, âYou donât have to come to anything that you donât want to. And especially if you have plans already. I just asked you because my supervisor wanted us to invite people from other departments.â
If his face falls slightly, youâre too caught up in your own rambling to notice.Â
âAnd, you know,â you continue, âsince you helped me that day with the printer.âÂ
âThe printer,â he echoes, voice suddenly hollow. âRight.â
âRight,â you echo. The room falls into silence again, and this time, itâs weighted with a horrible awkwardness neither of you can shake.Â
âWell,â you finally say, holding up your bottle. âI got my water, so Iâm gonna head back to my desk.â
âYeah,â Jungwon nods. âOkay.â
âIâll see you around?â Itâs just as stilted as it was before, but youâre desperate for any way to exit this conversation.Â
âYeah,â Jungwon repeats. âSure thing, ___.â
âŚ..
By the time Saturday morning comes, youâre a mess of anticipation and frayed nerves.Â
Youâre early to arrive at the address of the coffee shop Jay sent you a few nights ago, but heâs already there waiting for you. And his social media might have painted an impressive picture, but one look tells you that it still doesnât hold a candle to the real thing.Â
Jay is gorgeous.
Almost as gorgeous as â
You kill the thought as soon as it comes. This day isnât about him, and comparisons will do you little good.Â
Instead, you refocus on your date.Â
Heâs polished and put together in an effortless sort of way. The kind of person that you see once in passing and then canât stop thinking about for the rest of the week. His features are angular, sharp. But they soften into a warm smile the second he lays eyes on you.Â
In the end, it doesnât take him much convincing at all to persuade you to try the caramel latte. And heâs right. It is absolutely delicious. Â
It was easy to fall into a natural rhythm over text, and your face-to-face conversation flows even better.Â
He tells you about life abroad and all of his favorite parts of living in another country. He tells you about his family and what he missed most about this city heâs learning to call home again.Â
He listens, actively, while you tell him the more mundane details of your own life. His questions are well-timed and never feel like interruptions.Â
His kindness doesnât feel like a facade. His interest doesnât feel like a cheap trick to get what he wants from you and then disappear without a word.Â
And when it becomes painfully apparent at the art exhibition that heâs far more well-versed in the subject than you, he doesnât make you feel stupid. Instead, he takes his time explaining each piece. Highlights the aspects that would be most interesting to someone without any kind of background in art.Â
Heâs kind, considerate, and the day passes by in a blur of fleeting glances and shy smiles. At the end of it, he offers to drive you home and opens your car door for you. Small gestures that make you feel seen, considered. Valued.Â
When he says goodbye with a hug that doesnât last nearly long enough, the smell of his cologne is something you hope will linger as long as the memories of the day do.Â
Itâs easy, you think, as you watch his car drive away from your window. Jay is someone thatâs easy to be around, to spend time with.Â
And when he messages you later that night, reiterating his enjoyment of the day and asking to meet again, heâs easy to say yes to.Â
âŚ..
Youâre not sure how, but the only person that seems even more excited than you about you and Jay is Grace.Â
Despite the fact that your communication as of late hasnât involved anything scandalous, she feels the need to rehash every detail until sheâs heard it one hundred times.Â
It doesnât matter how many times you tell her that the last text message he sent you wasnât anything to swoon over. In fact, it was rather short and unexciting.Â
Jay: Have you seen my ring by chance? I remember wearing it that day I was in your car, and I havenât been able to find it since then.Â
But Grace wonât hear it. Youâre not exactly sure what she heard from Jayâs sister, but she spends the rest of the coming week hounding you over the details regardless.Â
The staff kitchen is hardly the place for conversations about your personal life, but the setting doesnât seem to bother her at all. Instead, she pretends to be busy washing an already clean coffee mug while she asks again, âSo you went out for the first time last Saturday, right?â
âMhm,â you nod.Â
âAnd then you got dinner together Wednesday night after work?â
âYep.â Youâre pretty sure sheâs already asked the same question at least six times.Â
âAnd heâs planning to take you out again this Saturday?â
âRight.â
âMy god, you two are practically married.â She punctuates the absurd claim with a wistful sigh.Â
âWe most certainly are not.âÂ
âOkay, but you literally just met, and youâve already seen each other twice with plans for a third.â
She does have a point there. Never mind the fact that you havenât dated anyone in a while. It is a quick timeline, no matter how you look at it. But youâve been itching to spend time with him ever since your first date, and Jay seems to be on the same page.Â
It feels fast, yes, but it doesnât feel forced. For you, thatâs what matters most.Â
That, along with the fact that a certain someone has been noticeably absent from your mind the more time you spend with him. For now, youâll choose not to read too much into that.Â
âGod,â Grace sighs again. âI miss going on dates.â
âWhat are you talking about? Didnât you go on one a couple weeks ago?â You distinctly remember helping her set it up that night at the bar after work.
âWell, yeah, but I mean good dates. You know, getting properly wined and dined and all that. I guess Iâll just have to live vicariously through you.âÂ
âWe went to dinner once, and there was hardly any wine involved.â
She rolls her eyes. âYou know what I mean. All Iâm saying is youâre lucky to be seeing someone that actually puts in effort for your dates and doesnât just take you to the closest bar to his office and hope that buying you a handful of drinks means heâll get lucky.â Pausing for a moment, she looks up, eyes landing somewhere just over your shoulder. âRight, Jungwon?â
Immediately, itâs as if youâve been submerged in ice cold water. Because thereâs no way she saidâ
âJungwon?â Turning around, youâre put face to face with the last person you wanted to overhear this particular conversation.Â
âHey, ___.â Thereâs a smile on his lips. Small as always, but something feels wrong about it. âGrace,â he nods at the girl over your shoulder. âSorry,â heâs still looking at her, âwere you asking me something?â
âNo, we were just leaving, actuaââ
Grace pays you no attention. âJust telling ___ how lucky she is that her man actually puts effort into their dates, since it feels like such a rarity these days.â
âHe is not my man.â The glare you send your coworker is lost as Jungwon turns back to you, eyes wide, gaze indecipherable.Â
âYouâre dating someone?â
âIâŚâ The easy, most available answer is yes, but youâre having a hard time getting it out. And there are other semantics involved.Â
Are you dating? Not really. That usually indicates some kind of commitment, exclusivity. Going on dates might be a better way to put it. But clarifying that miniscule distinction for Jungwon feels strange for some reason.Â
âMy friendâs brother,â Grace supplies unhelpfully from the corner. âWhat can I say? Iâm a natural born matchmaker.â Her proud smile is lost on the both of you. Youâre only looking at each other.Â
âOh.â Jungwonâs voice is small, hollow. âThatâs nice. Iâm happy for you.â
You want to scream, just a little bit. Or maybe cry. You canât make up your mind.Â
And youâre not sure where it comes from, the sudden, overwhelming surge of guilt that begins to build in your gut. You canât even decipher who itâs directed towards. Towards Jungwon? Towards Jay? Towards yourself?Â
Grace, despite her self-proclaimed talent for setting up dates, is apparently incredibly inept at reading the room. With no prompting but her own, sheâs pushing forward. âHe lived abroad for a while and just moved back to the city, which is like, the perfect scenario for going on dates. And heâs always had a flair for romance. I rememberââ
âWell,â you interrupt, desperate for an out, âwe better get back to the project we were working onââ
âWhat project?â Grace, it would seem, is determined to be anything but helpful.
âYou know,â you glare at her, âour project.â
âRight!â She looks sheepish, finally catching the hint. âThat project.â
Turning back to Jungwon, you can still see the rigidity of his features. The tension that has yet to ease. âIâllâŚâ youâre not sure how to part ways now without making things worse. But it feels wrong to just leave without saying anything. For the third time in the span of days, you tell him, âIâll see you around.â
And for the third time, he agrees, âYeah.â This time, however, his eyes still flickering with annoyance, shoulders still set with residual frustration. âSure thing, ___.â
Itâs what he always says, you realize. But this time, itâs missing that easygoing, genuine lightness he usually says it with.Â
This time, it sounds like rejection.
Yours or his, youâre not entirely sure.
âŚ..
You manage to avoid Jungwon for the rest of the week. Itâs ironic, almost. You were so worried about pursuing a potential relationship with him because you wanted to avoid this exact scenario.Â
Now, a handful of dates with someone who is very much not him tucked under your belt, you still feel the need to turn and walk the other direction whenever you think you hear his voice or get a glimpse of blonde hair.Â
But the office is only so big, and there are only so many corners to duck into. Barely a week has passed the next time you unwittingly bump into him.Â
âOh,â you startle slightly, walking into the workroom and already finding it occupied. And of course youâd run into him here, of all places. Kneeling in front of the printer, his brow is furrowed in concentration as he tries to dislodge yet another paper jam.Â
âSorry.â Youâre not sure what youâre apologizing for exactly, but it feels warranted regardless. âIâll just leave, andââ
â___,â he cuts you off with the sound of your name. Looking down at him, you're met with the expanse of his back. A button down shirt tucked into dark pants. Standard work attire that has no business looking this ridiculously good on anyone. âYouâre fine. You donât need to leave. Just give me a second, and the printerâs all yours.âÂ
You nod, even though he canât see you. If the lack of a verbal response bothers him, he doesnât show it. Instead, he busies himself with the jammed printer, muscles of his back flexing slightly underneath the fabric of his shirt as he tugs at the stubborn papers.Â
Cheeks heating slightly, you force your gaze elsewhere.Â
âThere,â he says after another minute of adjustments. Standing to full height, he turns to face you. âAll fixed.â
Looking up at him, youâre about to offer a quiet thanks when your eyes land on his right cheekbone. Specifically, the fresh cut that spans the length of it.Â
The gasp the spills from your lips is entirely without permission. But you canât quite help it. The wound is quite superficial, surface level at most, but it mars his otherwise perfect skin in a way you werenât prepared for.Â
Without your permission, your fingers start to reach towards the injury. They make it halfway before you remember yourself, before you regain your sense of reality. Your hand falls limply back to your side.Â
âWhat happened?â You breathe.Â
Jungwonâs brows draw together in confusion for a moment before a flicker of realization dances across his features.Â
âOh.â He exhales, fingers tapping against the broken skin of his cheekbone lightly. âNothing. I just, er, fell the other day.â
âYou fell,â you echo. Like all of his other excuses, itâs vague. Flimsy at best.Â
âYeah,â he confirms with a slight nod. Again, he says, âI fell.â
Itâs evasive. And it feels like more than just an explanation for his injury.Â
It feels like confirmation of the distance between the two of you. His final assertion that youâre nothing but a coworker to him. Someone that he tells edited versions of stories to, someone that he keeps firmly planted an armâs length away.Â
Fine. If he wants to give you shitty excuses for his Friday nights and his absences at work events and now his injury that very obviously did not come from a fall, thatâs just fine with you.Â
After all, heâs nothing but a coworker to you either. The upcoming date you have planned with Jay is enough to prove it.Â
âWell,â you tell him, forcing a smile. The fake, disproportionately bright kind that you only ever use with your coworkers. âI hope it heals quickly.â
And then youâre brushing past him, making your way towards the printer as if heâs nothing but an obstacle in your path.Â
Collecting your freshly printed document, you turn and walk out the door without so much as a backward glance.Â
âŚ..
Sliding into the passenger seat of Jayâs car Thursday evening, you feel the stress melting from your shoulders the second the door shuts behind you.Â
This is something else he makes easy: forgetting about whatever woes you managed to acquire after a long day of work. Jay just smiles as you sit down next to him, turning down the volume on the radio as he asks about your day.Â
Tonight, the two of you are headed to one of your favorite diners. Somewhere where you can chat and laugh and relax over a pile of french fries and obnoxiously gaudy decor.Â
But before you turn down the street that leads to the restaurant, Jay asks if the two of you can make a quick stop.Â
âI left my bag at the gym last night,â he explains apologetically. âDo you mind if I swing by and grab it real quick? Itâs on our way.â
You reassure him that itâs no problem, and a handful of minutes later, the two of you are parked outside of a rather nondescript, faded building.Â
Frowning slightly, your eyebrow quirks up in surprise. Although he hasnât outright disclosed anything, from what youâve gathered so far, Jayâs family is quite well off. The kind that pays for expensive memberships at bougie gyms with saunas and swimming pools. Not the kind that frequents dark, run down gyms in the middle of a random residential area.Â
Pulling his key from the ignition, Jay turns to you. âYou can wait here, if you want.â
âThatâs okay.â Youâre already unbuckling your seatbelt. âIâm tired of sitting, anyway.â You really are. Plus, you have to admit that youâre kind of curious.Â
You fall into step at his side as the two of you make your way towards the building. The closer you get, the more decrepit it appears. Paint is peeling from the exterior, leaving it an odd, mottled brown color riddled with rust marks.Â
Even the sign, Kangâs Gym, is small, faded, and only visible once youâre nearly to the entrance.Â
Jay steps in front of you, holding the door open for you to enter.Â
The inside, you realize as you step in, is in no better shape than the outside. The wall closest to you is lined with weightlifting equipment that looks as if it were pulled from past decades.Â
Padding is torn in places, and questionable stains cover the place, accumulated from years of use.Â
Youâre about to ask him outright why on earth he patronizes such a run down place when your eyes land on the far wall of the gym. There, you think you find your answer.Â
Thereâs no weightlifting equipment or cardio machines. Instead, the majority of available space is filled with several sets of boxing rings. Like the rest of the gym, theyâre equally faded and worn with years of use.Â
But the lighting in that part of the gym is noticeably better. Far brighter, more intentional. As if the rest of the gym is just for show and that is the true purpose of this building.Â
Youâre suddenly overcome with the urge to take a second glance at your date.Â
He has a lean, athletic build, yes. The kind that you assumed came from some kind of regular exercise regiment and not his office job.Â
But boxing wasnât exactly what you expected.Â
Jay turns to you. His expression gives nothing away, holds no indication that this is anything out of the ordinary for him. âI think I left it over by the locker rooms.âÂ
Encasing your hand in his, he leads you towards the rings. Several of them are occupied, mostly by one-on-one sparring matches.Â
Walking past the first one, the two men inside the ring turn to look at you and Jay as you pass.Â
âHey, man,â the first one offers with a nod of recognition that Jay returns. As his eyes slide over to you, they widen slightly in surprise. Gaze falling to your intertwined hands, the man just shakes his head slightly before returning to his sparring partner.Â
Moving past them, you shake the odd interaction from your mind.Â
You spare fleeting glances for the rest of the people you pass. For a moment, you try to imagine Jay in the ring instead of them. Itâs an odd contradiction with what youâve come to associate with him.Â
Easygoing. Considerate. Even tempered. Theyâre traits that feel at odds with the kind of stark physicality required in a boxing ring.Â
Then again, the more you consider it, the more you start to make sense of it. Jay is all of those things, yes, but thereâs also an undercurrent of something else.Â
A quiet intensity he carries with him. Something he has control over. Something he can channel when needed.Â
The more you think about it, the easier it is to picture him in the ring, throwing precise, calculated punches until victory rests on his square shoulders.Â
Youâd be lying if you said the mental image didnât pique your interest. Youâre about to ask him if heâll let you watch next time heâs in the ring when a flash of color in the last boxing ring, the one closest to the locker rooms, catches your attention.Â
Itâs unlikely. It feels impossible. Even more so than the thought of Jay in a boxing ring. But as you draw closer, you confirm your suspicions.Â
After all, you would know that shade of blonde anywhere.Â
It takes everything in you not to stop dead in your tracks. But even as you continue forward, hand still encased in Jayâs, your eyes are trained solely on the space between Jungwonâs broad shoulders.Â
Itâs almost inhuman, the feline agility that he moves with. Heâs smaller than his opponent, but heâs faster. Lighter on his feet.Â
The punches he throws are dizzyingly accurate, and his sparring partner seems to think the same. A muted thud is followed by a string of expletives that become more clear the closer you get.Â
âJesus, Jungwon.â The man across from him is still a bit breathless as he recovers from having the wind knocked out of him. âBad week at work or something?â
âCâmon, Heeseung.â It doesnât sound anything like the Jungwon you know. Gone is the quiet friendliness youâve always heard from him. His voice is still gentle, but it carries an unmistakable command. âStop going easy.â
âIâm not,â the other man â Heeseung â argues. âWhat has gotten into you? Itâs like youâve been insane since that match last week.âÂ
âWhatever,â Jungwon scoffs, shaking his head. âLetâs just take five.âÂ
âMake it ten,â Heeseung goads across from him.Â
Jungwon sends him a warning glare, but says nothing. Instead, he reaches for his water bottle at the corner of the ring, leaning against the ropes that enclose it.Â
All you can do is watch, suddenly fascinated by the way sweat darkens his hair, trails down the length of his neck. Jungwon gives a quick shake of his head, sending his hair scattering over his forehead as he leans further into the ropes behind him.
Tipping his head back, his throat works against a swallow as he takes a long drink from his water bottle.Â
Jungwon sets his water bottle down, turning towards Heeseung like heâs about to say something else when movement catches his attention.Â
More specifically, your movement. His eyes fall on you, and for a moment, youâre rendered just as immobile as him. His gaze widens in recognition and then suddenly, heâs standing.Â
Long strides eat up the length of the boxing ring as he crosses it, every step bringing him closer to you. With a distinct sort of grace and practiced ease, he jumps over the side of the ring, landing on his feet just as you and Jay pass him.Â
With a hand on your shoulder, he stops you both in your tracks. His touch is gentle, but commanding. It leaves little room for argument.Â
âThis is the guy youâve been seeing?â Jungwonâs eyes are molten lava. If you thought that day in the staff kitchen was the most visible emotion he was capable of mustering, you were sorely mistaken. The Jungwon that stands in front of you now is simmering with it, vibrating with barely contained emotions.Â
At your side, Jay turns back. With your hand still enclosed in his, Jayâs gaze goes straight towards Jungwonâs hand on your shoulder.Â
âJungwon,â he nods coolly.Â
Jungwon ignores him entirely. His gaze is still trained directly on you.Â
Glancing between the both of them, the tension between them is palpable. Over Jungwonâs shoulder, you can see Heeseung leaning against the edge of the boxing ring as if he canât decide whether to intervene or not.Â
âWell,â you say, attempting to diffuse a bit of the rising animosity, âI guess I donât need to introduce the two of you, then.â
This time, itâs you that Jungwon ignores. Turning to Jay, heâs all venom. âAnd you brought her here? What the hell are you doing?â
âRelax, man.â Jay rolls his eyes. âWeâre just grabbing my bag.â
âI donât give a fuck what you left here,â he bites. âYou know better than toââ
Shaking his hand off your shoulder, annoyance makes itself visible across your features. Itâs one thing for Jungwon to be pissy towards your date, but itâs another entirely for him to assume that you canât handle something as mundane as a boxing gym.Â
And if you're honest, the whole overprotective act just rubs you the wrong way. Why does he think he gets to ignore you all week at work and then act like he knows whatâs in your best interest?
âI think I can handle watching people throw a few punches, Jungwon.â Your voice is all ice, and it changes his demeanor immediately. The anger begins to dissipate, leaving him with wide eyes that beg for your understanding.Â
The frustration is still there, though. âThatâs not what I meant, ___.â
âI donât really care what you meant.â Youâre not sure if itâs true, but you want it to be. For now, thatâs enough. âWhy donât you go back to your friend and pretend like you never saw me. Youâre good at that, right?â
Itâs a low blow. And it has his features falling immediately, eyebrows slackening as if youâve slapped him.Â
His voice is notably gentler when he says your name. â___âŚâ
This time, itâs Jay that speaks. âI suggest you listen to her, man. Weâll be out in a few minutes.â
Jungwon wants to say more. You can see it in the way his mouth twitches, in the way his shoulders still rise with tension. Finally, he relaxes. Just a fraction of an inch, but you know itâs over. At least for now.Â
He doesnât say anything, but he does take a step back. And then another.Â
His eyes are still on you, even as Jay keeps walking, pulling you gently along with him.Â
By the time he finds his bag and the two of you make your way back out, Jungwon is nowhere to be found.Â
You can still feel eyes on you, though.Â
This time, itâs Heeseungâs gaze that follows you all the way out the door.Â
Back in Jayâs passenger seat, you turn towards your date, a million questions swimming in your mind.Â
âWhat on earth was that all about?â
Jay just frowns, knuckles white against the steering wheel. Instead of answering, he asks a question of his own. âHow do you know him?â
âWhat?â Too confused to protest, you answer. âWe work together.â Then you repeat, âWhatâs going on?â
Jay sighs, leans his head back against his seat. âHeâs in marketing with you?â
âNo,â you shake your head. âProgramming. I donât want to ask you again.â This time, you canât help the expletive. âWhat the fuck was that?â
âWeâŚâ Jay trails off, searching for an explanation. âWe know each other.â
âYeah, no shit. How?â
âWe went to the same middle school, before I left for high school. He was a year behind me.â
âAnd what?â You ask, trying to think of what kind of feud middle schoolers could possibly have that would warrant tonightâs interaction. âHe stole your lunch money and you never got over it?â
âNot quite.â His lips are tight. âLook, ___. I know you canât help who you work with, but Jungwon⌠heâs not who you think he is.â
âAnd you are?â
Jay turns to you, hurt clearly written across his features. âThatâs not fair.â
âNo,â you argue, doubling down. âWhatâs not fair is giving me vague half truths about my coworker and expecting me to just agree blindly while you evade all of my questions.â A moment of silence passes. Jay says nothing. Finally, you tell him, âIf youâre not going to be honest with me, then I think you should just take me home.â
âWait, ___ââ
âIâm serious, Jay. Iâm not about to go have dinner with you and pretend that this didn't just happen. Just take me home.â Softening a bit at the obvious distress on his face, you add a quiet, âPlease.â
You wonât compromise your boundaries, but you donât have it in you to be needlessly cruel, even if his evasiveness bothers you to no end.Â
Jay just sighs, pulling into an empty parking lot before turning around and heading in the opposite direction. Towards your apartment.Â
The rest of the car ride passes in stilted silence, neither of you willing to break it.Â
Jay is the first one to speak, but itâs not until youâre sliding out of his passenger seat, back turned towards him.Â
âGood night, ___.â
For a moment, you consider just ignoring him. But it feels petty, even for these circumstances. For now, youâll just have to trust that he needs time to find a way to tell you the truth.Â
âGood night,â you tell him. But you still donât look back.
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
READ PART TWO HERE
â.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ëâ.Ë⥠࣪ Ë
note: I AM SO ANNOYEDDDDD this was all supposed to be one long fic, not two parts, but tumblr's post block limit got me. Honestly I don't know how I avoided it this long. Anyway the second part is written and will be posted soon. In the meantime, let me know what you're thinking so far! As always, thank you for reading âĄ
SO criminally underrated but ur so right cause boxer jungwon has not left my mind since the MV dropped thank u for writing this absolute masterpiece đ
my two moods frfr
my two moods frfr
you plus me | heeseung
SUMMARY: it's been six years since heeseung stopped being your friend and the thought of him tagging along an annual camping tradition makes you feel like the world is crashing around you. one misunderstanding and one trip later makes heeseung re-evaluate all he knows, and it makes you believe there might be life after love.
NOTES: first full length fic!!!!!!! enjoy :) x
PAIRING: heeseung x fem!reader (featuring enhypen)
WORD COUNT: 34.1K
WARNINGS: fluff, angst, mentions of poor relationships with parental figures, mentions of infidelity, bad friendships, smut in the form of: fingering, oral (f. receiving), creampie.
***
âPlease donât make me go.â
âY/N, you already said yes. Weâre only gonna be gone for a week.â
âI donât think this is a good idea, Jungwon. You just said that Heeseung is gonna be there.âÂ
Your best friend sighs and sits down on your bed, inspecting the duffle bag you have thatâs half-packed. Your clothes are haphazardly strewn all over your bedding while you plead with him to no avail. Youâre so desperate that you consider getting on your knees to beg.
âIâm sorry for telling you now, but he was able to get people to cover his shift last minute and paid for a spot on the kayaking rental.âÂ
âIf heâs going, Iâd rather save us all the trouble and stay at home.â Jungwon watches you cross your arms over your chest. âEvery time weâre in the same room, itâs just a matter of time before things become awkward.âÂ
âWeâll be outside in the suuuun,â Jungwon says, tilting his head to the side and giving you those amused eyes that he always gives you when heâs trying to convince you to do something with him. You scoff and look away. It almost works.Â
âI bet that itâll be worse since we have a few things planned with the guys already.â
âSo what? You two donât get along. Big deal. Weâve already made reservations to secure a spot on the campsite and set a deposit for kayak rentals.â
âWon, I think you and I view Heeseung very differently. He doesnât just not like me. He hates me.âÂ
âHate is a wrong word.âÂ
You huff. âI donât think you grasp just how weird it is every time weâre together. You could cut the tension with a knife.â
âSeriously, Y/N. Itâs one week. Iâm sure you can survive that. Youâve never missed a camping trip and itâs the first time all of our friends are coming.â Jungwon deadpans and throws a shirt towards your chest, which you hastily grab after being startled by his sudden movement. You know better than to argue with him when he gets like this. âJust help me pack your clothes, dude. Jayâs gonna be here to pick us up tomorrow morning, and you donât want to be under-packed.âÂ
You relent and grumble. âAre you still staying over?â
He nods. âMy apartmentâs in the opposite of where weâre going, and I didnât want to make him drive an extra twenty minutes since he needs to pick Riki up. Just need to drop Maeumi off at my momâs before coming back here. â Your eyes fall for a flat second before you squash that feeling down.
âI didnât invite you over, you know.âÂ
âNo, but donât pretend like youâre not excited,â Jungwon says with a laugh as he pulls your clothes out of the bag and starts to readjust the clothing youâve folded poorly. Seeing your best friend smile tugs a bit at your heartstrings and you canât say that you arenât happy to have him with you. âWe should get you packed now so you donât stress out later.âÂ
Begrudgingly, you allow Jungwon to sort out your clothes for you and pull last minute items youâve yet to pack. It annoys you watching him be so calm when youâre simmering with worry. But you know heâs rightâyouâve invested some money into this getaway, and itâll be the last big outing before you move away from Korea for a year-long job opportunity in Okayama before pursuing your Masterâs degree. Jungwon knows you a little too well, and sometimes it irks you.Â
The end-of-summer camping trip is always one for the books. For as long as you can remember, the two of you have been going camping just before everyone goes back to school to celebrate the beginning of a new academic year with your families. But this time, the trip wasnât just about continuing an annual tradition. It was also to commemorate a new chapter in your life.Â
Youâre a year older than Jungwon. Heâs known you since you were obsessed with learning how to double dutch, and youâve known him since he first learnt how to ride a bike. The two of you started out as neighbors when you moved into the house next to his, and his family had adopted your own like old friends, eventually inviting you and your parents into their annual camping tradition. Even when dynamics changed and people left, the tradition was the only thing that remained a constant for you.
This is the first summer that your loved ones announced they wouldnât be coming along. They all thought it was time for you to embark on new traditions with new people, and nobody seemed to mind the change that much except for you. Jungwon had been ecstatic about it since he invited his friend, Jake, to the camping trip last year. Youâd been wary at first since Jake is friends with Heeseung, but he never brought up your confusing arch-nemesis and chose to have a great trip before you all started university again. Â
Sure, you had a lot of fun. You might even consider last yearâs trip as one for the books. But your mom pulling out of the camping trip and everyone around you agreeing that it was for the best made you feel like your world was crumbling around you.
When you graduated university three months ago (Jungwon swears he didnât cry, but you know better than to believe him), the weight of leaving your home started to sink in. In the blink of an eye, Jungwon wouldnât be a twenty minute drive, and hanging out with all of your friends wouldnât be as easy as it once was. Youâd be in Japan all alone.
This past summer has been a whirlwind as you tried to do everything under the sun, savoring each moment until you wouldnât be able to anymore. Jungwonâs been a good sport about it, never once complaining when you drag him to your latest adventure. He deals with your sudden shift in mood from happy to sad, letting you cry on his shoulder and braving the cliche words you say when telling him youâll miss him a lot.Â
Unlike past seasons, this is the first summer you havenât seen Heeseung very often. Lee Heeseung, who usually keeps his head down and minds his business, always seems to have a bone to pick whenever his eyes settle on you. It confuses you to no end, and he keeps his quips to a minimum when your mutual friends are around, but it doesnât stop you from wondering what you mustâve done to make him act like that towards you. Itâs a shame because that small childhood crush you always had on him was squashed the first time he ignored your presence.Â
None of your friends comment on it much. Theyâre used to the dynamic between the both of you because it's been years of this. Elementary school saw the two of you become friends for the first time and middle school brought more friends into the group. It was in high school that things changed and Heeseung started ignoring you out of nowhere until one Thursday afternoon when heâd told you to leave him alone after pestering him about his change in behavior.Â
The odd tension followed you into university and continued to seep into your life. You donât think youâve ever been in a room with Heeseung where heâs been anything but nonchalant towards you, often acting like you arenât there to begin with. You do your best to put up with it and plaster a smile on your face, but six years have gone by, and you donât think you can handle a seventh. All of your friends seemed to have moved past it. You donât know why you canât.
âDonât think about Heeseung,â Jungwon says with a sigh. âIn fact, donât think at all. Let me handle everything and enjoy this trip before you move to Okayama, okay?â
âOkay, fine. But I want to see Maeumi.â
Jungwon snorts. âSheâs gonna be real pissed when she doesnât see you for a year, you know.â
âDonât remind me.â
Jungwon knows you like the back of your hand and has seen what you bring on these trips enough to know what you like to have in your duffle. He packs things you neglected to pull out because your mind has been elsewhere. As much as he wants to flick your head and tell you to quit overthinking so you can help him, he did tell you to let him handle everything.Â
Your best friend makes you triple check that the two of you didnât miss anything before heading back to his apartment to fetch Maeumi. She jumps into your arms when you squat to pick her up and wonât allow Jungwon to pet her white fur body while sheâs nestled against you. This fondness and the familiar jab of Jungwonâs elbow to your ribcage make your heart ache despite the sweet moment. Youâre really going to miss home.Â
Ever the concerned mothers your mom and Jungwonâs are, they send you with a tray full of sweets for the road. They make you tell them exactly when youâll be picked up and by who (âJongseong, Eomma,â Jungwon says for the umpteenth time) and when you plan to come back. His dad gives you a spare bucket hat for when youâre on the water and an old sweater from his college days when Jungwon complains about how you never pack enough layers. The gesture feels warm since you consider his father to be somewhat of your own.
Leaving them to go back to your house feels a bit bittersweet. A lot of your belongings sit in storage boxes in the garage from when you moved out of your campus apartment upon graduating. Jungwon decided to get an apartment for himself with the money he saved from his part-time job as a busboy at a local chain restaurant. Staying over with you makes it seem silly when you remember he used to live next door.Â
Itâs nine in the evening when the two of you get ready for bed. Jungwon puts your bags by the front door so neither of you would forget while you finish brushing your teeth. He grabs extra blankets from the linen closet and settles onto your L-shaped couch, pulling the fabric just underneath his chin. Your heart feels like itâs sinking in on itself when you think about how this might be the last time youâre able to be so casual around him.Â
âStop overthinking,â he says in the quiet of the night, as if he can hear the thoughts in your head. The living room lights are off and the moonlight is whatâs responsible for illuminating the space.Â
You refrain from throwing your pillow at him. âIâm not overthinking. Youâre overthinking.âÂ
Jungwon snorts. âWe both know thatâs not true. I know youâre scared about Okayama and I know thatâs why youâve been on edge about Heeseung. Youâre usually never this loud about it.â Like always, your best friend is right.Â
âItâs hard not to.â Your meek voice makes Jungwonâs heart lurch. âEverythingâs changed so fast. I feel like I didnât get enough time to properly say goodbye to everyone.â
âYouâll be in Japan, not America. Itâs not like weâll never see you.âÂ
âYeah, but I wonât be able to annoy you for boba and you wonât be coming over to have dinner with my mom and me." Jungwon frowns. Too caught up in making sure you were happy this summer, he hadnât given it that much thought. âI know I wonât be far, but Iâm scared that things will change too much.âÂ
For the first time today, Jungwon doesnât know what to say to make you feel better. âIâll miss you a lot.âÂ
âI know that, dummy. I guessâŚI feel like Iâve been dealing with a lifetime of shittiness and the universe wanted to throw another curveball at me.â Jungwonâs heart softens at your confession. Heâs used to your quick jabs and sarcastic humor. Knowing youâve more afraid than excited makes him upset.Â
âThe universe sucks,â he says, happy that it pulled a laugh out of you. âIâll always be a phone call away and youâll never have to worry about me ignoring you because we both know Iâm gonna blow up your texts anyway.âÂ
âI can always count on you to annoy the hell out of me.â You canât see his face, but no you already assume Jungwonâs sporting a shit-eating grin. Even if you both know the main reason why youâre afraid of living in Okayama, neither of you say it. Youâre grateful that Jungwon doesnât bring it up. âStill, though. You know how I am with change. Iâm really scared that Iâm going to hate it there and not have you to keep me company.â
âLife is crazy and unpredictable but that doesnât mean youâre going to be miserable. I mean, you did a pretty good job of making sure both of us had happy childhoods even though I know you were hurting when we were younger.âÂ
âItâs really hard not to have expectations or think badly about the future when I feel like I took everything for granted.âÂ
âI know, Bug,â Jungwon says, using a nickname from your childhood he reserves for when he thinks you need an extra bit of comfort. âBut youâre the best person I know. You didnât do anything wrong. Life justâŚgets in the way.âÂ
âYeah, I know.â
Jungwon is quiet for a moment. âJust please promise me youâll try to have fun, okay?â
âI know Iâll have fun, Wonnie. Iâm scared that Iâll have too much fun and be a sobbing wreck when we get back.âÂ
The two of you share a laugh. âAlright, fair. Promise me you wonât let Heeseung get under your skin.â
You groan. âIf he doesnât like me, thatâs fine. I donât need everyone to like me. But why go out of his way to act like Iâm scum of the Earth?â
âJust ignore him, okay?â Jungwon pleads. âI know itâs uncomfortable but he paid for a last minute spot. Iâll tell him to be mature about it too.âÂ
And, well, part of you believes Heeseung will listen to Jungwon. Despite being on the younger side in your shared friend group, everyone seemed to listen to your best friend most of the time. Jungwon has an authoritative aspect to himself when heâs refrained from being the silly, happy-go-lucky guy you all know him to be.Â
Itâs quiet for a brief moment with the wind gently tapping on the windows behind you. âI donât know why he doesnât like me.âÂ
Truthfully, neither does Jungwon. âIâm sorry heâs putting you in a tough spot.âÂ
âWon, sometimes I really wonder if he hates my guts. He doesnât talk to me and he never replies to my messages in the group chat. Itâs like I donât exist to him.â
âI think that might be a little extreme.âÂ
âItâs not and you know it.âÂ
Jungwon hums. âWell, at least youâll get away from him when you move to Okayama.â Just like that, all of your worries come flooding right back.
âYeah,â you say meekly. âIâll have Okayama.â
You donât see him, but you know Jungwonâs smiling since you agreed with him for the first time tonight. âThatâs more like it. You have your whole future ahead of yourself, dude. Heeseung is just a blimp. In three weeks, he wonât matter because youâll be having fun in Japan. Just think about that.âÂ
You try not to think about the fears and hesitations you have about starting anew. This time, you wouldnât be going back to university after the camping trip. Youâll have a week and a half back home before youâre boarding your flight and saying goodbye to the place youâve called home for the past two decades. Thinking about the future keeps you up until you hear Jungwonâs snores from the other side of the couch.Â
Unsure of when your mom will be coming home, you snuggle further into the cushions and curl yourself into a ball before falling asleep.Â
***
The next morning, Jungwon wakes up just before you do and you see him and your mom talking before they see you sit up. Barely noticing their hushed tones, you find yourself yawning more than normal and force the blankets off of your body. Your mom fixes you a cup of tea while Jungwon finishes packing, leaving you to freshen up and do the same.Â
âYou know, this trip will be good for you. I can feel it,â your mom says when you sip on your tea. Itâs hot and nearly burns your tongue, but you donât mind. Somehow, that sharp pain makes you feel even more alert than the strong brew.Â
âYou say that every year.âÂ
âYeah, but this time I wonât be with you.âÂ
She laughs when she hears you huff. âBaby, I know you love it when I come on these trips but weâll always have other ones. Weâll have next year too.âÂ
âI just donât get why you and Jungwonâs parents donât want to come on this one.âÂ
âLike we said all those months agoâitâs time for you guys to break tradition and spend some time with your friends before you move to Okayama. Next year, we can rent out the whole campsite if it means we can accommodate us, the Yangs, and your friends.âÂ
Frustration bubbles within you but youâre quick to shut that feeling. âI guess. It wonât be the same.â
âJakeâs going this year, right? You guys had a lot of fun last summer.âÂ
Well, she isnât wrong. âSure, yeah. I had fun with him.â Motherly instincts kick in and she bumps your hip with hers.Â
âI know youâre scared about moving and seeing Heeseung. But youâre much braver than you give yourself credit for. Sometimes people are meant to be lessons and maybe Heeseung is the biggest one of all.â
You throw a fake-disgusted look at her. âDid Jungwon put you up to this?â She laughs and shakes her head, bringing you into her arms. Her lips on the crown of your head feel warm and you donât shy away from her embrace.Â
âNo, but I carried you in my stomach and brought you to term. I like to think I know you pretty well.âÂ
You chuckle. âYeah, I guess you do. Iâll try not to let Heeseung bother me too much.âÂ
âJungwonâs pretty worried, even if he wonât say it. I told him to relax a little. This trip isnât supposed to stress anyone out. Itâs supposed to be a nice getaway before you go back to your normal life.âÂ
âI feel guilty for making Jungwon worry about me. I know heâs still friends with Heeseung, somewhat, even though nobody can figure out why he doesnât like me so much.âÂ
âThat old saying about boys being mean to their crushes is bullshit.âÂ
You pull away and gasp when you hear her swear. âEomma!â Â
âI used to swear like a sailor before I became a mom, you know.â Her eyes light up when she watches you giggle and from the corner of her eye, she can see Jungwon walking back into the living room.Â
âJayâs almost here,â he says, shoving his phone into his back pocket.Â
âDoes he want a cup of tea?âÂ
Jungwon shakes his head. âI think itâs better if we head out as soon as possible. We still have to pick up Riki and then we have a four hour drive to the campsite.âÂ
She looks at the two of you like she has stars in her eyes. Wordlessly, your mom pulls Jungwon underneath her other arm and kisses his forehead before kissing yours. âWhen did you two become so grown up, huh? It feels like just yesterday that Y/N stopped crying whenever she got papercuts.âÂ
Jungwon snickers. âShe still does.â
âHey!â
âAnd it feels like just yesterday that Jungwon stopped needing to sleep with a nightlight.â Jungwonâs cheeks turn pink and you snicker at him.Â
âTime flew by fast,â says Jungwon. She lets the two of you go and the doorbell rings. âThat must be Jay.âÂ
Indeed, Jay is standing behind the door and bows at your mom before she offers to help you both carry things to his car. They make small talk while the two of you put them into the trunk (he loves to cook while she loves to bake. Likewise, they enjoy talking about this with each other). Jayâs Jeep is far too expensive for you to wrap your head around, but you donât complain when he offers to drive you in it. A yellow rubber duck sits on his dashboard and it never fails to bring a smile to your face whenever you see it. You wave goodbye to your mom and stick your body halfway out the window until youâre restricted by the seat belt.
âCan we get coffee on the way?â you ask, yawning into your palm. Itâs eight oâclock and everyoneâs agreed to arrive around noon for lunch and to relax before sleeping.Â
âYeah, good idea. Letâs pick up Riki and then stop somewhere.âÂ
Jay plugs his phone into the aux cord at a red light and turns on some music. You like driving with him because you always discover new songs you obsess over for the next few days. It brings a pang in your heart when you think about how this will have to stop when you move to Japan. The two of you have created many playlist blends and heâs curated a few for you. While youâre not as musically inclined like your friends may be, Jay is the only person whoâs willing to break things down for you in depth so that you can understand them too. Itâs nice, especially when he talks about his own musical talents. You can see why he loves music so much and you donât mind if he sends you a million songs to listen to. He turns onto the freeway and you know youâre about to see Riki soon.
Heâs about to be a first-year in the university you graduated from. He moved to Korea from Japan a few weeks prior to get a lay of the land and become more comfortable in his surroundings. Originally planning on enjoying your summer until he reached out to you, your mother chided your decision and told you to help Riki move into his new dormitory.Â
It was the least you could do for your half-brother.Â
Begrudgingly, you spent a lot of time making sure Riki felt comfortable and settled in when you couldâve been soaking up the sun. Maybe thatâs why you were so adamant about hanging out with Jungwon whenever you could. Being around Riki made you feel drained because his mere presence was enough to remind you of why you started losing faith in people.Â
The dorms arenât too far from your house. The drive there is silent, save for the music coming from Jayâs stereo. It gives you plenty of time to think about what the next week or so might look like. Avoiding Heeseung is out of the question since there will be eight of you participating in the same activities together. Youâre not worried about having to watch over Riki too much either. Before moving to Korea, he met Jungwon the first summer he spent a few weeks vacationing here and they instantly became friends. He introduced Riki to the people youâd be camping with too. Without fail, the seven of them were always up to no good when he was in town.Â
Spending three weeks with him in your neighborhood felt like someone was trying to set your life ablaze. He was so young back then, barely speaking Korean until you had to translate conversations into Japanese for him. You tried to mask disdain for having to help him, but even then, Riki understood why you were hesitant to have him in your life. If he were in your position, heâd probably feel the same way about you.Â
He didnât come to Korea very often but started to when he had school recess for the holidays and summer breaks. Since he expressed an interest in attending university in Korea, it felt like the right decision to send Riki whenever school wasnât in session. Heâd stay with his paternal grandparents and saw you every so often when you were both invited to the same place. Neither of you made a real effort to keep up with each other on social media or over the phone. At this time, Riki followed you on Instagram and you hadnât bothered to follow him back. In all honesty, you didnât see the point.Â
You held a lot of resentment over Riki for things you know you canât blame him for. But with new life changes that came your way, Riki seemed like the perfect scapegoat. He feels it sometimes, the way you pull him in just to push him away when the moment gets too familiar. He shoves down his feelings, choosing to treasure when you laugh with him.Â
The two of you are doing somewhat better nowadays. You followed him back on Instagram the night after you dropped him off at the airport at the behest of your grandparents. They insisted Riki arrive at the airport four hours early despite the flightâs duration equating to two and a half hours. You suspected they wanted to force you into spending a little bit of alone time with your half-brother and get to know each other.Â
To your surprise, the two of you got along pretty well. Riki was a dweeb trying to mask himself as cool. You bought him ice cream (pretending like you didnât see him smiling so hard that he forced it off of his face) and sat in your car for two hours to talk. He found out you were a genius when it came to mathematics, a subject he did not excel in, and you found out heâs in a hip hop dance crew and wants to study dancing in Korea. Riki showed you a few clips of him dancing and from the corner of your eye, you could see how happy he was to be sharing this moment with you. It made your heart twinge and guilt crept up your spine when you think of all the times youâve blown him off. You said goodbye to him at the gate and he surprised you with the first hug heâs ever given you.Â
Still, itâs a bit awkward when the two of you spend any time together without your friends acting as buffers. It irks you that Riki and Heeseung get along so well because they share similar interests and are often awake at the same time, especially during the midnight hour. Part of you wondered if Heeseung would tell you all about your ârivalryâ and how the two of you didnât get along. If he did, Riki never let you know it because heâs been the same Riki youâve known since you first met him three years ago.Â
You can tell Heeseung is a bit irritated, too, that your half-brother still chooses to be nice to you. In fact, you realize heâs annoyed at everyone about this, especially Jungwon. You donât call him out on it because you know itâll spark a useless argument that makes you and everyone else feel upset. How Heeseung has the energy and stamina to avoid you for hours on end is strange to you.Â
You and Jungwon meet Riki at the front door while Jay gets out of the car to make room for his belongings and the lawn chairs his grandparents dropped off for this specific trip. Thereâs exactly eight of them and they somehow all fit into the rear with all of the other cooking gear heâs packed. You assume the other car has everything needed for pitching tents and fishing.
âHi,â Riki says before you can acknowledge him. He steps forward like heâs about to throw his arms around you but stops himself. âGood morning.âÂ
âMorning, Riki,â you say while grabbing the duffle bag from his shoulder. âLet me put this in the car. You and Wonnie can load the chairs.âÂ
âAye, aye, captain.âÂ
Itâs Rikiâs first time on the camping trip and you find yourself a bit more nervous with him coming. Heâs not someone whoâs been camping before and you wonder if any of the other guys are going to look out for him. Jungwon, for as responsible as he is, tends to turn into a younger version of himself when heâs with your half-brother. You furrow your eyebrows when you put his duffle bag in Jayâs trunk as he rearranges and waits for the two boys to load everything in before settling back into the car.Â
Riki and Jungwon immediately hop in the backseat and youâre quite pleased that you donât have to call shotgun. They talk about things you donât understand while Jay starts the car and resumes manning the aux cord. That strange feeling of nervousness creeps back into your stomach. You turn around and startle Riki when you look at him.Â
âDo you have everything you need?â you ask him.Â
âYes,â Riki says with a nod. âI have my water bottle, my Swiss army knife, and sunblock.âÂ
âBug spray?âÂ
âJungwon says heâs bringing a few bottles.â
âSwimming trunks?â
âCâMon, Y/N. Weâre gonna be camping by a lake. Thatâs the first thing I packed.â
âToothbrush?â
âSecond thing I packed.â
âEnough shirts and socks?â
âOkay,â Jay says, pulling your wrist to get you to look at the road. âRikiâs got everything he needs and if he doesnât, Iâm sure someone else would let him use or borrow it.â
âIâm just making sure heâs got everything so we donât need to stop somewhere,â you mutter, slinking into your seat while Jay sighs. You donât catch it, but Riki sits behind you with a happy smile on his face.Â
âRelax. Weâre trying to make the most before summer ends. You deserve that too.â You know Jayâs right. He smiles when you fix your posture and hands you his phone. âYou know my passcode. Queue up whatever you want.âÂ
You do just that, especially since Jungwon and Riki are engrossed in a conversation about God knows what. You think of interrupting them to ask what they want to listen to but ultimately decide to play a few songs you and Jay could jam out to and some from Jungwonâs playlists. You also try to remember the songs Riki has danced to in his Instagram videos and the musicians he posts on his stories and add them to the queue too.Â
âThanks for letting us come on this trip,â Jay tells you with chatter in the background, not once taking his eyes off of the road. âI know itâs a thing you and Jungwon do with your families.âÂ
âEh, it was bound to happen anyway. Jake was the only one here last summer and I knew it was a matter of time.âÂ
âStill, I know how youâve been feeling lately and it must be overwhelming to have so many people around you right now.â Damn. Jay is almost as receptive as Jungwon is.Â
You donât bother lying to him. âYeah, I think Iâm just scared about starting my life in Okayama. I know a few people but itâs not like here. I thought it was what I wanted to do when I accepted the position but now I canât help but feel like I made a mistake.âÂ
âItâs not a mistake if you believed in it enough to do it all those months ago. I mean, thereâs a reason why youâre moving.âÂ
âI guess.â
âYou donât give yourself enough credit, dude. Youâre like, a fucking wizard when it comes to numbers and even Jake is speechless. You know how he feels about math and physics.âÂ
That makes you laugh. âIt feels kinda nerdy to love math so much but fuck it. It got me a paid yearâs worth of employment before I earn my Masterâs.â
âSee? Not so bad, isnât it?â You suppose itâs not. âJunwon, can you please tell the others that weâre about to stop for coffee then be on our way?â You see the notifications on your phone.Â
wonton: we just picked up riki
jaeyunnie: whoâs we
wonton: me jay and yn
jaeyunnie: AYOOOOOOO YN
you: JAEYUNIE :DD
jaeyunnie: idk why i thought jay was driving alone. whatever this is about to be the best camping trip of my Life. even better than last year
sun sun: is it just me or is jake always really fucking dramatic. also iâm lowkey offended i wasnât invited last year âŚ
jaeyunnie: shut Up u know nothing about me sunoo. and u were in bejing how tf could you have gone with us
sun sun: so much attitude đ
fanghoon: yn save me PLEASE. iâm in a car filled with animals
sun sun: HEY
jaeyunnie: who are you calling an animal big guy ?
you: sunghoon what makes you think i can do thatÂ
you: jk come over here ~i will protect you~
fanghoon: Thank You. Itâs Literally 8am
jaeyunnie: u guys need to become morning people
you: pass
sun sun: PASSÂ
sun sun: noona we are the same đââď¸
you: i know thatâs right
wonton: weâre gonna stop for coffee before heading to the campsiteÂ
jaeyunnie: oh shit we should make heeseung stop for coffee too
wonton: jay says to stop blowing up his phone in the group chat. weâll text you when we stop for gas and when weâve arrived. bye!!!
***
After one stop to fill up Jayâs gas tank (you paid for him as a thank you) and a snack run (Jungwon and Riki split the cost), the four of you are at the campsite in no time. Youâre all somewhat grateful that itâs a little bit cloudy outside because the sun was killing you on the two-hour mark of your road trip. The weather is a little cooler and you tug on the sweater that Jungwonâs dad gave you. Â
You see your other friends park just after you do. Jungwon and Riki are first to get out of the car and greet them like they havenât seen the group in years while you and Jay take your time getting out of your seats. Since when did your joints become so stiff? You blame it on the fact that you woke up from a nap just a few minutes before you arrived.Â
âThis place was hard to find,â you hear Heeseung say from a distance. You try not to let it dampen your mood.Â
âWhereâs Y/N?â Youâre sure that was Jake.Â
âWaking up, probably,â says Jungwon. âShe took a nap in the car and we just woke her up.âÂ
âThe drive wasnât even that long.â You assume your best friend gives Heeseung some kind of reaction before the latter apologizes quickly.Â
Jake is by the passenger door as you open it and looks at you like a dog who wants to be taken out on a walk. He holds the handle to the door and bounces in his shoes until you push yourself out of the car. The loud slamming of the door behind you makes you wince. Jake pulls you into a hug faster than you can process.Â
âI missed you dude,â Jake says. He puts his arm over your shoulder and slowly leads you to the group. âDid you have a good summer?â
âYou know, despite the incredibly hot weather that made me feel like I would sweat to death, summer wasnât so bad. How was Brisbane?â
âI missed the heat,â Jake says with a pout. âBut it was pretty good to be back home for a month. I really missed my parents and my brother.âÂ
âIâm sure they missed you too.â
Jungwon spots you. âYour eyes are so puffy.â He takes his thumbs and tries to put more color underneath your eyes and onto your cheeks. Riki, Sunoo, and Jay have slipped away to start setting up camp.
Jake laughs beside you when you swat Jungwonâs hands away and lets his own arms fall when you lurch forward to give him a taste of his own medicine. He always liked that Jungwon was able to bring out a childish side to you because heâs always seen you carry yourself like you had to shoulder the weight of the world. Watching you chase Jungwon as he tried to escape your pinching fingers made him a bit more happier knowing youâd have friends like him to return to when you came back from Japan.Â
Heeseung, however, rolls his eyes and speaks low. âSheâs so childish.âÂ
âDude,â Sunghoon sighs in exasperation. âWeâre gonna be with her for a week. You need to quit making those comments.âÂ
Heeseung shrugs. âWhat? Itâs not like she can hear what Iâm saying.âÂ
âYeah, but we can. Weâre friends with her too, Heeseung.âÂ
The eldest tries to hold in his disdain. âYeah, whatever. Iâll keep shit to myself.âÂ
âJust for now,â Jake encourages. âY/N never starts anything with you but sometimes you say something that goes a little too far. No one is asking you to be her best friend.â
âJust remember it was Y/Nâs mom and Jungwonâs parents who invited all of us,â Sunghoon reminds his friend. âWe wouldnât be here without them and if I recall correctly, you really wanted to come when you found out we were all planning to go.â Heeseung wants to argue and justify why heâs annoyed but canât find a good enough reason.Â
âYouâre right,â he relents. âIâll make nice but do not expect me to do shit for her.â
âWe arenât.â Sunghoon pats Heeseungâs back. âYouâve got this. Itâs supposed to be a fun trip before we all go back to reality. All we want is one week where you two donât create tension.âÂ
âI can do that.â Jake and Sunghoon share a look between the two of them when Heeseung isnât looking and pray that he means it.
When Jungwon decides heâs out of breath, he accepts his fate and runs into Sunghoonâs arms when you outstretch your arms to pinch his cheeks and pull them apart like heâs made out of dough. The broken laughter coming from your best friend makes you laugh too. Everyone, save for Heeseung, laughs when Jungwonâs face becomes distorted due to your fingers.Â
Eventually, you pull away from him and he starts to grab his duffle bag and the lawn chairs. The three of you follow suit once you realize youâre missing a few people. You lift your duffle over your shoulder and put on your hiking backpack while trying to hold more lawnshairs than you can carry.Â
âWoah,â Sunghoon says as he catches a falling chair. âLet me help.â
âThanks, Hoon. I donât know why I thought I could carry two chairs at once.âÂ
âYouâre strong but youâre also carrying a fuck ton of things.âÂ
He smiles at you and it makes you laugh. You havenât seen much of Sunghoon over the summer because heâs been working nonstop at a local ice rink, teaching kids how to skate in back to back summer classes. Sunghoon is sometimes too tired to hang out after work or falls asleep on your couch whenever he hangs out with you to watch movies. Your mom thinks itâs a bit endearing and never has the heart to wake him up. Between Sunghoonâs impromptu sleepovers, Jungwon and Sunooâs unannounced visits, Jayâs cooking and baking sessions in your kitchen, and Jake appearing out of nowhere every few nights for dinner, youâre starting to think your house might have an unspoken open door policy.Â
Heeseung is the only one who doesnât frequent your house if you donât count Riki, who doesnât spend enough time in Korea to become a permanent fixture. The only time Heeseung has been to your house is when he dropped Jungwon off after he had one too many to drink and heâd been adamant about going to your place because it was closer to the bar in comparison to your apartment. One awkward conversation later and Heeseung was out of your driveway. Jungwon woke up with a hangover the next morning and you were grateful your mother chose that weekend to take a girlâs trip with her best friends.
You donât invite Heeseung over like you do with the others. The only reason why you havenât deleted his phone number is because of the big group chat youâre in to discuss plans. He never responds to your texts in it and you donât respond to him unless absolutely necessary. Sometimes you catch him laughing at your messages only to retract it when he realizes itâs you who sent it. Itâs been six years of dealing with this and as much as it confuses you, part of you has learned to tune out this behavior and focus on the other friends you do share.Â
Sunghoon must know youâre thinking about his friend because he looks at you like heâs been trying to get your attention. âSorry,â you apologize. âWhat did you say?âÂ
âI said thanks for letting us crash your trip. I know this is something you and Jungwon do with your families every year. Canât help but feel a little special that we get to come along.âÂ
You coo at him. âDo you remember when you could barely look me in the eye, let alone tell me something as sweet as that?â Sunghoon rolls his eyes.Â
âOh, shut up. You know Iâm an introvert.â You bump your hip with his.Â
âIâm just messing with you. But in all seriousness, itâll be fun having you guys around.â
âIâm excited to see what you and Jungwon do every year.âÂ
âNothing too out of the ordinary. Swim, eat a lot of food, kayak, hike, the usual. But thereâs one spot we usually go to, just he and I, thatâs away from the main spot on the lake.âÂ
âHowâd you find it?â
âJungwon found it by accident when we were younger. He said it was gonna be our secret spot and told me not to tell our parents. I think the whole campground panicked for an hour or so until somebody found us in the clearing.âÂ
Sunghoon snorts. âYeah, that sounds like you two.âÂ
âThey told us to tell them where weâd be and promised to leave us alone if we gave them a heads up. Itâs not really noticeable if you donât know where to look, but itâs so beautiful. It leads to another part of the lake and itâs always so peaceful and quiet.âÂ
âIn that case, Iâm honored that youâre showing us.âÂ
âEh, itâs about time we add new members to the club.â
âOh?â He raises his eyebrow. âThereâs a club now?â
âMhm. Gotta pay me two fish to join.âÂ
âLike you know how to fish.â You bump your hip with his again.
âThere are things you guys donât know about me, Park. Just wait and see.âÂ
Sunghoon lets the conversation end when he finds himself at the campsite where Jay and Riki have started to organize things and make spots for tents. Itâll take a few trips for all of the supplies and camping gear to be fully unloaded so you each take turns until everything is sitting in a big pile, waiting to be sorted.Â
âOkay, Iâm a bit out of my depth,â says Sunoo, who kicks around a rock as he speaks. âI, for one, will need help pitching a tent.â
âIâll help you,â you say, nodding for him to come over.Â
âYou can pitch a tent?â Heeseung asks like he doesnât believe you.Â
You nod and pick up a bag. âYeah. I do this every year.â You donât say it with any bite in your tone but Heeseung, who forgot this fact, feels like an idiot for making a fool of himself in front of his friends. He chooses to look away from you for now.Â
âWe have three tents we need to put up,â Jay says. âIâm thinking we pitch those now, have a snack and water break, and then start to organize before we eat lunch.âÂ
âSounds good.â You agree. âIâd rather have everything set up so we can enjoy our evening. Besides, we should do this before it gets dark.âÂ
âRight.â Jungwon clears his throat and hands out each bag, assigning your friends based on the size of the tent. Everybody gets to work, clearing the flat ground of rocks and debris before deciding where your tents will go. You all hammer the groundsheet into the dirt before assembling the poles.
You teach Sunoo the basics and give him pointers when he struggles to connect the joints. Heâs learning much faster than he gives himself credit for because in no time, heâs jumping for joy when he finally manages to grasp what heâs supposed to be doing. Itâs nice to watch him be so happy over this, as Sunoo originally declined the invitation to go camping since he isn't a huge fan of the outdoors. But now itâs like you wouldâve never guessed that because heâs pretty quick to pick up your lessons.
Your tent is pitched up in no time. You roam around like a camp counselor to see if anybody needs help. Jake, Heeseung, Jay, and Jungwon seem to know what theyâre doing and have the biggest tent halfway set up. Sunghoon and Riki look like they need a bit of assistance. Sunghoonâs figuring it out quickly while Riki fumbles with his fingers.Â
âYou have to do it slowly,â you say from beside him. Riki hands you the attachments when you beckon him to hand it over and show him slowly. âLike this. See? If you do it slowly, theyâll catch easier and itâll be smoother when we feed them into the tent.âÂ
âOh.â Riki nods when your trick works. âThanks, Y/N.âÂ
The three of you pitch up your tent too, with Riki handing you the pegs to hammer them into the ground after zipping the door. Sunghoon dusts off his hands on his shorts and takes a big gulp from his water bottle. Sunooâs mom packed enough fruit and onigiri for a midday snack, and all eight of you feast quietly after exerting more power than anyone anticipated. You really need to start working out again.Â
âBefore we clear out and organize everything else, we should probably figure out who sleeps where,â Jungwon says. âThat way, we can put our stuff in our respective tents and have that out of the way.âÂ
âGood idea,â Jake says. âHow should we do this? Rock, paper, scissors?âÂ
âSure, but I think Y/N and I should share a tent.â Heeseung rolls his eyes at Jungwon and you see it from the corner of your vision.
âWhat?â Riki asks. âWhy?âÂ
âBecause all of you get too comfortable around her and forget she doesnât want to hear you snore or see your boxers in the morning.â Jungwon laughs. âItâll be easier since weâve been camping together anyway. Sheâs used to rooming with me and Iâm used to waking up next to a Zombie.âÂ
âI hate you.â Jungwon merely smiles at you. Â
âYou just want to get out of sharing a tent with three people,â says Sunghoon. Jungwon nods.Â
âThat too.âÂ
âRock, paper, scissors it is,â Sunoo says, getting his hands ready.Â
They all battle one another until the rooming situation is sorted. You and Jungwon will share a tent while Sunoo and Jay share the other smaller one. That leaves Jake, Sunghoon, Riki, and Heeseung sharing the big one. You all throw your belongings in before helping Jay organize the portable stove, chairs, and other things that need to be stored properly.Â
When all is said and done an hour later, Jay and Sunghoon start a barbecue. All of you are spent, sagging your bodies in the camping chairs that are positioned around the campfire. You know youâll need to fetch some wood from the outpost if you all want to have a bonfire. But that can be a task for later.
âYour mom makes the best onigiri,â Riki groans as he shoves another bite in his mouth. âIt reminds me so much of home.âÂ
Sunoo smiles proudly. âSheâs the best, isnât she?â Jake, who is busy stuffing his face with sliced watermelons, agrees. They pick at the leftovers from snack time and Jay chides them for it.
âDonât spoil yourselves too much or you wonât have an appetite for lunch.âÂ
âHeâs so bossy,â Riki says as he leans over towards you. âBut itâs kinda nice having someone who does shit and takes charge.âÂ
You nod. âMhm. Usually Jungwon and I are the ones spearheading everything but Jayâs got some camping experience. Iâm fine taking the backseat.âÂ
âDo you camp a lot? Besides this tradition, I mean.â Riki watches you shake your head.Â
âNo, not really. This is as much as I can handle. Itâs more like a gigantic lake house with hot showers and a few convenience stores miles away to replenish food if we run out of anything.â
âIt looks like you know what youâre doing.â
âThatâs because I do, Riki.âÂ
He blushes. âRight. Thanks for helping me with my tent earlier.âÂ
âDonât sweat it. Youâll be able to do it without my help in no time.â That brings a shimmer of hope to the younger boy sitting next to you.Â
Heeseung avoids looking at you when Riki purposefully sits beside you on the empty lawn chair. He doesnât completely understand why the younger boy likes you so much. Heeseng thinks youâre a nuisance and that you overstay your welcome at hangouts. But Riki clings to you like youâre his lifeline and he gets that youâre his half-sister and all, but you werenât the most welcoming to him when he started hanging out in Korea more often. Riki would never tell Heeseung the details about his past and he never tried to pry past what the youngest would reveal. Six years of avoiding you made him forget every single detail he once knew about you when youâd both been somewhat friendly towards one another.Â
There were some days when you wouldnât make room in your schedule to see Riki as often as heâd wanted you to and he lamented that to Heeseung. But every time heâd start to talk about how unfair it was for you to pick and choose when you got to see our younger brother, Riki would defend you every time. He didnât get it, feeling the frustration bubble to the surface before realizing that it wasnât his place to question why Riki acted the way he did. Sure, he was younger than Heeseung, but he respected family matters and didnât care about you enough to figure you out anyway.Â
He keeps these feelings to himself mostly. The friends you share donât really understand why he has a distaste for you and he refuses to elaborate because the memory is too painful, and instead chooses to bury these feelings. Itâs nobodyâs business anyway. He certainly doesnât want to start anything with Riki involved because he would feel guilty for putting him in an uncomfortable position, and because he knows heâd defend you regardless. Even though youâve made progress to open up yourself to Riki, Heeseung still scoffs whenever he sees the two of you together.Â
By the time lunch is done, all eight of you are crowded around a table built into the ground, feasting on meat and vegetables. Everybody thanks Jay for cooking and the seven of you agree to clean up after every meal so Jay doesnât have to work twice as hard. Youâre not sitting too far from Heeseung (to both of your dismay). Sunghoon purposely sat in between you both when he realized the other empty spots were filling up and didnât want to chance an uproar during mealtime.Â
âSo,â Sunoo starts to say after closing the bottle cap on his cola. âWhatâs on the agenda for today? Personally, I think we should take it easy until tomorrow.âÂ
âI agree.â Jungwon nods. âWeâve done a lot and drove for a while. I say we relax and do whatever until dinner.âÂ
âIâm going to nap, thatâs for sure.â You all snicker at Jay. Typical.Â
âMe too,â says Riki.Â
âIs anyone up for walking around the lake?â Jake asks.Â
âI could go,â Sunghoon says from next to you.Â
âSure,â you finally say, âwhy not.âÂ
âI think Iâll hang back here.â Heeseung says it almost immediately and it stings a bit. âIâll probably nap too.âÂ
âI want to read.â Sunoo changes the direction of the conversation before anyone can pick up on the awkwardness and you throw him a smile.Â
âI think Iâll join you.â Jungwon pulls a book from his backpack and the pair begin to brainstorm where they should sit. Natural chatter falls back into place and you focus on eating, as your stomach has been grumbling pretty loud.Â
Heeseung breaks the silence. âCan someone pass me the pineapple?â You donât register that your arm has moved on its own accord and pass the container to him. Heeseung gives you a look you canât decipher and itâs only then you realize what youâve done. Sunghoon gulps.Â
âThanks,â Heeseung mutters, taking the pineapple from your hands. Youâre pleasantly surprised he doesnât make a comment about how he isnât craving it anymore and watch him eat some from the corner or your eye.Â
By nightfall, all of you are too exhausted to sit around the campfire. The hot shower stalls provide the kind of warmth you would go crazy without and you find yourself contemplating underneath the water longer than youâd like to admit. A plethora of thoughts run across your mind and they drift from the events of today, Riki, Heeseung, and moving to Okayama. Your friends donât bring up the move and youâre grateful for that.Â
When you return from the shower and from brushing your teeth, Jungwon asks if youâre okay. You lie and say youâre fine but exhausted and he lets it go, too tired himself to pry the truth out of you. The last thing you think about is Heeseung. You send a silent prayer out into the universe and ask that the two of you are able to make nice during this camping trip. Then, you fall asleep.
***
Everybody is up bright and early after a good nightâs sleep. All of you agree todayâs the best day for a short hike to get used to the terrain before you explore harder trails. You and Jungwon know the hike like the back of your hand and lead the group expertly through trees and dirt pathways. All of you have a backpack for your essentials, and each of you has packed a portable lunch for when you reach the top of the peak at the end of the trail.Â
Halfway into the hike is not as uphill as you recalled it to be. The scenery is still breathtaking and you temporarily forget that Heeseung is burning eyes in the back of your skull. Last nightâs prayer seems to be working, as he hasnât said a word to you or argued with you when you started leading everybody towards the start of the hiking path. Youâre not sure whether his feelings about you changed or if he knows youâre the literal expert since you grew up here, but you donât think you care either way.Â
Heeseung makes a false step and twists his ankle. You hear the commotion behind you and turn around. He stumbles and a sharp edge of a branch catches his thigh, creating a gash that starts to bleed. Everyone crowds around him when they realize it and make him sit on a large rock and he feels like shouting at you to back away when you start to walk towards him.
âGuys, Iâm fine. Itâs not that bad.â He feels more embarrassed than hurt.Â
Jake looks concerned. âDude, your leg is bleeding.âÂ
âItâs just a cut.âÂ
âLet me inspect it.âÂ
You pull your backpack off of you and take out your water bottle and first aid kit. You drop to your knees to inspect the wound and Heeseung refrains from coughing at the awkward position from where heâs sitting. You donât seem phased by it, however, as you push up the fabric of his shorts and use your water bottle to clean the dirt from his wound.Â
Your face is somewhat close to his leg and he jumps when your hand touches his thigh. The guys mistake his sudden movements as pain and rush to help stabilize him. Heeseung insists that heâs fine and brushes them off of him. He wonât admit that his fidgeting is because the last thing he expected you to do was patch him up. He figures Jungwon would be good at that kind of stuff, not you.Â
Heeseung winces at the sudden contact of water in his wound. âOkay, maybe it hurts a little.â
âYou wonât need stitches or anything, but I should get you cleaned up and put a bandage on it.â
Heeseung watches as you do your best to clean it with the wipes you have and ointment that will keep any debris out. The wound isnât too gnarly but itâs no small papercut either. He watches as you expertly deal with the wound and keeps quiet, even though he feels uncomfortable and wishes he could turn back time to avoid any of this. Itâs awkward to know your hands are on him because he feels like ants are crawling up his leg.
âI think we should probably go back and rest a little,â says Jungwon. âWe can eat lunch there and maybe hang out for a bit.â
âGood idea,â Heeseung mutters when youâve stepped away from him. Sunghoon and Riki each help him up and allow the eldest to use them as crutches as he limps back to the base. He mutters a quiet âthank youâ in your direction and doesnât pay attention to see your reaction. You feel like you got your hopes up for nothing because he turns his back towards you before you can smile at him. Defeated, you try to put your best self on display and follow everybody back to your tents.Â
Heeseung decides to rest on the chairs and eat his lunch there. You arenât particularly eager to spend any time with him and figure heâd appreciate it if you werenât around while he recovered. You take your sack of lunch and tell Jungwon youâll be walking around the lake like you did yesterday. He tells you to be safe and then youâre on your way.Â
âHey, wait up!â You turn around to see Jake running until heâs caught up with you. Itâs a bit unfair how he barely runs out of breath when he jogs. Itâs definitely because heâs an athlete, but itâs still unfair.Â
âCare to join?âÂ
âCanât a guy accompany his friend on a nice, brisk walk?âÂ
That makes you laugh. âYeah, sure.â You fall in a quiet tandem enjoying the silence and the environment for a while. âI had a lot of fun camping last year. I think my favorite part was kayaking or when Jungwon accidentally dropped his entire sâmore in the fire.âÂ
You snicker at the memory. âHis mom was so mad that he kept eating the marshmallows.âÂ
âYeah, it was pretty funny. I still feel kind of embarrassed that I managed to flip over in my kayak somehow.âÂ
âEh, it makes for a good story.â
âItâs not my fault Jungwon slammed into me!â Jake defends when you begin to laugh. âSeriously, Y/N. How the fuck do you put up with that menace?âÂ
âThe same way you do, dummy.â
Jake bites into his sandwich. âI love Jungwon.â
âMe too.âÂ
âOur parents loved having you come too. Jungwonâs dad loves fishing with people.â
âI still canât believe how many we were able to catch. Iâm sad the guys werenât there because they keep shitting on me for not being able to catch any when we go together.âÂ
You bump your shoulder against his. âThey donât know what I know. Iâm sure my mom has pictures somewhere.âÂ
âHow is she, by the way?â Jake asks.Â
âEommaâs doing alright. She just got a huge bonus at work for managing a really difficult client and completing this campaign sheâs been working on. It stressed her out for months but Iâm happy if sheâs happy.âÂ
âThatâs awesome. Iâm happy for her.âÂ
âHow are things with your family? Howâs Layla?âÂ
âMy parents are actually on a trip to the States to see some family and my brother just got promoted at his job. Iâm super proud of him. He worked really hard for it. Laylaâs doing okay too. Sheâs staying with my cousin until I come back.âÂ
âI miss her.â
âShe probably misses you too.âÂ
The two of you settle into a comfortable pace and eat your lunches. There are no awkward moments with Jake. Something about his personality makes everyone around him divulge their deepest secrets and he always seems to know what to say, too. You havenât been close to him for very long but you know him well enough to know that heâll keep anything you say between the two of you.Â
âI know you probably feel a little awkward with Heeseung around but youâve been handling it really well.â Jakeâs tone softens and he looks straight ahead as he talks, breaking the temporary silence. âI donât know what goes on in his head half the time.âÂ
âI just wish I knew what I did so I can apologize and fix it. He gets mad every time I ask and accuses me of bringing up bad memories for him. I donât know what to do, Jake. It feels like he gets along with everybody in my life but me.âÂ
âWe all know Heeseungâs been through a lot and has trouble talking about them sometimes. Heâs been in therapy but we had to really convince him to set an appointment.âÂ
You scoff. âSounds like him.â Jake doesnât disagree.Â
âI guess I understand that having to deal with shitty cards makes a person go insane.â
âSure. I just wish I wasnât the scapegoat.â Jake winces but tries not to let you see.Â
âSorry youâre going through this. Sunghoon and I made him swear to be on his best behavior.âÂ
âItâs a little awkward still but at least he isnât picking a fight with me. Although, who knows how long thatâll last.â
âHave a little more faith in him, Y/N.â You deadpan and he holds his hand up in mock surrender. âOkay, next topic. How are you feeling about Japan?âÂ
Your shoulders slump. âAwful.âÂ
Jakeâs head quirks like he doesnât understand. âWhat do you mean? You were really excited when you got the job offer.âÂ
âI know butâŚit doesnât feel right anymore. My whole life is about to change and I donât know how I feel about that.â
âYou donât have to know anything. In fact, Iâd be a little worried if you had your shit figured out.â You punch his arm. âItâs really cool that youâre leaving Korea to pursue your dream. I know how hard it is to leave everything behind for a better opportunity.â
You look at him softly and nod because you know he empathizes with you. Back when you first met him, heâd moved from Australia to Korea because your university had one of the best physics programs in the world. He knew how to speak your native Korean but wasnât confident in conversing back then, and you had your fair share of mentoring him in formal greeting and the basics when it came to interacting with people. Jake definitely understands where youâre coming from and doesnât want you to feel alone.Â
âWeâll always be here for you too,â he reassures. âWe wonât be too far away and you can come home whenever you have the time and arenât working.âÂ
âI know, but it feels like everything in my life is changing at the same time and thereâs nothing I can do to stop it. I wish I was a freshman again. I wish I could turn back time and really enjoy my life before I make a life changing decision.âÂ
âYouâre really torn up about this, arenât you?â
Nodding, you look at the ground beneath you. âThere are so many things Iâve been dealing with over the past few years or so and it feels like Iâm giving up on things if I just leave. Everything feels so scary, you know? I feel like Iâm being suffocated every time I open my eyes.Â
âOn top of starting a new job in a place Iâm not that familiar with, Iâm leaving my mom behind. Iâve never lived farther than an hour away from her and I hate knowing that I wonât be able to see her whenever I want. Not to mention Riki studying in Korea means Iâll be spending even more time with him.â
Jake chooses not to comment and nods with his lips pressed into a thin line. He doesnât know whatâs going on between the two of you but has his suspicions after hearing your hushed conversations with Jungwon. Even before the two of you became as close as you are, Jake has always looked out for you because he knows Jungwon loves you like a sister. It was easy to tell that youâd fallen into some sort of depression as you graduated high school and barely managed to pull yourself out of it before graduating university.Â
Riki has always been a sore subject for you. Jake doesnât bring him up unless you do, no matter how much he adores the younger boy. The relationship you have with him is complicated but it tears him up inside to see Riki longing for you when the two of you are together. Jake knows thereâs a great deal of tension that follows both of you too. He could feel it the first time you brought up having a half-brother and started to put the pieces together.Â
âI love that Rikiâs more comfortable in Korea. I really do,â you confess. âI love that my friends get along with him too, but part of me is scared that youâll all forget about me since heâll be here to take my place.âÂ
âYou are not replaceable.â Jake looks at you when he says it. âYouâre about to chase your dream, Y/N. None of us will throw our friendship down the drain just because we wonât be able to see you everyday. Riki is great but heâs not you.â
Heâs pleased when you lift the corners of your mouth into a small smile. âThanks, Jake. I donât know where this fear came from.âÂ
âYouâre dealing with a lot. Itâs understandable. I donât know much about whatâs going on between you and Riki, and you donât have to tell me, but you should know that he loves you a lot and would never think about dishonoring you while youâre gone.âÂ
âI know. I have a lot of pent up emotions and therapy feels like it isnât working. I guess I should give myself some more time. But with the move, itâs been hard to focus on anything. I donât want Riki to feel like I donât want him in my life but itâs hard to make room for somebody you didnât know existed until a few years ago.âÂ
Jake nods. âYeah, I get that. It feels a bit weird making space for someone who calls himself your brother, isnât it?âÂ
âHe has every right to. I mean, heâs my half-brother. But I donât knowâŚI want to be at a place where I can look at him and not see how much my life has changed for the worst. Heâs such a talented kid with a bright future and I hate that I project my feelings onto him.âÂ
âBaby steps,â Jake reassures. âYouâve been through a lot of shit. Both you and your mom have and you've both handled it really well.âÂ
âIâm glad it looks that way because I feel like Iâm hanging on by a thread.âÂ
âWell, thatâs what it means to be in your early twenties.â  Â
The two of you decide to head back to the campsite when it starts to get warmer. You throw your trash in garbage bins before trotting back and see that Sunoo and Jay have left to go back hiking on the trail that you were on earlier in the day. Heeseung seems to fare better with his wound, which you see heâs managed to replace (thanks to Jungwon, no doubt). But his mood seems to worsen when he sees you and Jake walking side by side towards the group.Â
âHow was the lake?â Jungwon asks, sipping on a cola.
âPretty,â Jake replies. âThere werenât that many people there so it was a little empty.âÂ
âWe should probably discuss what we want to do for the rest of the day and plan some stuff for later this week. Itâll be a little warmer later in the week so I think we should save that. Thereâs a great spot where Y/N and I go fishing. We could do that later in the morning.â
âY/N, fishing?â Heeseung laughs. âIâd pay to see that.â
âWhat, you donât think I can fish?âÂ
He shrugs. âI didnât know you were a fan of the outdoors. You always had a nose in your textbooks so I thought that was it for you.âÂ
âWell, Heeseung, itâs not like the two of us know each other well enough to know these types of things.â He doesnât seem to like that answer.Â
âFishing tomorrow it is!â Jake interjects.Â
âI havenât gone fishing in a long time,â Riki laments. âItâll be nice to have trout for dinner.âÂ
âI think Jay brought a lot of seasoning and sides,â Jungwon says to the group. âWe can always go to the market a few miles down for anything else.âÂ
You tune out the rest of the conversation, feeling a bit tired from the walk and the heat thatâs starting to make you sweat. Youâre eternally grateful that your tent is covered in shade and contemplate on taking a nap when Jungwon waves at you.
âYou good, Y/N? You seem a little out of it.â You nod at Jungwon and take a seat next to the closest camp chair. You can feel Heeseung watching you and try not to slip as you sink down into the seat, crossing one of your legs over the other.Â
âYeah, Iâm fine. Just have a lot going on in my head. I think Iâm a little tired, tooâ
Heeseung scoffs quietly. âWeâre camping. What could you possibly be thinking about thatâs making Jungwon worried?â You curl into yourself as Jungwon chides his friend.Â
âIâm moving to Japan soon,â you tell him. Youâre not even sure that he knows this about you, figuring that one of your friends would tell him to you at some point. Neither of you communicate with one another unless you absolutely have to. You didnât see the point in telling him. âIâve been thinking a lot about that, I guess.â
An array of emotions seems to wash over him and, as always, you have a hard time trying to figure out what heâs feeling and thinking. âOh. So youâll be out of Korea?â
âYup.âÂ
âWhen are you leaving?âÂ
âDonât seem too excited,â Sunghoon says underneath a cough.
âIn a couple of weeks. I leave a little after we get back home.â Heeseung merely nods. He doesnât ask you why youâre moving or what part of Japan youâll be living in and you donât offer that information, feeling awkward with the tension ever since you and Jake arrived back at the campsite. Riki finishes eating and stands up to throw his trash away, providing something to look at in order to forget that Heeseung keeps trying to look away from you.Â
âY/Nâs gonna be an engineer,â Jungwon brags on your behalf. âSheâs taking a year off to work before getting her masterâs degree.âÂ
âDamn,â Riki whistles. âYouâre so smart.â You try to hide a smile.Â
âWhat are you gonna be working on?â Sunghoon asks.Â
âIâll be assisting other researchers in software development, particularly for space and aeronautics.â You nod once, feeling tense underneath everyoneâs stare. âI donât know what Iâll be doing specifically but thatâs why Iâm moving to Okayama.âÂ
âThatâs so cool!â Jake exclaims. Heseung rolls his eyes at his excited outburst and tries to avoid your eye. âYouâre gonna be amazing.âÂ
âI hope so. Itâs a great opportunity to work in my chosen field before I decide to continue in this career when I go back to school. I have so many interests within mathematics but this seems like the right place to start.â
âShit,â Sunghoon says as he slowly claps for dramatic effect. âI knew you were smart but youâre a fucking genius.â
âI wouldnât say geniusââ
âYou are, though.â Jungwon smiles at you and gives two thumbs up. âYouâre the smartest person I know, dude. This company is lucky to have you.â
âSo cool,â Jake says again. He bumps Heeseungâs shoulder with the back of his hand. âIsnât that right, Heseung?âÂ
âYeah, totally,â he says carelessly, giving you a half-hearted smile. His mouth doesnât quite reach his eyes and you refrain from audibly sighing.Â
âDonât you think Y/N was always the smartest person in our year?â Heeseung nods. Jake nudges his friend again.Â
âYes,â Heeseung says with a great amount of venom in his tone. He shakes off Jakeâs hand from his body abruptly, causing the younger boy to take a step back in shock. He looks at you and musters an insincere smile when he notices the rest of your friends watching. âY/N is so smart.âÂ
His sarcasm deafens your ears and makes your blood feel like it could be boiling beneath your skin. The atmosphere around you changes. Riki and Jungwon try to pretend like everything is normal while Jake and Sunghoon give Heeseung wide eyes as if to tell him to knock it off. You look at your lap, uncomfortable with the silence that washes over.Â
âWhyâs it so quiet?â Sunoo asks from behind you. The group collectively sighs and youâre all thankful that he and Jay returned from their hike to cut the tension.Â
âWe were just talking about what we wanted to do for the rest of the day,â Jungwon says before anyone can speak. âLetâs take it easy tonight and go fishing tomorrow.âÂ
âSounds good to me.â Jay takes a seat and takes a big gulp of water. âLetâs heat up some kimchi jjigae for dinner because I don't feel like cooking. Jakeâs mom made enough for all of us to have seconds.âÂ
None of you disagree. Feeling yourself grow more tired the more your friends converse with one another, you manage to catch Jungwonâs eye and nod at him before heading inside the tent.Â
***
Itâs not unusual for you to wake up with what feels like a heavy heart but youâre having a hard time pushing yourself off of the uncomfortable ground to get ready for the day. Jungwon is asleep beside you with his knee digging into your side but even that isnât enough to motivate you to leave the tent.Â
You mourn the loss of your mom and his parents accompanying you on this trip. As fun as hanging out with your friends are, having Heeseung constantly avoiding eye contact and muttering things underneath your breath has you feeling more on edge than you anticipated. It always feels like heâs waiting for you to mess up so he can get a word in or wait for the perfect moment to drop a subtle insult that only you can catch. Sunghoon and Jake in particular try their best to restrain him but that doesnât do much. Eating dinner was awkward and you blamed your quiet nature on sleeping too deeply.Â
Finally, you sit up in your spot and rub the sleep out of your eyes. It doesnât seem like any of the other guys are up and you pull a clock out to read the time. Itâs still early and the people around you are still waking up as well. Your movements seem to have woken up Jungwon, who yawns when he opens his eyes.
âMorning,â he croaks. âDid you sleep okay?â
âIt was fine. Woke up a few times because of people stepping on twigs, though.â
âYeah, same. I think Jake got up in the middle of the night to use the bathroom. Woke up to him walking by the tent.â Jungwon sits up and brushes the hair out of his eyes. âIâm so hungry thinking about all the trout weâre about to eat tonight.âÂ
âIf you catch any.â He swats your arm.Â
âI alway catch more than you.â
âNuh-uh. Last year I beat you by two fish.â
âY/N, Iâve caught more fish than you every year before that.âÂ
âShut up.âÂ
You hear Jungwon laughing as you exit the tent to freshen up at the bathhouse. There are a few people milling about when you walk towards the structure. Your mouth feels a bit grimey from your morning breath and the cold water that hits your face wakes you up immediately. When you turn around after youâve finished your morning routine, you collide right into Heeseung.
âWatch it.âÂ
âI didnât see you. Geez.â Your heart continues thumping as you grip your toiletry bag. Heeseung rolls his eyes and slips past you. Anger rises within you but you decide that itâs not worth getting so worked up over at this hour.Â
As time ticks by, the rest of your friend group emerge from their tents and gather around the campfire. You all wait for everyone to wake up and prepare themselves for the day, enjoying a nice breakfast with a cool breeze until youâre all ready to go fishing. You secure the bucket hat Jungwonâs dad gave you until it fits snugly over your head and forego a jacket, only packing the necessities while you wait for everybody else to gather their belongings before youâre all walking to the boathouse.Â
The instructors are the same from last year. You and Jungwon make small talk and explain that neither of your parents are here on this trip and you tell them about Japan when they ask you about life after college. Each of your friends introduce themselves and after a quick introduction, theyâre leading all eight of you out onto the dock.Â
There are enough boats for two pairs of three and one for two people. It seems as though you were too preoccupied talking to the employees because you realize the only boat left is one shared with Heeseung and Riki.Â
âOh,â comes your meek voice in realization as you watch the two step onto the boat.
âYou should man the engine,â the employee says as the two men get on before you. âYouâre more familiar.â
âI can steer,â Heeseung says. âIâve done it before.âÂ
âIâve watched Y/N steer these boats for a decade, son. Youâll definitely want her to do it.âÂ
Heeseung relents. Itâs a small victory, but a victory nonetheless,Â
You step onto the boat. Heeseung sits at the far end while Riki sits in the middle, holding onto the seat as you get your bearings. The three of you wave goodbye to the employees at the dock and you start to drive the boat out into the lake to catch up with the rest of your friends.
The open clearing away from the port is more beautiful than you can describe. With open waters and enough room to roam around, thereâs an array of directions to catch the most fish. The water is fairly calm with the exception of the ripples your boat makes. Riki and Heeseung donât say a word as you steer them towards a clear path with minimal boats and see the other guys scattered around the large body of water.Â
Neither of them argue with you about where to go, even though Heeseung is holding himself back. Bitter over having you steer, he knows itâs the logical answer since you know this place like the back of your hand. He instead chooses to bask in the sunlight and welcomes the spray of water on his face and body. The cool splashes are a nice contrast to the warm sunlight.Â
When you start to slow the boat down, the water around you becomes still as well. You turn the engine off and wait for the contraption to settle beneath you. The sound of water rippling against itself is enough to make you feel more at ease and you donât mind it when you see Heeseung start to assemble bait on the fishing poles.
âWhyâd you pick this place?â Riki asks.
âI caught a lot of fish here last year. I hope we can catch more this year.â
âMore than Jungwon?â
You smile. âYeah. He and I have this unspoken competition.â
âWhatâs the prize?â
âThereâs not really a prize. Itâs just something we do.â
âWhatâs the point of competing if thereâs no prize?â Heeseung interjects. You shrug.
âDunno. Itâs fun for us.â He doesnât say anything after that.Â
Itâs quiet for a while. The sound of birds chirping and faint chatter in the background fill the atmosphere but the three of you silently agree to refrain from talking once youâve all casted your reels. Riki, who is a bit excited to catch some fish, anxiously peers at the water below him every few minutes or so. He pulls back with a pout when he doesnât feel a tug on his line. The awkward tension somewhat dissipates and youâre able to forget that Heeseung is a few feet away from you. He angles his face towards the water and seems to be in his own bubble as you hold your fishing rod.Â
Growing up on this campsite means learning the virtue of patience and willing yourself to become more in tune with your surroundings. It was your father that first taught you that the most important rule to fishing was patience. Heâd tell you the fishes could sense urgency and impatience from underneath the water, and therefore they knew not to take your bait. It made sense to you at a young age. Every time youâd be on the water with him, youâd force yourself to slow down and calm your thoughts until the silence felt like a welcomed embrace.Â
That mantra of practicing patience seeps into your life now that your dad isnât in it anymore. Jungwonâs father had volunteered to go fishing with you the first year your own chose not to go on the annual camping trip. Everyone could tell how difficult it was for you and your mother to attend, but despite hardship and the change in dynamics, she didnât want either of you to lose any semblance of normalcy. Youâd argue that was the hardest week of your life. Jungwon, who is usually very organized and detail oriented, chose to let you lead the trip activities between the two of you and didnât complain once.
The two of you were in high school when your father left and Jungwon swears it was like somebody stole the sun from your eyes. Your studies became the sole focus of your life and even Heeseung was barely at the forefront of your mind anymore. Heâd watch you become detached from everything that didnât have to do with academics and extracurriculars. Focusing on college applications was the most important thing for you back then.Â
Of course, Jungwon and all of your friends gave you a bit of space to process new feelings and the change in household. Your father moved away and wasn't living in the house anymore. It started to become an empty shell, where neither you nor your mother could stand eating at the dining table because it brought up unwanted memories. Your dad wasnât here to help you with homework anymore and you could no longer hear your parents talk outside of your door until you fell asleep. The complete silence startled you. It still does sometimes, but youâve learned that grief is about facing your hardships until it isnât so scary anymore.Â
These trips are bittersweet every year. Fishing is a reminder of everything youâve lost. But lately, youâre starting to think about it as everything you could gain and then some. Â
âThe more you look down, the more the fish are gonna be scared,â you say, breaking the quiet atmosphere. Riki looks at you quizzically.Â
âReally?â
âNo, but youâre not gonna catch anything faster just by looking down.â His shoulders sag.Â
âWeâve been here for so long and nothing has tugged on my line.âÂ
âFishing is a game of chance. The fish choose to take your bait if it feels enticed enough.â As if on cue, your fishing rod starts to move. Riki watches you latch onto it while Heeseung turns back when he feels the boat rock underneath him and observes you too. You wrestle with it for a short while before reeling the fish above water and proudly hold it beside you. âPatience is the most important part of fishing. The fish finds you when you least expect it.â Heeseung snorts when you put the fish in the bucket. It takes a great deal out of you not to roll your eyes.Â
âYouâre so wise,â Riki mutters.Â
âI donât think Iâm wise, per se. I just think thereâs nothing else you can do when youâre in open water with nothing to distract you.âÂ
âIâm working on my patience. Moving to Korea made that pretty difficult for me.âÂ
âWell, youâre moving to a new country. Itâs something youâve never done before, you know? I bet packing was stressful.âÂ
âI hated every second of it,â he says as he rolls his eyes like youâve brought out an irritating memory. âI triple checked everything before leaving. I hope I didnât forget anything back home.âÂ
âAre you scared to start the semester?â
Riki thinks about it for a second. âKind of. My Korean is okay, but I still have trouble saying certain words. The culture is different, too. I need to get used to that more. I guess Iâm a bit sad that I had to leave my friends and family behind but itâs for the best, isnât it? I wanted this.âÂ
You find yourself nodding in agreement. âYeah. Itâs hard to leave everything you know behind.âÂ
âI cried when I said goodbye to my dance teachers,â Riki admits with a laugh. âI think it was the first time I did that in front of them. We kept bowing to each other until I had to go. Itâll be weird finding a new studio in Seoul but Iâm excited about it.âÂ
âYouâre an incredible dancer, Riki. Thereâs no doubt in my mind that youâll thrive here.âÂ
He tries to hide his blush. âThanks. Iâm happy that I know some people already but itâs not the same, you know?âÂ
âThatâs how I feel about moving to Okayama. I know itâll only be a year, but it feels like Iâll be there for a lifetime.âÂ
âDo you ever get scared that everything back home will change?â Heeseung, too, is curious about your answer.Â
âHonestly? Yeah. Sometimes it feels like everythingâs gonna change completely the second I step on that plane. I feel like everyone will forget me and move on.â
Riki looks back at the water. âI wonder if people back home think of me.âÂ
âThey do.â He looks back at you.
âEveryone here will think about you too.âÂ
A beat passes between the two of you and you start to see Riki for what he is: a smart, sensitive person who disguises himself as somebody who can mask his feelings. What you learn is that your half-brother wears his heart on his sleeve but is careful about who he gives himself too. Itâs something youâve noticed in the time youâve known him, but this trip is starting to make you think you two are more alike than not.Â
âWhat about you, Heeseung?â Riki asks, turning to look at the eldest. âWhat are you gonna be doing now that you graduated?âÂ
âI, uh, start working at a record label pretty soon.â He clears his throat. Knowing youâre looking at him makes this boat feel smaller all of the sudden.Â
âYou majored in music production, right?â Heeseung nods.Â
âYeah. Iâve always had an interest in music so I learned how to produce during freshman year and started taking it seriously.â
âIâll bet your perfect pitch helps you a lot.â Heeseung whips his gaze over to you when you speak and you feel your skin burn. You donât know if you shouldâve contributed to the conversation or not.Â
âSure does,â he says awkwardly, looking at the fishing rod between his legs. Heeseung remains quiet when Riki doesnât prod him further and looks back at the water in front of him. Even in the forced proximity, you still canât figure out why he chooses to be avoidant.Â
Heeseung, on the other hand, finds that thereâs much to contemplate about. His life has barely begun and yet he feels the weight of his future hanging in the balance. Heâs just moved into his first apartment and will need to furnish it when he gets back from the camping trip. Heâs got a mattress with no bed frame and a single loveseat his parents gave him. Aside from his gaming setup, Heeseungâs one bedroom apartment is completely bare.Â
Looking at it makes him worry for his future and being around you. You, someone heâs always assumed had it easy because you were academically gifted, makes Heeseung feel like heâs got to step up his game. He hasnât liked you ever since high school for reasons he justifies as perfectly valid. But high school was years ago and some of his anger has subsided. All thatâs left is a faint annoyance and he'd rather be anywhere than next to you. He only said yes to this trip because of the other people who were going as well.Â
Heâs kept his feelings simmering beneath the surface and chooses to focus on anything but you when he hears you talk. Itâs frustrating enough knowing you share a lot of mutual friends, even worse when some of his best friends are people you consider family. He hates that Jake is comfortable enough to hang out with you without anyone else present and loathes that Sunghoon actively wants to become closer to you after he realized the two of you share the same taste in cinema. He especially despises the fact that Riki looks up to you even though, in Heeseungâs eyes, youâve done nothing to earn it.Â
The young teenager met the eldest of the bunch at a bonfire the third time he came to Korea after your mom had forced you to bring him along. You told him absolutely no alcohol no matter if anyone else was going to be drinking and to say no if your friends offered him a beer. He watched you that night, the way you periodically looked at your half-brother but made a lame attempt to include him in conversation. Riki found fast friends in Sunoo and Jungwon after messing around in the shallow waters of the ocean. Heeseung decided that you didnât deserve that type of respect from Riki at that moment.Â
Itâs been years since then and heâs seen the two of you grow, albeit slowly. Even in his blind hatred for your existence, Heeseung has always wondered why Riki vies for your attention. In fact, what is it about you that makes everybody fawn over you? Why do you always seem to be the center of attention? Does nobody care about what you did to him all those years ago?
It keeps him up at night to know that nobody around him understands why heâs so angry at you. Above the root cause, you have everything you could ever want. You were the smartest girl in high school and university, and it was no question about what your future would look like. Youâd accepted a job opportunity right after graduating and it seemed as though things were merely handed to you without you working that hard for it. You didnât have to ask for anything. It always seemed as though people could read your mind and always gave you what you wanted.Â
Maybe coming to the camping trip was a mistake. Heâs been walking on eggshells around you this entire time and feels like heâs suffocating every time his friends laugh at your jokes. Heeseung bites his tongue when he feels himself getting worked up and finds that nothing can get his mind off of you no matter how hard he tries.Â
He wonders if you remember that day all those years ago. He wonders if you know just how hurtful words can be and how awful it is to be on the receiving end of utter despair and desperation. Heeseung has always known you to be somebody who knows exactly what you want, too. Teenage angst never stopped you from pursuing higher education. It seemed like you threw everything you had into academics and everyone rewarding you for it made Heeseung want to crumble. Nobody else thought of you the way he did.Â
But this is something heâd rather keep to himself. For as much as he refuses to be your friend, he knows nothing good will ever come out of trying to convince everyone you arenât someone who they should be friends with. After all, youâll be working in Okayama and with any luck, youâll make a permanent residence out of Japan.Â
Heeseung is distracted from his thoughts when Riki manages to catch a rather large fish. With your help, heâs able to reel it in and watches the younger boy become awestruck at its sheer size. Heeseung watches you congratulating Riki and celebrates this excitement with him as you put the fish in the bucket for safe keeping. It should warm his heart to see a friend of his so happy, but seeing you smiling next to him makes Heeseung feel all the more irritated. The three of you head back to the dock after another couple of hours and a few more dishes later.
Jungwon catches more fish than you do. All eight of you manage to acquire enough for dinner and breakfast in the morning. Jay and Jake have volunteered to help with cooking while the rest of you prepare side dishes and talk about fishing adventures from your time apart. You smile at the group halfway through the conversation, fondness blooming in your chest when everybody is laughing after having eaten dinner.Â
âGod, I swear I almost fell into the water trying to wrestle with the trout!â Jake shouts amongst the chaotic laughter. âIt felt like I was about to become one with the fish.âÂ
âI almost pushed his ass into the lake,â Jay snorts. âIt was so fucking funny.â
âIâm surprised Sunoo caught the most fish out of all of us.â Jungwon shrugs and bites into his sâmore.Â
âYouâre telling me,â Sunoo replies as he wipes chocolate from his lip. âThatâs my quota for this trip, though. Donât expect me to go fishing again.âÂ
âIâm not ready for this trip to end,â Riki says with a mixed sigh. âWeâve already been here for a couple of days and it feels like time is going by so fast.âÂ
âI start that consulting job the Monday we go back and Iâm excited for it, but Iâm also nervous. It hit me on the way back from the lake.â Jay rubs his face with his hands. âThis adult shit is scary, man.â
âDo you guys remember when we were all freshmen and had that awful orientation leader?â Heeseung asks. Those who were in the same year as him nod. âThat felt like just yesterday and now weâre about to be real adults.â
âJayâs going to become a financial consultant, youâre working at a record label, Sunghoonâs going to open up his own cafe someday, and Iâm about to start a fellowship at a research lab.â Jake shakes his head like he canât believe it. âNot to mention Y/Nâs moving to Japan for work. If you told me four years ago we would talk about the future like this, I wouldâve laughed.âÂ
âIt feels a bit weird knowing we arenât going back to school.â Sunghoon looks at the younger boys and laughs. âWell, sorry to you guys.âÂ
Sunoo speaks up with a pout. âItâll be weird not seeing you guys around campus. Iâll miss running into you on my way to class.âÂ
âSometimes I wish we could stay in college forever.â Jay reaches over and picks out another marshmallow to put on his stick. âIt sucked ass but it was nice living close to you guys.â
âIâm scared to go out there alone.â You tug at the zipper on your jacket and stare at your hands. âI feel like Iâm going to mess everything up and fail. Iâll come home and have nothing to show for myself.âÂ
âCouldnât have said it any better.â Sunghoon finishes off his sâmore and wipes the crumbs off of his lap. âI wish everything was simple and easy. We really had it good back then, didnât we?â
âDonât get too caught up in growing up too fast,â Jake says as he pinches Rikiâs cheeks for dramatic effect. The latter tries to dodge his touch but fails. He points to Jungwon and Sunoo. âYou guys need to make every minute count.â
Jungwon laughs. âYou sound like a Hallmark card.â
âYeah, but one day youâll be saying the same thing. Youâll go back to campus and you wonât see us walking around.â Jungwon remains quiet after that.Â
âYouâll all be fine.â Sunoo nods once and it feels like heâs smiling at everyone individually through the fire. âLife is scary but thereâs a reason why we believe in you.â
Jay nudges Sunoo with his knee. âSince when did you get so wise?â
âYou could learn a thing or two from me.â
The tension dissipates. Everyone finishes up their desserts and helps tidy up the campsite. Jake and Sunghoon put out the fire while the rest of you put the chairs away and throw out any leftover trash in the nearby garbage bin. One by one, the eight of you start to grow sleepier as time ticks by. You all let your younger friends wash up first as you stifle yawns and prepare your makeshift bedding while you wait.Â
It feels like forever to wait with Heeseung close to you. Everybody else bids you goodnight as you brush your teeth in the wash station and rinse your face of dirt and debris from earlier in the day. Heeseung is standing just a few feet away as he waits for you to finish up but knowing heâs watching you makes your heart rate increase. Your hands tremble as you turn the faucet off and itâs just your luck that you trip over yourself and hold onto Heeseung when you turn around to exit the washroom.Â
âWatch where youâre going, Y/N,â Heeseung snaps. He shrugs your hands off of him and pushes you away from his body.Â
âWhat the fuck is your problem with me?â If Heeseung is surprised by your sudden outburst, he doesnât show it. Your typically calm, non-confrontational demeanor is nowhere to be seen.Â
âWhy canât you walk properly?â he mocks.Â
âYou have been so passive aggressive towards me this entire trip. Hell, youâve been that way since we were in high school. What the fuck is your deal and why canât you man up and tell me why you hate me so much?âÂ
His expression sours. âYou have some nerve asking me that.âÂ
âWhy?! You wonât tell me what your deal is and I canât fix it if you donât communicate that with me. We have so many mutual friends who want us to get along and itâs fine if weâll never be friends, but really, Heeseung, youâre acting like a child.âÂ
Heeseungâs nostrils flare and it feels demeaning the way he has to look you down in order to meet your eyes. The twinge in your heart flares when he makes no effort to talk to you further. The tension in his shoulders rises and falls with every second that passes by and youâre starting to wonder if thereâs any way you can leave the trip early.Â
He doesnât say anything, though. Heeseung pulls away from you and enters the washroom, leaving you alone with your thoughts and the sound of water running. Years of pushing aside your feelings for the greater good of preserving the peace feels like theyâre suffocating you with every step you take as you talk back to your tent. The cold chill of the night bristles through your hair and your watery eyes make you stumble before unzipping your makeshift bedroom.Â
âY/N?â Jungwon asks, half-asleep. He sees you wipe your eyes as you turn away from him and put away your dirty clothes and toiletries. âWhatâs wrong?âÂ
âNothing.âÂ
He pushes himself up and hears the clip in your tone. With his eyes softening, Jungwon gently touches your shoulder and realizes that your eyes are red before you shut your flashlight off. âCome here.âÂ
Itâs somewhere between a command and a plea. Jungwon doesnât force you to speak as he pulls your body into his. He doesnât care that your tears are falling onto his arm and he doesnât mind that youâve settled your weight onto his chest. Your silent hiccups make his heart lurch and the best he can do is let you cling onto him in your time of need.Â
You donât get like this often. The last time he remembers you letting him hold you like this was a few days after your parentsâ divorce had been finalized. The tangerine-shaped pillow you had was the only thing keeping Jungwonâs back from aching as you spent what felt like hours sobbing between his arms, dirtying his shirt with your hot tears. His heart broke back then, too. Heâs not used to seeing you without a smile on your face and every crack in your demeanor lets him know youâre a dam thatâs about to burst.Â
It canât be easy to live knowing your father willingly left and chose to leave you behind. Nearly two decades of saying âI love youâ and championing his only daughter to be the best version of herself felt like it was all for naught the night he told you he wouldnât be living with you anymore. You could barely stand watching him pack his belongings and take everything valuable with him. You were unusually quiet during this period of time, too scared to make a sound and make things worse than they already were.Â
Jungwon knows you keep your heart locked away in a cage these days. Your friends know you like the back of their hands but itâs been getting harder and harder to coax you out of your shell. He knows it hasnât been easy with Heeseung within your main friend group and wishes he could do more to quell your anxieties about spending time with him, even if your other friends are there to shield you from his silent torment.Â
Your best friend softens a bit when you cling onto his arm, holding him like heâs your lifeline. He pushes his fingers through your hair the way heâs seen your mom do countless times and rocks your body back and forth until youâve started to calm down. He hears your shallow breaths and holds onto you for the fear that youâll think he doesnât want to comfort you if he lets you go.Â
âSorry.â Your voice is brittle and it makes his heart break.Â
âYou never have to be sorry, Bug. Are you okay?â You shake your head. âIs it something one of us did?â You nod. âWas it Heeseung?â He hates that you start to tear up again. âIâm sorry, Bug. Iâm so sorry.â
âI donât understand why he doesnât like me,â you hiccup. âI donât know what I did. How can I apologize when I donât know what Iâve done?âÂ
Jungwon sighs. Heâs with you on this one. âYouâre right. I donât know whatâs gotten into him recently but Iâm fed up with it too.âÂ
âWe donât need to be friends but I want him to stop pretending like I ruined his life.â Your best friend nods against you and pushes his cheek against the crown of your head. âSorry that I woke you up. I feel like a mess.â
âYouâre not a mess, Bug. Youâve been tied together with a smile for so long. Itâs only natural that you break down every once in a while.â
âYouâre very smart, Wonnie.âÂ
He laughs. âI know. Do you want to cry some more or go to sleep?â Jungwonâs tone lacks any humor tonight. Heâs concerned about you in a way that makes you feel like a porcelain doll and while you appreciate it when he pokes fun at you to show how comfortable he is with you, this feels just as nice.Â
âIâm ready to sleep.âÂ
You pull away from him and settle in your sleeping bag, welcoming the calmness that washes over you. Jungwon chooses to stay up just a smidge longer until heâs certain that youâre asleep before he closes his eyes, wishing for better days ahead of you.
***
The trees always seemed taller when you were younger. They stretched for miles and touched the sky from your point of view, almost as if they could reach the heavens above. You always wondered what it must be like to have lived as long as nature around you. The leaves and branches see all walks of life, from humans to animals, and keep many secrets hidden underneath its shaded areas. It almost feels like they whisper stories back to you when the wind shakes the weakest branches. You always try to listen.Â
When you find yourself hiking on another path around the lake, it becomes easier for you to clear your mind and think about all that lies before you. The sounds of birds chirping amongst the blue sky make the environment around you seem picturesque. In all of your ears camping here, you donât think youâve ever appreciated it the way you are at this very moment.Â
Your friends are scattered in front and behind you, each of them wrapped up in their own conversations. You can feel Jungwon look at you periodically but you silently let him know that youâre doing alright. He worries about you a lot and he has every reason to. Sometimes, you wonder if any part of you is holding him back because he spends so much time looking after you. It used to be the other way around with you watching after him at playgrounds and on your walk home from school. But with your father leaving as soon as you started trying to figure out who you were, it was like a switch had flipped.Â
Your best friend has had a few girlfriends here and there but none of them ever lasted long. He reminds you that heâs young and isnât looking for a life partner at this stage in his life, but you know he worries about you ever since the news of your dad leaving and Riki entering your life turned your world upside down. You wonder if youâre causing him too much stress.Â
He always reminds you that youâre the reason he has so many people that he loves. You introduced him to the majority of your friends on this camping trip. You were the one who introduced him to his first girlfriend and why he finds so much hope in all of the small things. Jungwon admires your resilience and ability to stand on your feet after youâve been knocked to the ground by an unseen force. Your tenacity pushes him to be a better person towards others and to himself, and heâll remind you every chance he gets. Jungwon believes that youâre okay for now. You know heâll be there to pick up the pieces if you need him to.
It brings you back to your future and how Jungwon wonât be physically present when you move to Japan. Youâve spent so much time with him and it made you happy when he was accepted into his bachelor program at your university. The two of you have always been close, whether it was because neither of you had siblings and found solace in each another or because of forced proximity from being neighbors, you donât know. It feels like youâll be saying goodbye to somebody who youâve always leaned on. It feels like youâre leaving him the way your dad left you.Â
Dealing with the overwhelming guilt of moving to Okayama, the city your father moved to when he left you and your mom, digs a hole deep inside of your chest every time you think about it. Itâs probably why you push off discussions about moving whenever you can and change the subject when other people bring it up. You try not to get too irritated whenever your mom talks to you about packing and everything else thatâs important when settling in a new country, like a work visa or financial burdens. But every conversation with her about your eventual move feels like a million needles are slowly pricking your skin. Every step feels heavier than the next.Â
Thereâs Heeseung, too, who has been plaguing your mind ever since you awoke. Itâs not unlike him to be cold towards you. In fact, youâve dealt with tuning him out and learned to ignore his quiet scoffs, paying attention to anyone who would give you some of their attention. The accumulation of life stress and the inevitable move has made it so your heart rate canât seem to be still at any time in the day. Heeseung doesnât make it any better by snapping at you for treading carefully. This feeling reminds you of the time you tiptoed around your father when you found out about his infidelity being the reason why he chose to leave you and your mother for Okayama. It feels like anticipating a bomb going off. Itâs never a matter of if, but when.Â
You donât remember when things changed but you remember it was abrupt and unannounced. One day, the two of you were laughing with bologna sandwiches for lunch and the next, Heeseung was ignoring you like the two of you had never been friends. His stare was just as cold as his tone when speaking. You could never catch his eye when you were with your group of friends and he refused to be alone with you. The hurt that came with his actions felt like a punch in the gut with all you were dealing with back home.Â
The reason why it was easy to tune out his friendship was purely because of prioritization. Dealing with empty rooms and the house feeling like a ghost was haunting the walls was by far a greater sadness than losing a friend. But even so, seeing Heeseung laugh with your friends and watching him excel in everything you used to support him in made you feel like you were being left behind. It hurt to attend his basketball games because he no longer looked for your eyes in the stands. He didnât acknowledge you when your group of friends would head to the nearby diner for a celebratory meal, and he didnât call you to say goodnight and to thank you for coming to his games and open practices anymore.Â
The ghost of your friendship lingered over you like an unwanted guest. It followed you into university after you committed to the same one and it seemed like neither of you could escape one another. Seeing him live a life that you werenât a part of made your reality sink inâthe few years he spent distancing himself from you wasnât merely a fluke or teenage angst. Heeseung wanted nothing to do with you. You had to learn how to be okay with that.Â
Still, you wish you were as tall as the trees around you. Maybe then Heeseung would tell you why he didnât like you anymore.Â
âY/N, watch out!âÂ
The warning nearly comes too late. You donât register a hissing sound until you see a reflection of scales and stumble backwards into somebody who seems to be caught off guard as much as you are. Jakeâs warning saved you from a nasty bite from a snake that has slithered away back between the trees but your heart stammers in your chest as you curl yourself further deeper into the person behind you.Â
You hate snakes. Youâre petrified of themÂ
Heeseung, to his misfortune, is the person youâve bumped into. He saw the snake just before Jake said his warning and felt his body freeze in the way yours didnât. He didnât have time to move aside and let Sunoo, who he was talking to, move to grab your body and pull you out of harmâs way. He feels your beating chest against his and looks down at you. Heeseung doesnât think heâs ever seen you like this before. It makes his stomach fall.Â
âY/N is really scared of snakes,â Jungwon says as he walks up to the two of you, offering a quick explanation before Heeseung could say anything about you clinging onto him. âShe got bit by one as a kid and it scared her pretty bad.â Heeseung doesnât push you away. Instead, he lets Jungwon pry you off of his body until youâre able to blink and come to your senses.Â
âSorry.â You throw an apology his way when Jungwon rubs your back. The rest of your friends, who seem to know about your fear, try to give you some space instead of crowding around you. A part of him wants to scoff. The other part of him feels bad for you. It almost makes him feel guilty for being so short with you last night.
âWeâre almost at the end of the trail anyway,â Jungwon says. âLetâs finish it and get some lunch.âÂ
When you all arrive back at the campsite, Jake pulls your water bottle out of your backpack and stands with you while Jungwon lets you stand right beside him in an attempt to calm yourself down. Jay and Sunghoon, not wanting to impede and make things uncomfortable, decide to go on another short hike and let you rest. The sight is a bit unnerving for Heeseung, who has generally only ever thought of you as this self righteous, confident person, to see you in such a state of shock that you could barely look him in the eye like you did the night before. Heâs used to you avoiding and ignoring him but he isnât accustomed to you scurrying away from anything or anyone.Â
Heâs a bit confused as to why he feels a little guilty for how he spoke to you last night. You were his friend before he decided you werenât and that feeling of concern is starting to creep back in. Heeseung watches the way you flinch when Jake tries to rub your shoulder and how Jungwon is the only person who seems to know how to get you to relax after the snake incident.Â
âIs she really that scared of snakes?â Heeseung asks Sunoo, who stands away from you to give you space. He pretends to be busy picking at his nails to let you have peace and not make you feel overcrowded with two of your friends already by your side.Â
âIf I tell you, are you going to use that against her?â Sunoo doesnât typically question Heeseung like this. It startles him but he shakes his head anyway.Â
âNo,â says Heeseung. âIâm not. Iâve never seen her act like that.â
Sunoo must think the elder is telling the truth. âWhen Y/N was very young, a snake bit her ankle when her parents werenât looking. She got scared and tripped over a rock or something, and her entire leg started to bleed and got a pretty bad gash from it. They rushed her to the emergency room and panicked because her leg was covered in blood.â
âThatâs it?â
Sunoo glares at Heeseung. âIt might not seem like a big deal to you, but that kind of stuff leaves an impression on you when youâre a kid, Heeseung. Sheâs been pretty terrified of snakes and blood ever since.âÂ
âHuh. I never knew that.â
âDonât go barking up that tree. Itâs bad enough that you hate her for no good reason.âÂ
Heeseung looks at Sunoo quizzically when he hears his friendâs harsh tone. âWhatâs the matter with you?âÂ
Sunoo scoffs. âMe? Whatâs the matter with you? I heard you and Y/N last night. You were an ass to her. Sheâs right, too. How can she apologize for hurting you if you never talk about what she did?Â
âSunooââ
âSave it, Heeseung.â He straightens his posture. âYouâre my friend and I love you, but youâve been really harsh on Y/N for the past few years. I thought the two of you drifted apart but you clearly have a vendetta against her.â
âI do not have a vendetta against Y/N.â Â
âSure. Whatever you say. Just remember that Y/Nâs the reason why youâre on this trip. One veto from her and Jungwon wouldâve kicked your ass to the curb. Youâre lucky she doesnât say this shit to anyone.âÂ
Heeseung looks at his shoes, feeling the heat in his body creep up his neck. He knows Sunooâs somewhat right. Youâre half the reason why this trip exists at all. Even if Jungwon brought the friend group along, itâs you who this campaign tradition belongs to as well. Heeseung bites his tongue and tries his best not to argue with Sunoo. Deep down, the elder knows that heâs been a bit harsh to you and sometimes finds himself regretting the venom he aims directly at you. But then he remembers that incident from all those years ago and feels his anger bubble up inside of him. He pulls his friend away so that none of you hear him.Â
âI have a reason not to like her okay?â Heeseung whispers through his teeth.Â
âWhat reason could you possibly have that justifies how shitty youâve been?â
Heeseung looks around like heâs afraid someoneâs listening in. âSecond semester, sophomore year of high school. You and Jake were with me doing homework right outside the front gate. We were waiting for my brother to pick us up from school when Y/N told Kim Chaewon that I would never amount to anything because I didnât have any talent and had to flirt with girls to get them to listen to my music.â
Sunoo looks at Heeseung like heâs sprouted a second head, who looks at the younger boy like heâs waiting for confirmation or validation of sorts with his eyebrows raised as if expecting a certain outcome. Instead, Sunoo slaps him on the back of his head with his palm and scowls.Â
âYou are so stupid, Heeseung.â
âWhat the fuck did I do?!â Heeseung soothes the spot where Sunoo hit him. âIt was messed up for her to say that. Why are you calling me stupid?â
âY/N didnât say that about you. Chaewon did.âÂ
Heeseungâs eyes grow comically wide. âI know what I heard.âÂ
âNo, you donât. I remember the moment youâre talking about. You left so fast and didnât stop when Jake and I called out for you. Chaewon couldn't get another word out because Y/N tore her a new one. Why do you think they arenât friends anymore?âÂ
âWellâŚBecause Y/N said that about me. Chaewon was my friend, too.âÂ
Sunoo shakes his head. âChaewon said that about you. Not Y/N.â
âThatâs not possibleâŚâ
âHow would you know? You werenât there. You left before you could hear the full argument.âÂ
âSunoo,â Heeseung says, voice quivering from a mixture of guilt and embarrassment. âPlease tell me thatâs not true.âÂ
âDo you know how stupid you look knowing you blew off Y/N, the person who defended you, and still talked to Chaewon?â Sunoo shakes his head at Heeseung. âYou ended your longest friendship over a misunderstanding and then got closer with the person who actually said those things about you. Imagine how Y/N mustâve felt.âÂ
Heeseungâs mind starts to recount the days after your argument with Chaewon and how heâd gone out of his way to ignore you in the aftermath. He never gave you an explanation about his absence and why he pulled away, citing that incident as the reason why you didnât deserve to know in the first place. He thinks about Chaewon and how he didnât think twice about it because his mind had already been made up. He was still friends with Chaewon, taking pictures with her at parties and talking to her whenever their friend groups hung out together. Not once did he spare a glance to you.Â
As his mind starts to wander into nostalgic territory, Heeseung feels his stomach plummet. The sudden urge to rectify his actions overwhelms him and heâs fighting tooth and nail not to cry on the spot.Â
When he looks at you now, quiet and hidden within your shared friends, Heeseung canât help but feel a bit guilty. He suddenly remembers the few moments where you showed a vulnerable side of yourself and allowed him to see you cry after a bad grade or when your middle school friends were being mean towards you. Heeseung recalls all the times heâs ever thought of you as somebody who puts on a brave face and stands back up after feeling the weight of the world crush you to the ground. He thinks about all of the times heâs ever made you feel insignificant to him and feels pins and needles in his footsteps. Heeseung finds himself walking towards you as heâs contemplating his feelings and Jungwon guards you, pushing you behind him.Â
âHey,â Heeseung says awkwardly. He tries to peek at you but doesnât like seeing you look so helpless. Pathetically, he offers a meek apology. âSorry about the snake.âÂ
âItâs fine. Sorry I grabbed you.â For the first time in a long time, Heeseung doesnât feel annoyed by the thought of you latching onto him.Â
âItâs okay. I, uhâŚwanted to know if you were fine.â Heeseung clears his throat. âIs there anything I can do?â His unfamiliar kindness confuses you and it confuses Jungwon too.
âYou know, maybe it would be a good idea if you left the campsite for a while,â Jake suggests from beside Heeseung. âYouâre a bit shaken up and you could probably use a change of scenery.âÂ
âThatâs not a bad idea, actually,â Jungwon agrees. âYou could leave for a few hours and come back once youâve calmed down, Bug.âÂ
You pick at your fingernails. âI feel so stupid for being so scared.â
âItâs not stupid, Y/N.â Jake tilts his head and looks at you with a pout. âItâs something youâre scared of and with good reason. I wouldâve been scared shitless if it was closer to me.â
âYou could go into town and get some ice cream,â says Jungwon. âYou should go to the beach by the highway for a little bit and get your mind off of it.âÂ
âI-I donât really want to go alone.â
Heeseung speaks before he can even think about what heâs saying.
âIâll go with you.â Jungwon and Jake whip their head to their friend.Â
âHeeseungââ
âI can drive us,â he says, mouth moving faster than his brain. âI wonât say anything, I swear. Iâll take her to the beach and ice cream if she wants to.âÂ
Jungwon hesitantly looks at Heeseung. âAreâŚAre you sure?âÂ
âYeah.â He lies straight through his teeth. He doesnât know if he can sit with you when his whole life has been turned upside down. But itâs too late to backtrack. âIâve been feeling a little restless here anyway.âÂ
âI donât knowâŚâ
âJay isnât here and he has his keys.â Jake looks at you and nudges your shoulder. âWhat do you want to do, Y/N?âÂ
You look up at Heeseung for the first time and he sucks in a breath. Itâs like youâre devoid of yourself, fear and anxiety clouding your eyes like youâre petrified to even speak. He watches you lick your lips slowly as if contemplating carefully. âI want to go.â
âBug, you donât have to.â
âI know, Wonnie.â You touch his arm and he relents. âI think I need to leave for a little bit and calm down. I should walk on the beach, or something.â
âI can come with you guys.â Riki, who has been silent during this ordeal, speaks up and appears to the other side of Heeseung. âI saw the beach just before we got here. It looks pretty.âÂ
âThatâs a good idea,â Jake nods, looking at you. He softens his tone. âWould that be alright with you?âÂ
You hum .âMhm. Yeah, thatâs fine. Let me get my wallet.âÂ
When you leave for your tent, Jungwon looks at Heeseung and stares at him with an expression he canât read. The silence is deafening and he awkwardly coughs, looking away from his younger friend.Â
âDonât fuck this up,â says Jungwon with a clipped tone. âYouâve been a dipshit and sheâs been putting up with it for the sake of everybody else. The last thing she needs is for you to make fun of her and make her feel even worse than she already does.âÂ
âI wonât, Jungwon. I swear.âÂ
âIâm choosing to trust you because youâre my friend too, despite everything you feel towards Y/N.â He nods at Riki. âYou, keep an eye out for them.â
âI wonât do or say anything,â Heeseung promises for a second time. You come back a moment later, oblivious to the tension.Â
âBe safe, yeah?â Heeseung hears the change in Jungwonâs tone when talking to you. âCall me if you need anything. Your phoneâs charged from the portable, right?â
âYeah.â You hold up your phone to show him. âIâll let you know when weâre coming back.âÂ
The beach itself is nestled towards the end of the highway where the sand meets the trees. The small shops around it bring a sense of nostalgia, especially when Heeseung parks in front of a large, tattered orange sign that says âICE CREAM SOLD HERE.â The three of you walk inside and Heeseung watches you look over the flavors.Â
âThey change the flavors all the time based on the season,â you say absentmindedly. The three of you are the only customers and he figures the employee must be in the back.Â
Itâs a bit strange to be spending time with you apart from everybody else. Even though Rikiâs accompanying the two of you, he hasn't been alone with you like this in years. You seem to be doing a little better with distance put between you and the campsite. Heeseung hopes the drive wasnât too terrible. His knuckles turned white with the grip he had on the steering wheel, too afraid to look into the rearview mirror for the fear of catching your eye. He wonders if youâd be able to read his mind in the way you once did.Â
You make small talk with the owner of the shop who recognizes you before ordering. Riki and Heeseung follow too, the youngest trying a few flavors before settling on one. You go to pay for your own until Riki pulls out his wallet and pays for the both of you. Heeseung watches the two of you argue before the owner accepts Rikiâs card. Heâs pulled out of his thoughts before paying for his own cup.Â
The beach is right next door and the three of you leave your shoes inside Heeseungâs trunk before stepping onto the warm sand. The sunâs high in the sky and Heeseungâs grateful that he chose to put on extra sunblock before leaving his tent. Riki follows you towards the water. He chooses to stay behind and give you both space even though his heart is telling him not to.Â
Heeseung has always believed in telling the truth because itâll always see the light at the end of the day. Heâs a fan of honesty and itâs something he values in all of his friends. He thought heâd found that in you ever since the day the two of you started becoming friends and felt his world shatter around him when he thought you were making fun of his aspirations to become a music producer. Youâd spent countless hours in his bedroom with him as he learned how to use proper equipment and went so far as to buy him a few things here and there disguised as birthday and Christmas gifts. You spent so much time listening to him grow as a musician in the comfort of his bedroom. The thought that you were pretending to care about him made Heeseung feel sick to his stomach. It wasn't hard for him to cut you off when he thought you betrayed him.
But now, life feels like itâs at a stand still. You stand before him and Heeseungâs throat closes up like heâs lost the ability to breathe. You might not even know that youâre the reason for his inner turmoil. You probably donât care. Why would you when heâs pushed you so far from armâs length? Heeseung sighs to himself and replays every single interaction heâs ever had with you after deciding to cut you out of his life. The guilt piles up on him before he can stop it from stacking until it eventually makes his skin feel like itâs been set on fire. Heâll have to sit with the fact that heâs made you out to be a cruel, terrible friend instead of the person who would defend him to hell and back.
What must you think of him now? For a long time, it took Heeseung great strength to push you into the far corners of his mind and stop seeking you out whenever you were near him. He trained himself to look away from you, the weight of your alleged words playing in the back of his mind whenever he felt the urge to talk to you like old times. Heeseung stopped communicating with you altogether, unfollowing you on all of your social media and physically removing you out of his life so he wouldnât have to see your face when he least expected it.Â
But now it feels like the last six years of his life have been a lie. Heâs been living in his own world, wrapped up in a delusion that only he was able to clearly see. The memory was too painful to say out loud let alone tell a soul. Heeseung kept his heart guarded and offered a brief explanation whenever your mutual friends asked why the two of you werenât close anymore and heâd shut you down if you tried to talk to him until your efforts ceased.Â
When he looks at you now, all he feels is regret.Â
Riki walks back towards Heeseung, whoâs perched on a bench right on the sand. His ice cream is discarded in the nearby trash can and Riki eats whateverâs left in his cup before tossing it away. The two of them sit in silence. Riki basks in the salt air and relishes in the sound of birds chirping and waves crashing onto the shore. Heeseung can only hear his heart beating in his ears.Â
âSheâs doing okay,â Riki says, breaking the silence. âI think her shock and adrenaline are wearing off.âÂ
âGood,â Heeseung nods. âThatâs really good.âÂ
âI could tell she wanted to be left alone after a little while. I hope sheâll be fine when we go back.âÂ
âIâm sure she will be.âÂ
Riki nods and looks back at you. âHave you ever seen her get like that?âÂ
âMaybe once or twice. We stopped being close in high school.âÂ
âOh, yeah. Right.âÂ
âBut she always bounced back,â Heeseung adds quickly. âLike you said, sheâll be fine.â
âI didnât even know she was scared of snakes.âÂ
Heeseung laughs. âMe either.â The silence permeates until Heeseung speaks again. âCan I ask you a question?âÂ
âSince when have you ever asked me if you could ask me something?âÂ
âFair point.â Heeseung rubs his palms against his thighs. âI donât really know where to start.â
âThe beginning is usually the best place.âÂ
âYou know how I feel about Y/N. How I felt about her. I told you so many times to stop expecting people to treat you the way you want to be treated if they didnât put in the effort to make you feel welcomed.â Heeseung looks at the younger boy. âWhy did you keep defending?âÂ
âAre you asking me because youâre worried about Y/N or because you have some weird thing with her?âÂ
âIâm asking because Iâm starting to think I was wrong about her.â Riki must think Heeseung is telling the truth because he nods after a moment.Â
âHow much do you know about Y/Nâs family life?â
âI know she has a mom and that Jungwonâs parents are like her own. I also know her parents got divorced and that her dad left just before she graduated high school.âÂ
âRight.â Riki coughs nervously. âHow much do you know about our relationship?âÂ
âYou two are half-siblings.âÂ
âThatâs all?âÂ
Heeseung shrugs. âI never questioned it.âÂ
âOkay, yeah. That makes sense.â Riki looks down at his lap like heâs trying to figure out what to say. âI donât really know if this is my place to say it but I want you to know so you can stop thinking Y/Nâs the Devil.âÂ
âI donât think sheâs the Devil.âÂ
Riki chuckles. âSure. To put it simply, she's my half-sister because her dad cheated on her mom with mine. Heâd go on business trips to Japan a few times a year and they hit it off after they met. One thing led to another and they started meeting up whenever he was back in town.Â
âThey had me a year after they first started their affair and I guess he was able to keep his life in Japan a secret until Y/N found pictures on her dadâs laptop. She saw pictures of us on vacations when her dad was supposed to be on work trips. I think she told her mom about it and thatâs around the time I found out he had another family too.âÂ
âWhat was going through your head back then?âÂ
âWell, my mom told me my dad had to live in Korea for work. I believed it until I was seven, maybe? Iâd always ask her questions as I got older but she either brushed me off or told me things that didnât add up. Heâd come more frequently the older I got. We didnât talk on the phone much when he was over in Korea, though, so seeing him in person used to be extra special.Â
âThen I found out that he had an affair because he came to live with us full time when I was twelve. My mom told me everything when he moved in and I felt like my entire life was a lie. I couldnât look at either of them the same.âÂ
âWowâŚI canât imagine going through that.â Heeseungâs words hang in the air.Â
âYeah. It was hard. I hated Y/N for a while. I hated that she got to see my dad more than I did when I found out. My friends used to make fun of me because he wasnât around for my dance competitions and showcases. I always defended him and said he was working in Korea to make a better life for us. Itâs what I believed at the time.âÂ
âAnd your mom let you believe all of that?â
Riki shrugs. âI guess so. She hated Y/N and her mom. She always talked down on them when my dad moved in and I felt that my anger was justified too. My mom hated the fact that my dad still wanted to keep Y/N in his life and wouldnât fully abandon her the way he did hid with his ex-wife. Some of his paycheck would go towards Y/Nâs college fund and my mom tried everything in her power to stop him from giving her money but he gave her an ultimatum, so she stopped complaining.Â
âHe took me to Korea once. I was fourteen, I think. I met my dadâs parents and we stayed with them for a while. I donât know why he took me there since I could barely speak the language but he said he wanted me to get to know where he grew up and integrate myself in the culture since he was trying to be a present father. That was the first time I met Y/N. I had my mind made up and decided I hated her the first time I saw her. She couldnât have been older than seventeen. I hated that she looked just like me.Â
âWhen we met for the first time, we didnât really get along. Both of us didnât talk and our dad tried so hard to form a bond between us but it didnât work. I didnât want anything to do with her because all I could think about was how she got to spend so much time with him while I only got to see him for a week or so a few times a year.âÂ
âWhat made you change your mind?â Heeseung asks.Â
âWhen we got back to Japan, my mom kept saying all of these mean things about Y/N and her family,â Riki continues. âI wasnât her biggest fan but the stuff she was saying was cruel and untrue. I knew it was pure jealousy and realized that my mom helped break up a perfectly good family. I mean, I knew it was my dadâs fault for cheating on his wife and leaving Y/N also, but coming to that realization made me think about how Y/N mustâve felt when she found out.â
âWowâŚI didnât know any of this.â
âAs far as I can tell, Jungwonâs the only person sheâs told.â Riki sighs and pushes his fingers through his hair. âAnyway, at that point, neither one of us cared to keep the relationship going. I didnât call her and she didnât call me. But the more my parents started living their lives like they hadnât made two people fall apart, the more I started to feel sorry for Y/N. I canât imagine finding out your dad cheated on your mom and then willingly left you for another family. Our dad brought me back to Korea a few times after that for winter and summer breaks to stay with his parents. He said he wanted me to experience life abroad. Heâd bring me to family events and I always felt so out of place.â
âWait, seriously?â Heeseung asks in disbelief.Â
âYeah, if you can believe it. I felt so guilty coming to these things. It was actually Y/Nâs mom who told her to start being more open to me. I canât explain how awful I felt when I realized she was making an effort to include me even though I was someone from her ex-husbandâs affair. When my dad was trying to get back in everyoneâs good graces, Y/Nâs mom was making sure I had enough food and water.
âI slowly started to realize that Y/N was hurting too. She had everything I wanted but it felt like I was the one who took that away from her. I thought, maybe if my mom wasnât pregnant with me, her dad wouldâve never continued the affair and she wouldâve never found out he cheated.â
âThatâs why you defend her, isnât it? Even when I thought she was being unfair?âÂ
Riki laughs. âYeah, man. Iâve known about her longer than sheâs known me and Iâve known about the affair longer than she has. Iâve had more time to get used to it. I donât blame her for pushing me away. If I found out I had a half-sibling because my dad cheated on my mom, I think Iâd react the same way.â Heeseungâs heart feels much heavier than it did prior to this conversation. âWeâve been getting better. She texts me first every now and then and she keeps up with my dancing stuff. Itâs not like weâre total strangers anymore. I mean, she likes me enough to let me be friends with you guys. Itâll just take some time.â
âDo you want her to be in your life? And do you want to be in hers?âÂ
Heeseung watches Riki nod without a second doubt. âAbsolutely. I love Y/N now. Sheâs my sister even if she only thinks of me as her half-brother. I know weâve had it rough in the past but she looks out for me. Y/Nâs smart and confident in all the ways I wish I could be. I love listening to her talk and I love learning new things about her. I always wished for a sibling and even though this isnât how I imagined it going, Iâm happy.âÂ
The two of them sit in another round of silence. Heeseung does his best to process everything Riki has just told him but it feels like thereâs too much information for him to digest all at once. He never knew any of this about you, too caught up in his own feelings about the misunderstanding. While he was giving you the cold shoulder, you were crumbling apart because your dad left for another family. If he knew any of this back then, Heeseung thinks he would be sympathetic. But he canât turn back the clock. He watches you stand by the water with your empty ice cream up in your hands and wonders what youâre thinking about.Â
âWait,â Heeseung says, cutting the silence for the umpteenth time. âYouâre from Okayama.â Riki nods. âYouâve lived in Okayama until you moved here.âÂ
âYeah, thatâs right.âÂ
âAnd Y/Nâs moving to Okayama for work.â Riki nods solemnly. âYouâre telling me Y/Nâs moving to the city your dad moved to when he left her?â The younger boy nods again. âShit.â
âWith everything going on in her life, I donât expect her to have it all figured out. Sure, it hurt when she didnât want to spend time with me but I donât think I can really be mad at her when this is how her life is. Okayama is a big city but the world is pretty small.â
âThatâs fucked up. Thatâs really, really fucked up.âÂ
âIâm pretty sure sheâs scared about running into our dad. Lord knows I came to study in Korea because I didnât want to be around him anymore,â Riki scoffs. âI know that I have my own shit to deal with and that Iâll probably need to find a therapist when I start school but for now, Iâll focus on Y/N. Iâm happy she let me come on this trip because I know how much camping with Jungwon means to her. I can somewhat empathize with her about moving to a place that didnât feel like home because of your dad.âÂ
Heeseung looks at Riki and doesnât expect him to look as tranquil as he does, but he looks at you like youâre the person giving him this grace and maturity. âFuck, Riki. Iâm really sorry that you had to deal with this. Do the other guys besides Jungwon know?â
âNot as much as you do, they just know something happened with my parents and thatâs why I donât want to go back to Okayama. I donât think Y/Nâs told anybody else, so please donât tell her you know.â
âI wonât,â Heeseung promises. âI swear on it.âÂ
âGood. I trust you and youâve been a good friend to me.âÂ
âSorry for giving you a hard time about her too.âÂ
âItâs fine now. JustâŚpromise me you wonât be so harsh on her. Sheâs been through a lot and I can tell sheâs really not happy about the move even though the job opportunity is really good for her career.âÂ
âOf course.âÂ
You walk back towards them and the two boys stand up and pretend as if they werenât speaking in depth about you. Heeseung, for the first time, smiles at you without restraint and it makes you feel confused as you shake off the sand and head back into his car.Â
On the entire drive back to the campsite, Heeseung lets Riki control the music and thinks about their previous conversation. He had no idea this is what you were dealing with and always thought you stopped talking to him because you didnât think it was worth being friends either. He doesnât remember much about the last few years of high school, apart from avoiding you when you were around, but now he wishes he wouldâve paid more attention. Even though whatâs past is past, Heeseung wishes he could turn back time and stop himself from making a false assumption.Â
He parks the car sooner than he realizes and Riki hands Heeseung back his phone. You step out of the car and look far better than you did before the impromptu trip. Heeseung canât help but jog after you.Â
âHey,â he calls out. Youâre pulled out of your thoughts when you hear his voice and look at him, perplexed. âAre you feeling better now?âÂ
âUm, yeah.â You look at Heeseung like you donât know what he wants from you and heâs starting to hate that heâs made you feel this way for so long.Â
âGood. Thatâs good.â Heeseung clears his throat. âI, uh, wanted to apologize for what I said to you last night. That was out of line. Iâm really sorry.â The gears turn in your head and he can see you processing his apology slowly.Â
âYeah, well, if you have a problem with me then you should either tell me why or leave me alone.â Your words lack any venom like they did last night but theyâre replaced with something more raw and callous. He almost wishes you would yell at him.Â
âI know.â He really does. âBut I really am sorry. For everything.â Heeseung canât find the words to elaborate how he feels, not when he sees your shared friends in front of him.Â
You look at him and he feels like you might as well be looking into his soul. Without another word, you leave him with his thoughts and rejoin the rest of the group.Â
***
Itâs nearing the end of the trip and Heeseung feels like he needs to get you alone to apologize for a million things. Guilt courses through his body when heâs awake and it only ceases when heâs asleep. He does his best to keep a straight face when heâs around everybody else and heâs sure theyâre all picking up on the fact that he hasnât been avoiding you like he did when you all first arrived.Â
But itâs hard to get you alone. He knows you likely wouldnât hear him out if he asked you to talk. Even so, he doesnât know if he knows everything he wants to say. Heeseung is sure everyone else will want to know why he asked to talk to you and make a big deal out of it too, but he canât say he blames them when heâs the one who has put so much tension between the two of you. Being nicer towards you with intention is not normal for Heeseung. He wishes that werenât the case.Â
Itâs a warm day outside and everybodyâs agreed to go kayaking in the lake. The water is calm and there are a few families and groups whoâve decided to do the same thing. Everybody fastens life vests and hops into their own kayak before setting out on the water.Â
Heeseung wants to enjoy being out on the water but his mind keeps coming back to you. He wonders deeply about the past he shares with you and what wouldâve been if he hadnât made those assumptions all those years ago. He knows heâs always been a bit too prideful for his own good, putting himself above the opinions of others without thinking twice. Heâs got tough skin and likes that heâs developed a sense of confidence and identity, especially because he wants to pursue a career in music, but now he wonders if heâs too confident.Â
The reason why your words hurt more than heâd care to admit is because he harbored a pathetic crush on you ever since you wrote him a letter for his thirteenth birthday. Heâd just gotten the hang of making music on GarageBand and by the time his birthday rolled around, Heeseung wanted to show some of his friends what heâd been learning after school. October came quickly and he invited his closest friends to his house for some cake and to jump in the large bouncy house his parents rented for him. The warm afternoon is forever etched into his memory because everyone Heeseung cared about in his first year being a teenager was there to support the beginning of his music interest.Â
Heeseung remembers the gift he unwrapped from you and your parents. It was a CD of his favorite album and one of those plastic statues with an award title etched into the base. It read âBEST MUSIC PRODUCERâ on it and Heeseung thought it was the best gift he received that year. What made that warm afternoon even more special was when you pulled him aside to give him a handwritten note. He remembers your shy voice telling him not to open it until everybody was gone and said you wanted to give the letter to him in private when nobody else was looking because your parents didnât know youâd done this. He kept that card on his desk until everybody left, promising to read it as soon as he was alone.Â
You wrote to his yearning heart, the side of him that wanted to make music so badly that heâd sit in his room until the late hour with a lamp shining over his desk to write songs until his hand hurt from holding his pen. Heeseung would hunch over his desk during school and scribble down lyrics in the margins of his assignments. It always felt like he was the only person who felt this way most times and felt like his peers couldnât understand why he loved making music so much. Reading your letter made Heeseung feel less alone, as if you were always watching over him and seeing his passion when he thought nobody else could.Â
That note alone solidified his blooming crush and suddenly, every love song he wrote was dedicated to you. Details about you were weaved into his songsâthe sound you made when you laughed, the stickers you used to collect, and the number on your childhood homeâit all became important to him. It was almost like Heeseung could talk to you through his music without saying a single word. He could let his songs do the talking for him.Â
Of course, thinking you were the one who said he didnât have any real talent made his hopes and dreams shatter into a million pieces. He always felt like your champion and that pursuing his passion wasnât so scary if he had you by his side. The world felt like it was crashing all around him to the point where he considered giving up on making music altogether. For that, he would never forgive you. But itâs different now. Heeseung knows youâre not to blame. The culpability doesnât lie on your shoulders, even if thatâs what Heeseung thought for all these years.Â
Heeseung roams around the lake in silence, letting the birds chirp uninterrupted. The sound of his boat sailing against the water beneath him does something to soothe his aching heart for the time being. He sees you not too far ahead with Sunghoon a bit behind you when he sees you reach for the paddle that fell from your grip. His heart stops when your kayak tips over when you've reached too far.Â
He wastes no time and rows his boat with all his might after hearing your yelp. His arms burn as he pushes through the water but before he can get any closer to you, Sunghoon has jumped out of his kayak to help you back to the surface. Heâs able to drag you to the shore nearby and takes off your life jacket when the two of you are sitting on the edge of dry land. Heeseung manages to haul your kayak and paddle while Jay, who also saw the incident, grabs Sunghoonâs. The two of them wordlessly make their way to you and Sunghoon.
Heeseung sees and hears you coughing but heâs also aware of the fact that youâre situated between Sunghoonâs arms. Heâs got you securely wrapped between him as you regain your breath. Itâs selfish to even consider the idea that he might be jealous but he canât help it, especially since youâre gripping onto his arms like heâs your lifeline.Â
âShit, Y/N,â Jay says as he takes his life jacket off. Heeseung does the same and parks his boat to get out of the water. âAre you okay?â
âMhm,â you mutter, catching your breath from the water thatâs still lodged in your throat. âJesus, I didnât think that would happen.â
âYou gave me a heart attack.â Sunhoon laughs from behind you but doesnât push you away just yet. Heeseung watches you.
âI got your boat and paddle,â he says pathetically, feeling awkward when the three of you look at him. âIâm glad youâre okay.âÂ
âThanks.â You cough when you speak and Sunghoon rubs your back gently. âWhy does this shit keep happening to me?âÂ
âMaybe Heeseungâs bad luck,â Sunghoon snickers. Thereâs no real animosity in his tone but Heeseung feels upset nonetheless.Â
âSorry,â he finds himself apologizing.Â
âIt wasnât your fault,â you tell him, leaning back against Sunghoon as you catch your breath. âI think thatâs enough kayaking for today, though.â
Jay laughs. âYeah, you can say that again. Iâm getting hungry anyway. Sunoo and Riki are probably complaining about that too.âÂ
At dinner, the eight of you sit around the fire as Jay, with the help of Riki and Sunoo, prepare and serve the food. The warm food satisfies everyone and everybody takes turns swapping stories about kayaking, and everybody laughs when Sunghoon recounts the story of you tipping over your boat. Riki keeps your plate full and tries to give you more meat but you shake your head. He pouts and you eventually relent, and that makes Heeseung smile.
He can feel Jungwon looking at him. The younger boy sits next to Heeseung and looks at him every so often, especially when you start talking or when the topic of discussion falls onto you. He ignores it to the best of his ability because heâs sure his friend has picked up on the fact that heâs not acting like heâs not interested anymore. When Jungwon pulls him aside when everybody leaves to get ready for bed, he isnât surprised.Â
âWhatâs up with you?â Jungwon asks quizzically. âDonât act like you donât know what I mean either, Heeseung. You were acting weird at dinner.âÂ
âTo make a long story short, the reason why I didnât like Y/N all this time was because I thought she was the one who said I would never make it in music. Sunoo told me it was Chaewon, not Y/N.âÂ
Jungwonâs eyes open comically. âThatâs the reason you didnât like Y/N?!â Heeseung smacks his shoulder and shushes him. âYou know if you just, like, told any of us why you were so mad at her, we couldâve solved this and you wouldnât have lost a friend.â Ouch.Â
âYeah,â Heeseung replies, looking at the ground below him, âI know. I feel like an idiot and I feel guilty. I want to make it right with her but Iâve acted like such an ass. I told myself it was for the better.â
âYou really were an ass,â Jungwon agrees. âDid you know she almost pulled out of this trip when she found out you were going?â
Heeseungâs shoulders slump. âI fucked up, Won. Youâre her best friend and I put you in an uncomfortable position too. Iâm sorry. I want to make things right but we havenât had a real conversation in years.âÂ
âYouâre going to have to do a lot more than apologize.â Jungwon sighs and beckons Heeseung to sit down on a log next to him. âShe doesnât hate you, Heeseung. Y/Nâs sensitive, you know? Sheâs sensitive in the way that she feels things pretty deeply and doesnât push things aside anymore. Back in high school, she went through something pretty life changing that forced her to shut down and all she wanted was to reach out to you but you iced her out.âÂ
âI feel awful. She has every right to hate me.â
âThatâs the thing, Heeseung. Y/N doesnât hate you. She doesnât understand what she did that made you pull away and sheâs hurt that you wonât talk to her about it. Sheâs done all she can trying to get through to you but sheâs given up because that didnât seem like it was going anywhere.â
âCan I ask you something?â Jungwon nods. âIfâŚIf I talked to her, apologized and tried to tell her what was going on at the time, do you think sheâd forgive me?âÂ
Heeseung waits for his friend to answer. âI think she would appreciate that you put in the effort to be there for her. She still cares about you even if she says she doesnât.â
âI donât know about that.âÂ
âI do. Iâm her best friend, Heeseung.â The elder nods. âWhat Iâm saying is this: All Y/N has ever wanted was for you to make an effort for her. When you stopped being her friend, she wondered for months if she was a bad person because you didnât talk to her about why you pulled away so suddenly. Apologizing doesnât mean the two of you will go back to the way you used to, but sheâll appreciate that over distancing yourself because you feel guilty.âÂ
That last part hurts to hear but he understands. âDo you think Y/N and I could ever be friends?âÂ
Jungown nods. âYeah, actually. I can tell that youâre being upfront with me right now. You know how she is. She values honesty and loyalty. Of everyone in our friend group, Y/N is the one whoâs really good at communicating and giving advice about that kind of stuff. She doesnât need you to go above and beyond for her. It might take time but I know sheâd appreciate it if you at least made an effort to talk to her and clear up some stuff.âÂ
Heeseung is lost in thought and barely hears Jungwon tell him heâll try his best to let the two of you talk tomorrow night after dinner. He doesnât know how to thank him other than to pull him into a tight embrace and cling onto the younger boy like heâs got something to lose. Jungwon seems to understand where Heeseung is coming fromâhe, too, has had his fair share of arguments with youâso he hugs him back as if to say everything will be alright.Â
When you wake up the next morning, a weird feeling settles in your chest. Jungwon is fast asleep when you leave the tent to get ready for the day after failing to fall asleep. The sun is already up and you donât know what time it is, but the morning is cold and the sweater you have on protects you from the chill nicely.Â
You see Heeseung at the wash station and grip your toiletry bag when he spots you. Awkwardly, you step into the bath house and turn the faucet on as he brushes his teeth, motioning yourself to do the same thing. He watches you from the mirror as you keep your eyeline straight in front of you. He wants to say something to you, perhaps âgood morningâ or âhow did you sleep?â but nothing seems good enough. You, on the other hand, feel like Heeseung may as well put you under a microscope.Â
âCan I help you?âÂ
He looks at you as if heâs been caught with his hand down the cookie jar. âN-No. Sorry.â You sigh and resume brushing your teeth when he spits and rinses his mouth of the toothpaste. âI mean what I said I was sorry. I really am.â
âFor which part? Cussing me out or avoiding me since high school?â You sound tired.Â
âAll of it,â he says quietly. You keep your head straight while he looks at you. âI have no excuse. Iâve been acting like a dick towards you and I feel awful.â You donât say anything. âIâŚI thought you were the one who said I wouldnât make it as a producer. I didnât know it was Chaewon who said it and that you were the one who defended me. I was stupid and angry, and I took it out on you without knowing the whole truth.Â
âI didnât find out until Sunoo told me yesterday. I didnât talk about that with anyone since we were friends, you know? I was so hurt but I didnât know that it was my fault for making myself feel like thatâŚAnd in turn, I made you feel like you didnât have a place in my life. Iâm so, so sorry that I treated you like you didnât mean anything to me when you did.âÂ
You donât look at him as you finish your morning routine. He stands there awkwardly, waiting for you to say something.Â
âI went through a lot of shit back then,â you say, turning to face him. âMy dad left just after you stopped talking to me and all I wanted to do was talk to you about it. You always knew what to say to make me feel better but then you started ignoring me like I never mattered to you. Do you know how badly that hurt to have one of my best friends stop giving a shit about me?Â
âI watched you hang out with our mutual friends. I watched you do really cool things with music but I did all of that on the sidelines because you never included me, even though I was the only person who really supported you., I donât think you really get that there were so many people back then who just wanted to be your friend because a few of your songs blew up on the internet. I watched you keep them close while you pushed me aside without giving me the chance to make up for whatever I did to make you upset.Â
âIâve spent the last few years trying to be okay with the fact that you didnât want to be friends anymore. I tried so hard to accept that you and I would only be people who saw each other in passing. But that hurt. It hurt so much to think you didnât care about me for one second and didnât care that I was upset too.âÂ
Your confession hangs in the air and Heeseung feels like crying when he sees that youâve started to tear up. You wipe them away aggressively, too embarrassed to be seen weeping in front of him.Â
âIâm sorry.â Heeseungâs voice cracks. âI am, Y/N. You were so good to me and I took that for granted.â
âYeah, you could say that.âÂ
âI canât make excuses for myself back then but I want you to know I own up to everything. Iâm sorry that I let you feel like that and wasnât mature enough to talk to you. I know Iâm too late, but you deserve an apology. You deserve more than that.âÂ
Heeseung thinks youâre going to storm past him like he did a few nights prior. He thinks you might spit in his face and tell him to go to hell. But all you do is stare at him in silence.Â
âIâve wanted to hear you say that for a long time,â you tell him. âSo thanks for that. I feel beyond hurt by everything you did and everything youâve ever said since we stopped being friends. All I have ever wanted was to be in the same room and not worry about if you wanted me there or not. This entire trip has felt like walking on eggshells around you.â He lets you step around him and out of the bath house.Â
âI donât hate you either, Heeseung. I know you probably think that I do but I don't.âÂ
***
The rest of your friends can tell somethingâs going on between the two of you but choose not to comment on it. Everybody is off doing their own thing, as today is the last day of camping, and nobody wants to accidentally spoil it. You and Jungwon decide to head over to your âsecret spot,â just the two of you, for old timeâs sake.
âIâll miss you when I leave Korea,â you say as the two of you sit on the ground. âI donât know how Iâm gonna do any of this without you, Wonnie.â
âI know youâre scared of the future and about your dad asking to see you, but youâve got to know that youâre stronger than any of us. Youâre like, a superhero, or something.âÂ
âNow youâre just being corny.âÂ
Jungwon laughs. âYeah, maybe I am. But seriously, Y/N, Iâve always liked that you were able to find some of your optimism again. You make me feel like things will get better for me too. I canât sit here and pretend I know what youâre going through, but Iâll always be here for you. My parents will too.â
âI still remember the look on their faces when my mom broke the news,â you snort. âThey looked like they were ready to go to prison for murder.âÂ
âIâve never seen them so angry. I felt like castrating your dad.âÂ
âDidnât we all?âÂ
âBut at least we got Riki out of it.â You smile fondly. Jungwon wants to tell you heâs proud of how far youâve come, but decides to keep that to himself for now.
âI love him, you know. Even if I donât really say it. I think it was hard for me to be able to say I loved him without feeling guilty. I thought I was betraying my mom if I gave Riki a chance and seeing her step up to be a parental figure when my dad was too busy mingling with our side of the family was hard. Weâve never talked about it but I know she doesnât hate Riki. She wouldnât have forced me to spend time with him if she did.
âHeâs such a bright kid and heâs so talented. It makes me happy when people recognize that too. He taught me a lot about prioritizing my feelings. Learning to re-evaluate my life when Riki showed up made me feel, I donât know, more mature? Like, I can be upset and still care about people because we all make mistakes and none of us asked to be here.âÂ
Jungwon lets a beat of silence pass before speaking. âDid Heeseung talk to you?â
âThis morning. Why do you ask?â
âWell, I saw him acting a bit different at the bonfire last night and asked him if anything happened. He told me why he was so mad at you for so long and said he wanted to apologize.â
âMen are so fucking stupid,â you sigh, bringing your knees to your chest. âI donât understand why he didnât talk to me in the first place.â
âMe either, honestly. But at least heâs making an effort. Isnât that what you said you wanted?âÂ
You nod. âYeah. Feelings are complicated. Iâve been angry for so long. I always thought Iâd yell at him and give him a piece of my mind, or something. I thought I would hate him and tell him to forget about me. But when he apologized, he said it in a way that made me believe he meant it. It didnât feel like he was bullshitting me. I felt stuck.âÂ
âWhat did you end up saying?âÂ
âI told him how hurt I was during that time and said I wished he was there for me like I was for him when I was dealing with my dad. I told him how I wished we couldâve talked it out.âÂ
âThatâs a good start.âÂ
âI donât think weâll ever go back to the way we were but I also know Heeseung. I know it took a lot out of him to set aside his pride and put somebody else first. I donât really know what Iâm gonna do now. All I know is Iâm tired of being upset and I want to feel okay.â
Jungwon nudges your shoulder with his. âYouâll be just fine. The universe moves for you, Y/N. Thereâs no way you wonât have a happy ending.â He watches you hide a smile.Â
âYou are such a sap.âÂ
âItâs what you love about me.âÂ
âUnfortunately.â Youâll really miss him. âI gotta take it one day at a time, right? Heeseung is going to be in my life for a long time since we share so many friends. Riki loves him too, and I guess I canât hate Heeseung too much for looking out for him. I donât think I have any room to think about it when I get back because Iâll be doing some last minute packing and getting ready to move.âÂ
âItâll be over before you know it. But even then, youâre going to have the best time in Okayama. Fuck your dad and all of the bad shit.â
âYeah,â you laugh. âFuck my dad.âÂ
The end of the trip is bittersweet. You start to tear up when you see the campsite completely empty and move slowly to pack everything in the cars. Heeseung notices but doesnât say anything, offering to grab whateverâs in your hands when he sees you looking out into the clearing for extended periods of time. He doesnât pretend to know what youâre feeling but he knows he doesnât like it when you cry.
He watches you get into Jayâs car and wishes that you could be comfortable sitting alone with him. While Jake mans the aux, Heeseung thinks about what might happen when you move away. Will the two of you remain how you are or will you grow apart? Is there any room for him in your life now that youâre off to explore a different part of the world? Will he ever be able to push past the gnawing feeling of pushing his pathetic crush on you down until he no longer thinks of you like that?
Heâs never admitted it, but those feelings he had towards you all those years ago never really went away. Heeseung doubled down on his irritation because doing otherwise would allow all of those romantic feelings to overwhelm him. He kept his head down around you because he knew one look at you would be enough to throw his inhibitions away and he was afraid he would risk everything heâs ever wanted just for you to tell him you love him too. Now that he knows everything was a misunderstanding, the grave loss weighs on him. Heâs got a million thoughts running through his mind and none of them seem to make any sense. These romantic feelings didnât lie dormant for all of these years, right?Â
The next week and a half feels like it passes by too quickly for the both of you. You finish packing the morning of your going away party that everyone helped set up and plan. Your mom, along with Jungwonâs parents, all of your friends and their parents, and Maeumi, presentes you with the kind of happiness you never want to forget. Even Heeseung, who shows up and gives you a letter when no one else is looking, makes you feel like you would be dearly missed. Youâre not sure that you enjoy being the center of attention, but everybodyâs kindness makes you feel like you deserve to be.Â
Itâs late when they leave and socializing makes you feel far more exhausted than you anticipated. Your flight is midday tomorrow but you try not to think about that. Heeseungâs letter sits on the edge of your bed and the green envelopeâyour favorite colorâstares at you like itâs begging you to open it. And open it you do.Â
Y/Nâ
I donât know where to start. Iâm sorry, first of all, for treating you the way I did. I was a sorry excuse for a friend. I shouldâve talked to you instead of jumping to conclusions and it doesnât matter that we were both young. Friends annoy each other but they donât disrespect one another. Iâm so sorry that I made you doubt yourself.Â
Iâll miss you a lot when youâre in Japan. We didnât get the chance to talk it out and I understand if you donât want anything to do with me after you leave. You deserve people who will be there for you. But please know Iâll always be rooting for you.Â
LastlyâŚI donât know if this is my place to say this but here goes nothing. Back when we were close, the one thing I loved about you was how passionate you were about life. You loved to learn and explore new things, and you always made me feel like I could feel that way too. I know youâre scared about Okayama for a number of reasons but youâre the strongest person I know. Youâll be just fine, even if you donât feel like you will be. Iâll be here for you whenever you need me. I mean it.
- Heeseung
For the first time in a while, you allow yourself to cry over Lee Heeseung and surprise yourself when you realize that you want him back.Â
***
At the airport, your mom helps you check in your luggage and asks if youâve got everything you need and makes you double check everything. Itâs reminiscent of the way you did with Riki before the camping trip. Youâre happy despite feeling a bit annoyed that sheâs making you take off your backpack. You donât totally mind it, though. She gives you a hug that feels like it could last a lifetime and letting her go is the hardest thing youâve ever done.Â
Everybody else gives you love, too. Sunoo is the first to hug you and makes you promise to bring him back some skincare and souvenirs the next time youâre able to get back to Korea. Jake embraces you next and gives you some words of encouragement while Jay does his best to pretend like he isnât sad by complaining about how there will be one less cook in the kitchen. You throw your arms around him anyway and pretend not to hear him sniffle. Sunghoon traps you in a bear hug and makes you promise to take as many photos as possible and says heâll look forward to seeing them. He, too, pretends like heâs not about to cry. You push your head onto his shoulder and give his hand a squeeze before he lets a few teardrops fall.Â
Jungwon is the most emotional of them all. He wipes away his free falling tears and crushes you in a hug, burying his head in your neck. âYou better come back, asshole. I canât believe youâre gonna leave me to chase your dreams. Thatâs so selfish of you.â You think you might cry too but laugh anyway.Â
âI love you so much, Wonnie.â He squeezes you like heâs afraid heâll forget what it feels like to be in your embrace until Jake pries him off of your body.Â
Riki stands awkwardly with his eyes to the floor and his hands in front of him. The taller boy feels as though his shoes are glued down but you see the way his gaze flickers as if heâs trying to figure out what to do next. It doesnât take much out of you to throw your arms around him and push yourself into his chest.Â
âIâm going to miss you a lot, Riki,â you tell him.
âReally?â You nod.Â
âI know I havenât been the best towards you but you need to know that Iâm so proud of you, okay? I loved getting to know you. I loved that you came on the trip and Iâm so fucking happy that youâre my brother. Out of everybody who couldâve popped into my life, Iâm so glad it was you.âÂ
Everybody watches Riki melt in front of them as he envelopes you right into him. You feel the weight of his shoulders relax and for the first time, you feel like youâre starting to wonder if this is what it feels like to have everything figured out.Â
âIâll come visit you,â he promises. âIâll come home for winter break.â
âStay with me. We can do all of the corny shit siblings do. Iâll even pay for everything.âÂ
Riki laughs but doesnât let you go. âYouâre the best, you know that? Even though it took you some time, I always thought of you like my sister. Iâm really happy to be around you.âÂ
The waterworks begin and Riki does his best to comfort you when he feels tears on his shirt. He feels somewhere in between empty and fulfilled knowing the two of you have made amends, but knowing you want to work towards the future is enough to make him confident that everything will be alright. He lets you go when he feels your arms loosen around him and aggressively wipes his own tears away.Â
When you look at Heeseung, the last thing he expects you to do is acknowledge him. He came to the airport because he wants you to know he meant everything in the letter he wrote. He stayed up all night to check for your texts but you hadnât said anything, and while he knew it was an emotional day for you because of all you were dealing with, a selfish part of him wanted to know what you thought about it.Â
You surprise Heeseung and yourself by engulfing him in a hug. The familiarity of his embrace makes you feel nostalgic and you canât help but cry right into his chest. Heeseung doesnât hesitate and brings his arms to wrap around your fragile body as you silently weep against him. He holds you tight and gently rocks your body like he used to all those years ago. You donât fight back either. Instead, you push your head deeper into him and hold him until your tears have stopped.Â
âI read your letter,â you say quietly. âWe have a lot to talk about but I appreciate everything you said, Heeseung. I tried to hate you but I could never bring myself to feel that way about you.â
âIâm really going to miss you. Can I be selfish?â Heeseung asks with a sob in his throat. âI wish I apologized sooner and I wish we had more time. But please, promise me that youâre going to try to have fun in Japan, okay? Youâre the best person I know, even if I didnât make you feel like it. Iâll always live with that regret but knowing youâll forget about me and make a life for yourself is enough.â
âI could never truly forget about you, Hee.â That nickname you used to call him makes Heeseungâs heart beat faster. âI donât want you out of my life. All these years I felt like thatâs what I wanted but I donât want that now. Be happy without me too, okay? Forget about me and follow that dream of yours.âÂ
Heeseung laughs sadly. âI donât think I could ever forget about you.â You step away from him and wipe your eyes for the umteenth time.Â
âWrite a song for me, then. And donât be a stranger, okay?âÂ
âOkay.â Heeseung swears on it. âI wonât.âÂ
A beat of silence passes before all seven of your friends push you into the middle of their group hug. It brings another round of tears to your eyes and Jungwonâs the one who lets you cry into him until your mom tells you itâs time to start boarding. Everybody gets one final goodbye before you disappear into the plane.Â
You smile at your phone when you settle into your seat.Â
lee heeseung: I miss you alreadyÂ
You miss him too.
***
Okayama is a dream until it isnât. You settled into your apartment and had one month before you started your job and went to all the places Riki recommended. You started to understand him a little better after moving and both of you find it hilarious that you two ended up living in each othersâ hometowns. You canât choose your siblings but youâd choose Riki in every lifetime.Â
You call your mom every so often and update her on life. Your friends keep you in the loop and FaceTime you when theyâre out together. It makes you feel like youâre back in Korea and while it isnât the same, you appreciate the effort anyway. Youâve made friends with your neighbors and a few girls you met when you went out drinking with your cousin the week you moved and it made braving a whole new country feel less daunting. Jungwon calls you everyday and you tease him for being such a clingy friend, but you both know you love it. You inform him about everything from the boring details to juicy work drama, and it feels like youâre sitting in his bedroom wearing face masks and eating junk food.Â
Heeseung has been a constant fixture in your life, too. You texted him the moment you landed and he kept the conversation going. You talk about everything, the past especially, and start to feel like things might be okay. Those butterflies that you had for him in high school made an appearance after three months in Japan and part of you wondered if you were a fool for bringing him back into your life after everything. All of your friends back in Korea tell you Heeseung is miserable without you and when they tease him in the big group chat, he doesnât deny it.
The friends you made seemed dividedâone half thought you should leave him in the dark while the other half swooned over his dedication to making things right. You donât really know what to think or how to feel, but you know youâre happy. Between phone calls and late night texts, you were always left with a smile on your face before bed.
Riki came back to Okayama for winter break and spent two weeks in your apartment. When the two of you werenât bickering as siblings do, you both stayed up way too late watching anime and watched him dance at his home studio. Riki even got you to attend a few classes (he tried not to laugh at your poor coordination skills but appreciated the effort anyway). You prefer to be in the audience.Â
Life seemed great until your dad made an appearance just before Christmas. He knew you were here from a single text message he never responded to before you moved to Okayama. The weight of his silence prepared you to be in Japan without him but his sudden appearance made you feel like everything changed for the worse. Riki went back to his childhood home to see his family and asked you to come with him after your dad had forced him. Your brother knows the intricate dynamic and you donât blame him for anything. Seeing your dad with his new family after sparse texts since he left felt like a punch in the gut. It soured your holidays and Riki spent the rest of his trip apologizing even though you told him there was no reason for him to be sorry. You dropped him off at the airport and told him youâd see him in the summertime.Â
The holidays came and went but the feelings youâve carried since then havenât disappeared, which brings you to the present. Heeseung is standing in the doorway of your apartment in Okayama, looking at you with those big, round doe eyes you always loved.Â
âHi,â he says breathlessly.Â
âHeeseungâŚWhat are you doing here?â He scratches the back of his neck.Â
âYouâve been going through a lot, you know? Every time we talked on the phone, you sounded like you were a thousand miles away and it killed me to know I couldnât do anything to make you feel better after the holidays with your dad. Jungwon and I have been talking about how much of an ass he is and how much we wish we could be here for you and the next thing I knew, he was encouraging me to buy the next flight out to see you,â Heeseung says in a single breath. âBut honestly? I just really, really fucking missed you.â
âYou flew all this way here? For me?â
âYeah.â Heeseung says it like itâs a no-brainer. âAlthough, now I feel kinda stupid. I realize Iâm putting you in a tough spot. But you know what? I think itâs worth it to know that youâre okay.âÂ
He looks at you but you donât say anything. Heeseung can see the gears turning inside of your head while you process his arrival. You look so cute in your sleep shorts and oversized shirt. He loves it when you call him via FaceTime because he gets to see all parts of youâgetting ready for work and winding down as you are now. It makes him feel like youâre pulling him right back into you.Â
You donât really need to say anything. You lurch yourself onto him and press your lips against his like itâs something youâve been waiting to do for the longest time. You probably have. Heeseung wraps his arms around you and lets his mouth melt against yours and doesnât complain about your boldness either. He welcomes it, even.Â
âYouâre so stupid,â you mutter against him, pulling him into your apartment and locking the door behind you. You kiss him repeatedly and he puts his hands on your waist as if to let you know heâs right there with you.Â
âWhy am I stupid, baby?â Heeseungâs voice paired with that nickname makes your knees buckle. Â
âYou can stay with me.â He feels you smile against your lips. âPlease justâŚstay here and donât go.âÂ
âIâm not going anywhere.âÂ
Heeseung drops his backpack onto the floor and lets you capture his mouth again. You taste so fresh with your cherry lip balm. He moans right into your mouth when you push him against your countertop and the feeling of his hands on your body makes you grow hotter as the seconds pass by. The ache between your legs starts to overwhelm you as his plump lips kiss you over and over again before he pushes them against your neck. Itâs too much in all of the right ways and youâre too aroused to even think straight. You start to pull yourself away from Heeseung and heâs about to ask if heâs going too fast when you grab your hand and lead him to your bedroom.Â
âY/N, wait,â Heeseung tries to say in between kisses. He loves the feeling of your warm mouth against him and feels himself starting to get worked up but he doesnât know if youâre thinking straight. Even though the two of you have talked nearly everyday, Heeseung doesnât know if this is moving too fast.Â
âIâm done waiting.â You pull away from him and reach for his hand, pushing his lengthy fingers past your shorts and underwear until he feels the wet slick starting to pool at your folds. Your hand moves his back and forth as he looks at you like youâve stunned him with a laser gun. Heeseungâs dick jumps in his pants and it takes him a second to move his fingers on his own accord. âI want you, Heeseung. Donât you want me too?â
His resolve crumbles. Heeseung nods with his mouth parted as he pushes his fingers inside you, your wetness allowing him to reach your depths immediately. You push yourself on your toes and put your hands on his chest, clinging onto him like youâre afraid heâd let you go if you donât. He thrusts his fingers with intention and hears your quiet whimpers when he leans his head down next to your mouth.
âYeah,â Heeseung says, lips touching the shell of your ear as his voice ripples through your body. âI want you.â
He pulls his hand away from you and smiles at the short whine from the loss of his touch. Heeseung loves how much you need him and heâs sure you can see how much he needs you too. A surge of confidence jolts within you as Heeseung looks down at your body like heâs ready to eat you alive. You peel off your shirt and shorts, leaving you in your underwear as Heeseung pulls his shirt over his head with a single hand.Â
âLie down,â Heeseung beckons. You do as he says and he sinks down to his knees and pries your legs apart, looking directly at you as he speaks. âGood girl.â He pulls your garments down your legs and the cool air hits your center as Heeseung looks down at you.Â
You donât have time to think about anything when he peppers soft kisses on your skin. His lips journey from the inside of your knee and he presses one small kiss to your slit before repeating the process on your other leg. Heeseung allows himself to get lost in the way your body reacts to his feather-like touches before descending down onto your folds.Â
Heeseungâs tongue feels like the closest thing to magic. He takes his time when licking you with his warm and wet muscle, canvassing every ridge with expert movements. You rake your fingers through his hair and tug gently at his soft roots, pulling a moan out of him that delivers a delicious shock up your spine. He puts your feet on his shoulders and plunges his tongue inside of you and grips your flesh with his fingertips until youâre coming undone on his mouth.Â
âSo fucking good,â he mutters to himself more than he does to you. He laps up your release and you find yourself a bit embarrassed that you were able to come so quickly, but the way he touches you makes it seem as though he already knew how to push your buttons. âYouâre so sweet, Y/N. I could eat you all day if youâd let me.âÂ
Heeseung trails his lips up your stomach and kisses you so tenderly that you feel as though your body must be made out of soft cotton. His lips find your left nipple and lets his tongue swirl over the bud before sucking on it with a gentle motion. He repeats the process on the other nub and flicks it, enjoying the soft sounds that come from you. Heeseung buries himself right into your neck but he doesnât kiss the skin like you think he will. Instead, he kisses you twice on your open neck before moving his body so that he can look down at you.Â
He bites his lip. It makes you feel exposed but somehow, it makes you feel all that more confident. Itâs like Heeseung is looking right through you with all of your worries and faults laid out for him to reject. But he doesnât. Likewise, Heeseung allows you to see him in his vulnerability and heâs ready to pack up his things and leave if you tell him you donât want this anymore. But you donât.Â
He descends on you once again, this time his lips pushing against you in a slow and sensual kiss. You feel the way he moves against you and savor the sounds your mouths make together. Heeseung brings his hand to brush strands of your hair away from your face as he kisses you and the gentle touch of his fingertips feels like it was always meant to be there.Â
âI need you.â Your back arches right into his chest as you speak. âDonât make me wait, Heeseung. Please, I justâŚI need you.âÂ
âIâll never make you wait. Never again,â he promises. Heeseung manages to rid himself of his pants and boxers and pushes himself between your legs until his dick is situated between your folds. Your arousal, paired with the precum oozing from his slit, provides the perfect balance of wetness that coats the entirety of his cock as he glides himself against you.Â
When his tip catches your hole, the sounds of your moans overpowers his refrain. He pushes inside of you slowly inch by inch, savoring the way you feel for the fear that he might never be able to do this again. You look so beautiful underneath him with his dick completely sheathed inside of you and when your legs wrap around his body to encourage him to move, Heeseung doesnât deny you of your pleasure.Â
Neither of you have ever had sex like thisâthe feeling of pure rawness echoes throughout the room between your breathy moans and the sound of skin pushing against one another. Your body is warm in the way he always imagined and his hands touch every inch of you as if to commit your silhouette to memory. In this moment, Heeseung feels as though the two of you are kindred spirits who found each other.
âYouâre so good for me,â Heeseung whispers into your neck as he thrusts into you. âSo fucking tight and wet.â He feels your arms wrap around his shoulders to keep him trapped between you but he canât say he minds all that much.Â
âI-Iâm so close,â you say in a broken moan.Â
âAlready, baby?â Heeseung says to tease you as he brings his head up to look down at you again. He pushes his hips against you faster and that surprised gasp you let out makes his balls clench.Â
âS-Shut up.âÂ
Your arms fall to the mattress as you claw at your sheets. Heeseung plans his elbows on either side of your head as he focuses all of his willpower towards fucking you with fast deep strokes, loving the way your mouth parts slightly and how your eyes are closed shut. His muscles flex as he pushes himself until youâre coming with a loud moan, and finds himself releasing inside of you the moment he feels you gushing around him.Â
You feel Heeseung press his tender lips against your forehead as you come down from your high while he continues to rock you through your release. Your cheeks are hot from the pleasure and the room is suddenly too warm with Heeseung on top of you. When you open your eyes, heâs looking at you like heâs seen a halo above your head. He canât really help it. Heeseung leans down to press a soft, gentle kiss against your lips to convey a job well down.Â
âI came so fast,â you whisper bashfully. You bite your lip but Heeseung tugs it away from your teeth to kiss you again.Â
âMe too.â Heeseung kisses your nose and relishes in the way you scrunch your face. âBut itâs okay. You deserve to feel good. I donât care how long or short it takes.â He places his hand on your face and rubs the apple of your cheek with his thumb.Â
âI really missed you.âÂ
âI missed you too, dummy,â Heeseung says before flicking your nose. He holds your jaw in place before kissing you again.Â
âWeâre gonna have to do a lot of making up, you know,â you mumble against his lips with a smile.Â
âOh yeah?âÂ
âMhm.â You push against his lips. Heeseung pushes his half-hard dick inside of you as your back arches right into him. Heâs there to catch you this time, his arm supporting your spine underneath you. âFuck!âÂ
âMy baby,â he whispers into you. âLet me make it up to you.âÂ
You let him.
***
EPILOGUE: THE FOLLOWING SPRING
âFor fuckâs sake, get your big ass head out of the way.â
Jay smacks Jakeâs shoulder. âYou can see just fine, stupid.â Sunghoon hits both of their shoulders.Â
âBoth of you, stop moving so much. You guys almost knocked my camera.â They mumble a quick apology before finding another thing to discuss.Â
âI feel like Iâm surrounded by children.â You sigh as Heeseung wraps his arms around your waist and lets his chin sit atop the crown of your head. He feels your body relax against him and smiles.Â
âWell you are, technically. Riki just stopped wearing diapers.âÂ
âI hate you so much, Heeseung,â the younger boy whines without any true malice. You laugh and squeeze Rikiâs hand. He canât find it in himself to be too mad at either of you.Â
âDo you guys see Jungwon and Sunoo?â Sunghoon asks with his camera at the ready. âI want to make sure I take as many pictures as possible.âÂ
âI donât think theyâre coming out yet,â says Jay.Â
âDuh.â Jake provokes him in a way you missed while you were in Okayama. It brings warmth to your heart when you see them bicker.Â
Jay turns to you. âY/N, have you given a second thought about moving in with Jake when you come back? I think youâd be better off if you kicked him to the streets.â
âHey!â Jake tackles Jay until heâs got his older friendâs neck between his arms. None of you pay too much attention and choose to wait for Jungwon and Sunoo.Â
âOur friends are another breed,â Heeseung mumbles against you as he kisses your cheek. âAre you sure you want to move back and be roommates with Jake and Jungwon?âÂ
âMhm. I miss you guys so much.âÂ
âBut you miss me the most, right?âÂ
âYes, baby.â You bring his hand up to your lips and kiss the back of it. âI missed you the most.âÂ
âThere they are!â Riki shouts.Â
Jungwon and Sunoo, clad in their caps and gowns, saunter their way out of the stadium before spotting your group. They make a run for it and push past the onlookers who search for their loved ones as well. Sunoo clings onto Jake while Jungwon finds his perch in Rikiâs arms as Sunghoon captures the beautiful moment on his digital camera.Â
âWe fucking did it!â Jungwon shouts as he pulls away. âSunoo, we did it!âÂ
âAbout damn time,â Sunoo replies as he rolls his eyes with a smile. âI felt like Iâd be there forever.âÂ
âWeâre so proud of you both.â Jay smiles and moves to hug each of them. âYou guys are amazing, seriously.âÂ
âI canât believe youâre leaving me.â Riki bumps hips with Sunoo. âThat seems unfair.âÂ
âLife is unfair.â Thereâs no real bite to his tone, just a bittersweet future. Sunoo hugs the taller boy.Â
âOh my God,â Jungwon says with his hand pressed to his mouth. âY/N is crying.âÂ
âNo Iâm not,â you say, even though you definitely are. Heeseung squeezes you tighter against him. âShut up, Jungwon. Iâm not crying.âÂ
âYou so are!â Riki shouts.Â
âIâm not crying. Seeing my best friends graduate college is not a good reason to cry, okay?!âÂ
Jungwon and Sunoo sport shit-eating grins. Heeseung lets you go as they engulf you in a hug while the younger of the two feels your hot tears on his cheek. He laughs and this moment starts to feel a bit nostalgic to him, as he acted the same way you did upon seeing you in your cap and gown.Â
âHey,â he says in a softer tone, pulling away from the two of you. âThanks for being here. I know taking time off was a little hard but weâre so happy you could come.â
âYeah,â Sunoo agrees. âTalking to you over the phone isnât enough. We missed you, you know?âÂ
You tear up again and wipe your nose before falling into them again. âI missed you too.â
âOh God,â Sunghoon laughs. âIf Y/Nâs crying then I know weâre in for it.âÂ
âHey!â Heeseung jokes, nudging his friend with his shoulder. âDonât talk about my girlfriend like that.â Although, he canât really disagree with Sunghoon.Â
âYouâre all so stupid for making me cry in public,â you say as you wipe your tears from your eyes. âIâm gonna look back at these pictures and my eyes will be all red and puffy.âÂ
âI feel like you and Heeseung might as well be our parents,â Sunoo says as Heeseung pulls him into a hug.
âWait, you guys should totally take a family photo.â Jake steps forward to arrange the four of you like a family portrait with Jungwon and Sunoo between you and Heeseung. âThere. Sunghoon, take a picture. This is so going on the fridge when we move in together.âÂ
Heeseung moves back next to you as the rest of your friends look at the photos on Sunghoonâs camera and take turns taking pictures of him with the graduates. He kisses your cheek and pulls you back into him.Â
âYou ready to come back to all this chaos?â
âMore than ready,â you affirm. âI loved Okayama, even though I had to deal with my dad and all of that stuff. But I missed my life here and the masters program over in Seoul is a good fit for me, you know? Plus, your apartment isnât too far from mine.âÂ
âI canât wait for you to move back.â Heeseung kisses your cheek again. âYour mom and I talked logistics about helping you move into the new apartment. Knowing you, Iâm sure youâll have another suitcase coming back with you.âÂ
âShut up.âÂ
âYou know Iâm right.âÂ
You blush and mumble. âYeahâŚYouâre right.âÂ
âYour mom and Jungwonâs parents talked about renting a bigger camp space this year, too. I think theyâre planning on having one huge trip this year now that most of us have graduated.âÂ
âI canât believe our last trip was almost a year ago. Thatâs insane because it feels like I moved to Japan just yesterday.âÂ
âI solemnly swear I will never be as stupid or dense as I was back then.â When you turn around to look at Heeseung, you know heâs telling the truth. You donât answer him verbally and choose to silence him with a pretty kiss. Itâs enough for the two of you.Â
âOi, love birds,â Jake calls, looking at you. âWe should find their parents. Your mom called me and I think she was crying.âÂ
You frown. âWhy didnât she call me?â Â
âShe said you were probably crying too,â Jake snickers.Â
âIs it too late to back out of being roommates?âÂ
âNope. Youâre stuck with me.âÂ
Heeseung squeezes your hand.Â
âAnd me.âÂ
As you look around, you canât help but feel as though this was always how it was meant to be.
âI wouldnât have it any other way.â
***
comments and reblogs are appreciated! xx
EVERYONE needs to know this exists it was so angsty yet so real đŠ fuck i wanna be on what ur on ur so talented
[SUNGHOON] ENGENE, I had a lot of fun in Saitama for the past two days!! Be careful not to catch a cold and see you again soon~
someone lock me up damnđŤ

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch ⢠No registration required ⢠HD streaming
AGAINST THE TIDES â P.SH
SYNOPSIS: Growing up, youâve only had one best friend that you would call your family. Park Sunghoon. He was your partner in crime, your best friend, your ride or die, he was everything. You and him did almost anything and everything together, practically attached to the hip, and that included swimming too. As years passed, you and him both turned out to be outstanding swimmers that had a promising career ahead. All was well until one unforgettable day that broke your lifelong friendship, turning it into anger and hatred instead. With the Olympics coming up, you had unexpected news about Sunghoon joining your team. Worst of all, you had to work alongside him for the mixed medley relay event. One dream, one goal, a childhood wish you and him shared, will that be successfully achieved when you and him could barely bear standing next to each other?
PAIRINGS: pro-swimmer!sunghoon x pro-swimmer!afab!reader
GENRE: childhood friends to enemies to lovers, sports au, angst, romance, slow burn, forced proximity
WARNING(S): mentions of drinking/alcohol, profanities, (lots of) miscommunication
WC: 28k
PLAYLIST: suburban legends by taylor swift, heartburn by wafia
AUTHOR'S NOTE: after 4 months of not posting, i've vomited out 28k for y'all! i hope you guys will like this one and do forgive me for my lack of swimming knowledge helpp, i tried with my years of swimming! please leave a feedback and reblogs are greatly appreciated! muah xx
masterlist | Š jaylver 2024 all rights reserved
Was it possible to wake up from a dream that happened to be your reality?
Standing in the national aquatics training centre, the swimming pool where you've practically resided was glistening under the bright lights. Contrary to them, you were anything but bright, a sudden dread befalling your expressions.
Coming into your first day of the three months long and last training before the Olympics, you were anticipating for it to be a peaceful, fun day that would end with your muscles aching. However, the moment you stepped onto the training ground, being the first to reach, your coach had already decided to break a rather dreadful news.Â
"Come on, Y/N, it's nothing too bad," Jeon Jungkook, your young coach that retired early from competing and also the reason for your countless success, was trying his best to reassure you. It wasn't working.
"Not 'too bad'? Being in the same national team with him is already a sight for sore eyes to me. Now you're telling me I have to train with him under you? Together?"Â
Your coach was rubbing the side of his head, the early morning and the shrillness of your voice wasn't a favourable pairing to him. "I'm sorry, Y/N, but if it wasn't for Yeonjun's sudden injury, he wouldn't have to be replaced for the mixed relay,"Â
"Well, if only he didn't get drunk and fell off his bike," you muttered under your breath, never once taking account that this would be the consequences you were suffering from his actions. That was until this moment.Â
There came a sigh coming from Jungkook, his arms were crossed and he was resting his weight on one leg. "I know you and him don't get along, but I've discussed this with Coach Kim and we thought that if I replaced Yeonjun with him, it's the best decision. Plus, both of you are Olympic medallists, having two star swimmers in a team isn't all that bad,"
You were silent, stubbornly keeping quiet at the fact that you knew he was right. Of course he was, he's been your coach for years, he has his ways of choosing his words correctly when it comes to you. He knew of your drive to win, the hunger to win gold and nothing else. With a cold, hard fact that Jungkook had slapped onto your face, you had no choice but to consider and forcefully accept.
"You two have history together. Years of history. There's chemistry whether or not you like it. Period," Jungkook waved his arms around, smiling at you as if trying his best to make you feel better. "There's one thing you can't deny. Winning. When there's winners, you mix them together, then what do you get? Medals,
"So, I'm begging you, Y/N. Put up with Park Sunghoon for a few months, another few rounds at the Olympics, then we're done, he'll be back at Coach Kim. Alright?"
"Butâ"
"End of discussion. Go change up, I'm sure the others will be here soon, including Sunghoon, so you better not throw a tantrum," he pointed his finger at you, wagging it at you accusingly to which you responded with a discreet eye roll.
"Yes, coach."
Even in the locker, you found yourself mulling about at the thought of training with Park Sunghoon again. That name itself has sent you waves of chills countless times.
Park Sunghoon was your childhood friend. Having been your neighbour since birth, your mothers were naturally the reason why you were even friends in the first place. You were barely five when your mother placed you in the local swim club for training, then not long after, Sunghoon joined too.
Your lives mainly revolved around two things. Swimming and each other. Basically, you and him were inseparable. You shared the same coach as him even after entering your teen years. Whether it was the swim club or the youth national team, there was nothing anyone could do to separate you and him in terms of swimming or every aspect in general. Hell, you and him both specialised in the same stroke as well, breaking out into the scene to be the best prospects, earning a reputation for yourselves swiftly. Your friendship itself was known by all too. 'Star swimmers', that was what people called you and Sunghoon.
That was until a particular Wednesday in 2018 that made your nearly sixteen years of friendship with him crumble into ashes.Â
"I'm switching coaches. I'm switching clubs."Â
You remembered it clearly. It was just after nine o'clock at night when you were done showering, ready to leave and head home with Sunghoon. Yet, his words echoed in the silence of the training centre then.
"What?"
"I just don't think it's working out,"
"Sunghoonâ" you never once called his full name unless it was a serious situation, "the Youth Olympic games is literally in a week. What are you even saying?"
"I don't want to lose anymore, Y/N. Do you know it feels like working my body till the point of breaking just for me to get beaten by someone better. I need to get better," his composure was breaking, you could tell, the clenched fists by his side was turning white.Â
Your eyes widened at the tone of his voice, but your frown only deepened at his words, nothing was making sense to you. "You're jeopardising the team!"
"I've discussed this with the coaches, I've got permission from the higher ups,"Â
"You're ⌠you're selfish," you said slowly, unable to speak any longer at the shock of his sudden news. "You never bothered to discuss this with me either,"
"I don't need to,"
"So, you're disregarding our friendship altogether? We promised to tell each other everything!"
"Oh, grow up, Y/N. We were six when we said that, this is different. We're different now,"
In that split second was when a hard realisation hit you. He changed. It was almost as if the person that he once was had died overnight, revealing someone new that shared the same physical traits. Was it the results of the last competition you had days ago that made him turn into this? You never knew him losing would've affected him this badly. That was one thing about Sunghoon, he was never outspoken about his feelings and thoughts.
"You're right. You're no longer the person I know."
That was the last time you ever had a conversation with him face-to-face. The change was drastic. One day he was walking home with you and the next he wasn't even in your life, barely acknowledging each other at competitions. It was legendary, but it was momentary. To say it has taken a toll on you was an understatement. If it wasn't for your mother's consolation, you wouldn't have shown up for training and eventually won at the Youth's game.
Six years. Six, long miserable years of ignoring each other.
The year you were called up to the senior national team was the same year that he did too. It was evident that there was tension between you and him, there was no need for a second look for someone to determine that. You knew rumours were bound to fly, it has been ever since your split with him.
You hate to admit that what he did was right too. Since the day he changed coaches and clubs, he has been improving and climbing higher. Gold was the only colour hanging around his neck at almost every competition he was in. Maybe you were the selfish one after all, secretly wishing he never left in the first place because you were scared of losing him. Well, who knew the fear in that moment turned into your instant reality? Seeing his success only made you bite back on your words of calling him selfish.
The first Olympics you attended in Tokyo was an experience to say the least. Winning two silver and one bronze, your hunger for gold only grew bigger. Everyone in the team had expected either you or Sunghoon to bring back the gold medal, but none of you did, and by then, there was an unspoken rivalry that started from the moment people placed their expectations on you and him.
Three years later in the present day, you couldn't believe he was becoming your teammate and training under the same coach again. Crazy how things could change in a blink of an eye, huh? Your main concern, however, wasn't facing Sunghoon, but whether or not he'd fit into the relay team with only three months of training and no prior experience.
"Well, if it isn't the Y/N L/N being the first to arrive as always," The sound of your teammates' heavy footsteps entered the locker room, Yujin's voice in particular echoed through it, entering your sight at once. "How have you been?"
"Great, been living and sleeping in the pool," you snickered sarcastically, patting Yujin's back in greeting. "I heard you took a long break from your club after the championships,"
"I did, and my muscles are dying to touch the water,"
"She caused a lot of ruckus at the club for that," Yunjin joined into the conversation after setting her bags down, nudging her club and national teammate. "I'm glad we're all back, three months and then Paris, isn't that a dream?"
"It definitely is. I can't wait for the Eiffel tower," Yujin smiled with a dazed look, you and Yunjin only exchanged a silent glance at one another.
"Not the gold medal?"
"That too,"
"I see where your priorities lie,"Â
"Whatever," she waved her hand at your response, reaching for her swimsuit. "Anyway, did you hear the news from coach?"
"I did," you wrapped your towel tighter around your body, the cold prickling at your skin now that you were in your swimsuit.Â
"You don't seem very happy," Yunjin pointed out as she changed into her swimwear, it was then when you became aware of the frown on your face. "The guys are excited,"
"I'm trying to be happy," you grumbled. At this point, there was no hiding the previous history you had with him, almost everyone knew about you and him, the star athletes since teen years had suddenly stopped interacting, obviously that would catch people's eyes and turn into gossip.
"Didn't you have some ⌠fallout with him before?"Â
"You know about it?"Â
"Y/N, I hate to say it but the whole nation's swimmers are probably aware of it," Yujin walked up to you and passed your goggles to you. "Word spreads fast even during the youth training camps, but I'm sure there's a reason behind your fall out with him, we won't pry,"
"I'm a little curious though," Yunjin added, throwing her towel around her shoulder, unaware of Yujin's pointed glare at her bluntness.
"It's quite petty really, I'm surprised you never heard it from any of my club teammates," you pressed your lips into a thin line, shifting your stance uneasily. "He wanted to leave the club before a big competition, I mean, I get where he's coming from, but I was hurt that he didn't tell me beforehand. I thought it was unfair, we were friends for so long. We said some hurtful things to each other, and things were never the same after," your heart unknowingly tightened at your inner thoughts about the whole fight, telling the story years after made you reflect on it with regret.Â
"Do you forgive him?"
"If it meant having my best friend back, I would, but I don't know if he feels the same as I do."
Walking out of the locker room took a huge amount of courage and strength for you to not turn around running. The thought of seeing and interacting with Sunghoon pained you to a great level. Not because you hated him, but mainly the awkwardness and tension that was hard to rid.Â
You saw the rest of your teammates by the pool, Anton and Juyeon were too engaged in their conversations to realise Yunjin running up to them with her arms wide open. "Boys!" She engulfed the three men in her arms, startling them and almost had them falling back into the pool.Â
"Gosh, you're never going to stop doing that, aren't you?" Anton patted Yunjin's arm, smiling at his senior as she let go.Â
"Never,"Â
The two men greeted Yujin first before turning their attention to you, straightening their spines and giving you a salute. "Y/N,"
"Hey guys, doing good?" You gave each of their shoulders a pat in greeting, receiving firm nods from them as a response. They took the chance to immediately bombard you with questions about your practices and competitions, sharing their own stories about what they were up to as well.
"Y/N, I heard someone's going to snatch your spot in the mixed relay," Anton, the backstroke swimmer and your mixed relay teammate, was referring to Sunghoon's addition to the team. Your endless worries about Sunghoon becoming your teammate had you forgetting about the thing you should actually be worrying about: your position.
"Like hell Y/N is going to give up her spot easily," Yujin came to your defence with her arms thrown around your shoulder. "Isn't that right?" She turned her head to look at you, poking your cheek with a finger.
"What I'm saying is, Y/N could potentially fill in for Yeonjun's spot too. She's also a breaststroke specialist and Sunghoon's last win in the championship was him breaking the world record for freestyle. I'm just saying maybeâjust maybeâthis combo would be something exciting,"
Yujin, the butterfly swimmer in the mixed relay team, frowned slightly at his argument, though debatable, she didn't seem to think the idea as fit. "The second leg is usually swam by men, it'd be a disadvantage to have a woman swim it. Based off the statistics, it'd be a shit show of a strategy,"
"I'm afraid she's right," you shrugged, heaving a deep sigh at the struggle your team was facing before training even started. "There's no way coach would do that,"
"Then is Sunghoon supposed to really swim the second leg?"
"Duh, who else? He got picked specifically, out of many other people, to replace Yeonjun, I'm sure there's a reason behind it," Yujin gave your shoulder a light squeeze. "Not to mention, he's got a reputation for being a good breaststroker too,"
"Right, he got second place in Tokyo, didn't he? Just like you did, Y/N," Anton's gaze landed on your rather sullen face, the memories of Tokyo where you found out you won the same amount of medals in the same categories as Sunghoon came flying back into your mind.Â
The thought of it was laughable, how were you still telepathically connected with him from then up until this moment. It was your childhood with him to blame at the end of the day. You were the one to influence him and made him fall in love with your two favourite strokes: freestyle and breaststroke. Who knew you would land yourself in a position where you potentially had to fight him for your position?Â
"Y/N will always be our freestyle master in the last leg, okay? No competitions needed. Our first training together will speak for itself," Yujin glanced at you briefly, checking up on you after your momentary silence. You gave her a smile, reaching for her hand that sat on your shoulder.Â
Soon after, the distant sound of your coach's voice slowly became louder as he approached closer. He was talking to someone, the second voice obviously belonged to the person everyone was waiting for, the addition of a star swimmer into the team instantly raised your teammates' expectations and hopes. Everyone else in the room were giving each other knowing glances at the anticipation of Sunghoon's arrivalâexcept for you.Â
You were holding your breath, mentally counting down the seconds while the footsteps of your coach and the person who was once your best friend were nearing. Every one of you instinctively lined up in a row as always, awaiting Coach Jeon's arrival.Â
You didn't dare to blink. Lo and behold, Park Sunghoon entered the room with your coach by his side, the strong presence of an Olympic medallist and world championship winner filled the room. It was hard to deny that his presence alone was influential.Â
"Morning, everyone. As you may know, we'll be having a new additionâor replacementâto the team. Everyone please welcome Sunghoon,"Â
Following his words, there were enthusiastic claps with a sprinkle of shouts from the guys. Sunghoon was trying his best to keep up with the overwhelming atmosphere from his new teammates, most of which were familiar faces considering they were all from the national team, the only difference was the coaches they train under. That was until now.Â
You were standing to the far left, furthest away from the center where Sunghoon was. Were you a coward for avoiding him? That was partially the truth, but all those years of ignoring one another, brushing past each other at every national and international competitions, you weren't the only one at fault. He was also a coward that claimed he was a lion.Â
Jungkook patted Sunghoon's back in encouragement, giving the latter a push for him to introduce himself. "Nice to meet everyone, I'm Park Sunghoon. It's my first time training with you all, so I'm apologising in advance if there's any mistakes made on my part. I hope we'll be able to get along well and bring home some gold medals from Paris,"
The team erupted in passionate cheers and applause from Sunghoon's self-introduction. It was clear everyone shared the same goal: a gold medal at the Olympics.Â
"Alright, so I think everyone already somewhat knows each other, am I correct?" Jungkook looked between Sunghoon and his group of swimmers, both of which nodded and responded with a chorus of 'yes'. "How about a fresh introduction? A friendly way to warm up to one another,"Â
'Friendly' was one way to put it and he was definitely directing it at you.
Juyeon, who stood on the furthest to the right, started his introduction first. "I'm Lee Juyeon, butterfly swimmer, we met at the youth championship before,"
"Right, we did, nice to see you again, man," Sunghoon and Intak shared a firm handshake before moving onto Anton. The introductions were all brief, but there were also friendly gestures exchanged. Not long after, you were the last and only one left to introduce yourself.
If you could describe the exact moment Sunghoon met your eyes for the first time in nearly six years, it would be suffocating, and it was in the worst way possible. The warmth and familiarity that was once in those brown irises happened to be gone and lost with him when he saw you. You didn't know how to react, just seeing the hostility and coldness from him that you wished wasn't real was enough to beat you down.
"I'm Y/N L/N. I hope we can win a medal together in the mixed relay," you stayed rooted to your spot stubbornly, not bothering to exchange at least a handshake with him unlike your teammates. It seemed he reciprocated your feelings.
His stoic expression never once faltered, but it was his eyes that spoke louder than words needed to. Amongst the coldness of his gaze, there was an unmistakable shock and longing that he hid well enough for you to not fully catch onto. "I hope so too."
Ignoring the weird tension that lingered around the room between you and Sunghoon, you started your usual routine off along with your teammates. Long hours and many laps of endless swimming was about to be your reality again. The worst part of all was the strength training that was yet to start.Â
The excruciating nine hours of never ending swimming soon ended around the evening and your first day was finally done. Neither you nor Sunghoon crossed paths or interacted, maintaining your bliss and ignorance that would bring you peace.Â
"Are you just going to ignore him until his last day?" Yunjin was drying her hair, staring at you with an accusatory gaze.Â
"Yeah, I guess?" You shrugged, packing up your bag that you slung over your shoulder, flashing Yunjin an indifferent smile.Â
"I don't think that's a great idea, Y/N. We still have the mixed relay to consider, there's no way you could just go radio silence on him when it's a team event," Yujin made her way into the changing room from the shower just in time to listen in on your conversation, seemingly disapproving at you and Sunghoon's behaviour towards one another.Â
"What am I going to do? He doesn't even want to acknowledge me,"
"How about you try making the first move?"
"Over my dead body," you murmured, hating the fact that you and Sunghoon's past conflicts were stagnating the team, yet your ego was not ready to confront him. Nope, never.Â
"You're so stubborn," Yujin grumbled, shaking her head in disapproval. "He's equally stubborn. God, I can't believe I have to put up with these hot-headed, stubborn people, give me strength, please,"
"It'll be fine. As long as I keep my distance and he keeps his distance, nothing will go wrong," you slapped Yujin on her back, earning a doubtful look from her that you responded with an earful smile.Â
"I highly doubt that," Yunjin chimed in, hoisting her backpack onto her shoulder, ready to leave as well. Yujin turned to share a knowing look with her.
"Me too."
All you could do was roll your eyes, not daring to respond because you knew, too, that you couldn't fully promise that you'd stick to your words. It was impossible to predict what would happen in the next few days, let alone three months. The non-existent interactions with Sunghoon for six years couldn't prepare you for what he was like currently, and for that reason, you were scared.Â
That night, alone in your bed, you couldn't take your eyes off the picture frame sitting on your dressing table. It was a picture of you and Sunghoon at the ripe age of thirteen, holding onto your gold medals with the biggest smiles right after a competition. Who would've known in a few years time since then, you wouldn't even be able to stand next to him.Â
How you wished those childish smiles would make its way back to you and Sunghoon, standing next to each other with a gold medal again.
A week has passed since the day Sunghoon first started his training under your coach.Â
Safe to say, you kept your distance from him and so did he. Neither of you managed to exchange a single word or a single glance that lasted more than a second. It might've been a natural occurrence for you to have some sort of 'cold war' with Sunghoon, but to the others, they felt a little awkward having to be part of it.
For the second week of training, the part that you enjoyed most became dreadful to you. The mixed relay training was inevitable with Sunghoon's presence as a first timer to the group. More practices were implemented by Coach Jeon in order for Sunghoon to adapt and grow familiar with the general rules around mixed relay medley.Â
"Doing good?" Anton was the second to arrive after you, standing next to you by the pool. He had probably noticed you staring into the pool, letting your thoughts drift away.
You snapped out of your daze, blinking in surprise at him until you realise who you were talking to. "Whâyeah, I'm fine,"
"You're not nervous for our first training together as a team, right?" He attempted to lighten the mood, bumping your shoulder with his.Â
"No," you scoffed. That was a lie. You were nervous, and masking it up wasn't exactly a great way to deal with it. "It's just any other training,"
"Be honest, you were probably mad when you heard about Yeonjun's stupid accident, weren't you?" Anton took a seat on the starting block, staring up at you with a pair of big doe eyes.Â
"Mad? Not exactly. Maybe annoyed? Concerned? A little bit of everything," you frowned, remembering the message sent in the group chat the week before training started. 'Can't turn up to training, fell down my bike and broke my ankle' it was unforgettable. "Why?"
"I'm just a little disappointed it's not Yeonjun swimming the second leg. He's one of the strongest breaststroke swimmers,"
"Weren't you excited about Sunghoon's arrival?"
"Well, it's a no brainer I'm excited, Sunghoon's a great swimmer, but he's not exactly Yeonjun. Thinking about how sudden everything is, the changes and having to adapt to them, I'm just worried it'll affect the team's performance,"
Your gaze softened at the younger boy's truthful confession. If you had to be completely honest, you were worried about the team's future performances as well. Having so little time to adjust and letting a replacement take up a crucial swimmer's role was bound to cause doubts.Â
"We'll be fine," your voice was firm with determination. "The future's unpredictable anyway. Who knows what will be the result of this lineup?"Â
"Do you know how great of a motivational speaker you are?" Anton smiled at your words, the worries that filled his eyes were blinked away. "Also, what's up with you and Sunghoon? Are you guys always like ⌠this?" He proceeded to make some gestures with his hands.
Here it is. That topic.Â
The real question should be: when were you never like this with Sunghoon?
You shrugged, directly lying to his face a second time. "It's complicated. Let's start our warm up, shall we?"
That was enough to divert Anton's attention away from the question he originally brought up, successfully dodging it until the others arrived and started their warm ups as well. Yujin, in particular, was overwhelmed with excitement to start her part of the relay, hoping to beat her own personal record.
"Were you always this excited for training?" You looked at Yujin with an eyebrow raised, watching as she stretched her limbs carefully, a cheery expression on her face.Â
"I think my break made me realise how much I missed the water," she kneeled down to touch the surface of the pool water with her finger, a little habit of hers before competitions that she grew to have.Â
"How's the temperature?"
She stood back up, straightened her spine, a wide grin spreading onto her lips. "Absolutely perfect."
Once the warm ups were officially concluded, Yunjin and Intak were sent to other lanes in the pool to start their individual training, whereas you and your remaining teammates were listening intently to the coach's every word.
"So, we start our first practice today. Together, as a team, a new team. Let's see what's the time recorded for each leg, improve the handoffs and perfect your individual time. Anton, you'll go first,"
Anton fixed his swim cap right after that, walking towards the starting block while the team dispersed to wait for their turn. You stood beside Yujin, Sunghoon only inches before you. It was hard concentrating on Anton and his start, barely registering the sound of the whistle blowing. He was so magnetic it was almost obnoxious.
"Hey, new guy! Got the rules down?" Yujin directed her words at Sunghoon, catching him off guard. He turned around, an impassive expression was his first response to Yujin. His eyes flickered to you for a split second, quick enough for you to barely catch onto it.
"I have," he answered shortly, seemingly frozen from Yujin putting him into a spot out of the blue.Â
Before returning his focus back onto the pool ahead of him, he stole a haste glance at you for the second time. It was barely a second's worth of his eyes on you, not even an acknowledgement. You couldn't explain it. Why were you ticked off by him?Â
"Sunghoon, get ready!" Coach Jeon shouted from the other side of the room, glancing between his stopwatch and the pool. Sunghoon stood on the starting block, fixing his goggles in place. "Now!"
The moment Anton's fingers grazed the pool's wall, Sunghoon dived into the pool perfectly, all eyes were fixed on him now. The swimmer that created history, broken records, set a standard for new generations of swimmers, was proving why he was labelled a national treasure.
He was quick. How was that even possible? Breaststroke was one of the slowest strokes in swimming and yet he made it seem as though it was the easiest to swim. Yujin was next, her excitement was apparent in her swim and aggression. The butterfly stroke and her perfect posture had her resembling a mermaid.Â
It was your turn to stand on the starting block, preparing for the exact second Yujin finished her lap. Your heart was beating against your chest, adrenaline was suddenly coursing through your veins. The time was ticking, Yujin was coming closer, and with one touch to the wall, off you went into the pool, the cold water engulfing you whole.
The first inhale of air filled your lungs to its maximum capacity. You could feel a sense of buzzing on the tip of your fingers, the muscles of your legs were working to its limits. You felt great.Â
Your flip turn was quick and perfect. Everything was going right for you. The way your legs and arms were working in sync, your breathing technique had improved, all of these being factors to your best swim yet. The stopwatch was halted once your tips touched the wall, finally getting the chance to get your head out of the water and breathe deeply.
"54 seconds!" Coach Jeon called out, a satisfactory grin plastered on his face. "Good job," he clapped his hands, throwing up a thumbs up at both you and your teammates. âGet a short rest, Iâll be with the others then weâll resume our training together,â
A chorus of âyes, coachâ travelled through you and your teammates, all of you watched as he walked to the other side of the pool where the others were training, then breathed a collective sigh of relief. Yujin came forward to help you out of the pool, wrapping a towel around you while patting your back.
"Good swim,"
You smiled at her, placing your hand on her waist. "You had a good swim too,"
"What a swim, L/N!" Anton, who stood next to Sunghoon, yelled at you as you and Yujin approached. You snorted at his enthusiasm, giving him a thumbs up in response. The man to his left, however, remained impassive just as his face displayed almost to no emotions regarding your performance. Not that you needed his validation anyway. You met his eyes, his unwavering stare bore into you, it was as if everyone was awaiting for his comments.Â
"You didnât swim at your best,"
His words were as cold as his voice, piercing into your heart without a space for you to recover or register what he meant. What did he mean? There was a sudden edge to the atmosphere around the group, a thick air of tension surrounded you and him in particular. âWhat?â There was no need for him to repeat what he just said, but it was almost unbelievable as an alien invasion to you.
âYou werenât swimming at your best,â Sunghoon repeated firmly, his stoicness never once faltering. Your dignity, on the other hand, was withering.Â
âWho are you to determine whether or not Iâm swimming at my best?â You took a step forward, your footstep heavy on the ground. He stayed rooted to his spot, chin held high while your narrowing gaze pierced through his skull.
There was a pause where a momentary silence filled the air. Neither you nor the rest of your teammates dared to speak. The man before you was expressionless, it was nearly hard to read him or his thoughts, only seeing the steady rise and fall of his chest, whereas yours was in a frenzy.âI know you,â
He might as well have just shot you in the face. Those three words were as hard as bullets were, causing you to almost lose your footing and tumble over, but somehow, you managed to stand your ground. Out of the many things he couldâve said, this was the least you expected. You had wished he wouldâve lied and insulted you rather than speaking the inevitable truth. Frankly, it was the same for you.Â
âYou know nothing about me,â you seethed out, nostrils flaring out of indignation.Â
Sunghoon scoffed, turning his head to a side for a second before looking back at you, a fire lighting up in those cold eyes of his, melting into a fiery pit of rage. âYou can cuss me out or insult me all you want, but the biggest insult you could ever throw at me is disregarding our past. I know you, itâs simple as that, and I can tell youâre not swimming to your fullest,â
You couldnât form an immediate response, because you were stunned and stuck in an endless cycle of thoughts, thinking if what he said was actually true. What if ⌠you truly werenât swimming at your best? Were you holding back? The only thing you could bear to thank Sunghoon now was for feeding into your self doubts.
âYouâŚyouââ
âOkay, cut it out guys,â Anton came to stand between you and Sunghoon, shielding your line of sight and you felt an odd sense of relief that Sunghoon couldnât see your crumbling state. There was no way in hell you were turning vulnerable right in front of him, nor were you going to lose the fight to him. Knowing how stubborn either of you were, if Anton hadnât cut into it, you mightâve been there for longer. âQuit fighting, I swear. I know thereâs tensionâhell, I can feel itâbut can you two at least act like you can tolerate each other? If you two act like this even in Paris, what will the press write?â
Anton was right, he was always right. You hated how youâve allowed your emotions and past consumed you when it came to Sunghoon. The person who was once your strength had turned into your weakness, your flaw. Everything had been fine until it came to him, it has been so ever since six years back. Now, you were reliving it all over again.
âIâm going to get some air,â Sunghoon announced, sparing one last glance at you before turning his heel to leave, the water from his body left wet footprints on the floor.
Yujin and Anton turned to look at you, the unmistakable look of shock on their faces. They were seemingly as helpless as you were, but they were more likely experiencing much worse being stuck in the middle of you and Sunghoon. âIâm sorry ⌠for that. Iâll go for a dip in the pool.â
They watched as you made your way back to the starting block and in the next second, you had already jumped into the pool, starting another lap again. Yujin and Anton stared at one another, matching frowns etched onto their worried faces. There was a wordless exchange as if something had clicked in their minds from just one knowing look.
âWe need to find a way to get them to reconcile.â
One month into training and there was nothing that could be done to make the two star swimmers return to a civil relationship. In fact, the space between you and Sunghoon had only grown bigger ever since the small rift that made everything go from bad to worse.
It had gone to a point where Coach Jeon had to give both of you a lecture, almost begging you and Sunghoon to work together for those few short months. To him, it mightâve truly been a âfew short monthsâ, but to you? It was a hellish period of time to be reckoned with.
You could tell everyone was trying to push you and him together, but you and him were just like magnets with the same poles, repelling each other no matter how much effort was put into getting you and him close. There was once when your teammates had strategized to purposefully have you and Sunghoon sitting side-by-side, yet to their surprise, your hatred for one another gave you ways to make any efforts fail. For that dinner, each of your chairs were pulled far enough to create an obvious distance, not one glance was even spared between you and him.
Then came a Saturday, a weekend off for the team and an opportunity for everyone to go out for drinks. It was the perfect time to let go and relax for a short moment, but to your teammates, it just so happened to be a perfect setting for their plan: get Sunghoon and Y/N to diffuse their hatred.
âWhy is everyone always at my place when we get ready to go out?â you grumbled, picking up your dirty clothes that were scattered on the floor to make way for Yunjin and Yujin, their hands full with clothes and makeup.
âItâs a tradition now,â Yujin pressed a kiss on your cheek, laughing at your unimpressed frown. âItâs a once in a blue moon type of thing! We should make the most out of tonight, we donât know when weâll have another day off after this,â
âThatâs right,â Yunjin said, placing her dress onto your bed, next to yours that was laid carefully to avoid wrinkles. âItâs time to drink till we break.â
That wasnât exactly how you wished your night to go. You and the girls met up with the guys at the entrance to the club, having to squeeze your way in and hold onto each other tightly to not lose your way. It reminded you why you never had an active nightlife apart from the routine you had as an athlete. The club reeked of alcohol, sweat, smoke and many other things, none of them were good.
The moment you got to settle into the booth, you finally got a clear view of everyone. You, Yunjin and Yujin were dressed in almost matching tight dresses, the only difference was the colour, the length and the existence of shoulder straps. Anton and Juyeon were sporting collared shirts, while Sunghoon wore a black button down shirt, his hair gelled up to reveal his forehead.
There was no mistaking his straying eyes, but he wasnât the only one, you were equally guilty. You tried to reason it with the excuse of pure curiosity, yet you found yourself stealing more than one glance. By then, you knew it wasnât something you could easily deny.
Juyeon leaned his body against the table with a serious expression that he had whenever he set the rules for the night every time you had a night out. âOkay, so the rules for tonight, no leaving on your own, unless you send a text. No going overboard until you do crazy shit that will get your name on the headline,â he paused, scanning the group. âLastly, no becoming Yeonjun and break your bones,â
There was a chorus of snorts and laughter at the slight dig at Yeonjun. It was a joke, but the chances of it happening wasnât entirely zero. âGot it!âÂ
The group soon dispersed, some were headed straight to the bar, some were off to the dance floor and some had stayed in the booth. You and Yujin had stuck together, sitting on the high stool at the bar, heads propped onto your hand as you stared at each other. There was a wordless breath of a sigh between you and her, it seemed that neither of you needed to verbally communicate to know what the other was thinking. You held your shot glass up to clink against hers, and at the same time, you downed the shot down with Yujin.Â
The feeling of the alcohol burning your throat was something you didnât miss, yet it was what you needed at that moment. âThat was good,â you muttered, hearing Yujinâs laugh as a response to your comment. âIf I wasnât an athlete whose health gets scrutinised, I would be drinking at every minor inconvenience,â
âYouâd be an alcoholic at that point,â Yujin shook her head, a faint smile adoring her sharp features. âWhy? Is the pressure getting to you?â
âNot exactly. I donât think about those things, I never do,â you watched as the bartender filled your and Yujinâs shot glasses once more. âIâm thinking about Sunghoon,â
Yujin straightened up at that, her body leaned close to yours, an inquisitive raise of her eyebrow met your eyes. âSunghoon? You? Thinking about Sunghoon?â
âNot about him per se, but you knowâusâour past, itâs affecting the team and I hate it. I hate that I canât do anything about it,â
âYou can? You can just make things even with him,â
âEasier said than done. We canât see eye to eye. I mean, do you think itâs easy to befriend your ex best friend that you had beef with?â
âWellâŚno,â
âExactly,â you said, followed by downing another shot out of your glass. âItâs hard to even speak to him without him glaring at me, how am I supposed to go: âhey, letâs be BFFs againâ,â
âBut donât you want to try and mend things? At least end the bad blood,â
You stared at your shot glass, your fingers grazing against the mouth of the cup, a sad smile making its way to your lips. âI wish I could, but Iâm afraid the damage is worse than I had imagined.â
Drowning your sadness in shots after shots was an equation for disaster, and that was exactly what you had done. Excuse the liver damage, your current concern was your emotions that were bound to spill out of its seams. An emotional drunk, that was what you were as depressing as it sounds. The thought of Sunghoon and your ruined friendship was the cherry on top to it all.
âHe hates me!â you slurred, your face buried in your hands after four shots of tequila. âI donât even know how it turned out like this ⌠how it turned into this,â
âY/N, youâre drunk,â Yujin moved your shot glass further from your reaching hands, causing you to frown deeper at that. âNo more, okay? Youâll regret it in the morning,â
âIâm used to regretting things, just leave me be,â you pouted at Yujin, but she was firm and final in her decision in cutting you off alcohol for the night. âSunghoonâŚâ you murmured before the alcohol fully set in and your head collapsed onto the table, absolutely blacking out.
âOh God.â
Yujin returned to the booth with you slumped against her. She thought the amount of weight training she had endured was finally worth it for having to put up with your drunk self. The rest of your teammates had returned to the booth, empty cups were littered around the table, the only sober ones there were Yunjin and Sunghoon, who was trying to peel Anton away from his body. He glanced up in time to see Yujin approaching with you being supported by her. Â
Yunjin stood up and rushed to Yujinâs side to help her with you. âIs she okay? Iâve never seen her this drunk,â
âI should be asking the same about Anton and Juyeon,â Yunjin nodded at the two who were slumped against each other, eyes closed and probably drifting to some dreamland where a head splitting morning would soon await them in the morning.Â
âTheyâre also a lost cause,â she sighed, shaking her head. âLetâs get going,â
It was a miracle that Yunjin, Yujin and Sunghoon had successfully carried you and the other two out of the club. The process, however, didnât matter and was forbidden to speak about, what mattered most was the success of getting the three of you.Â
âIâll call a cab for us four, we live in the same apartment complex,â Yunjin looked over at a struggling Yujin trying her best to prevent Anton and Juyeon from falling over while they leaned against each other. You were basically the calmest out of them, sleeping soundly. âWill it be okay for you to bring Y/N home? I know itâs too much to askââ
âIâll bring her home. Itâs not too much, donât worry,â Sunghoon reassured, slipping his hands into the pockets of his coat. âWâwhatâs her address?â it never occurred to Sunghoon that, one day, he would not know where you lived, that you were no longer the girl that lived next to his house. The girl that had once taken over his life was no longer a part of it. That, to him, was a tough pill to swallow.
âIâll send it to you in a second, Iâm almost done booking the cab,â Yunjin was feverishly tapping her screen, her eyebrows knitted together. âYou drove here, right?â
âI did,â
âSmart decision,â she muttered, finalising her booking with one last tap. âThe cabâs arriving in ten minutes and I just sent her address to you. Donât worry about us, it isnât our first time, we know how to deal with them. Get her home safe, and you, get home safe too,â
âYou sure youâll be okay?â Sunghoon asked once more, casting a worried glance over at the two men who couldnât even keep their balance sitting up.Â
âBetter than okay. Now, go get her home, weâll be fine.â
Sunghoon drove his car to the front of the club, and with the help of your two friends, you were loaded into the passenger seat with ease. By then, you were half awake from your sleep, the unfamiliar settings causing you to become much alert. You sat up from the seat a little too quick, an honest mistake which brought a throb to your head.Â
âJust sleep, itâll hurt less,âÂ
That voice. How and why was it so close to you? Whose car were you in? Could it be �
âSunghoon?â
You blinked hard, trying to get rid of the haziness and the blur in your vision. It didnât need a second thought for you to know itâs Sunghoon. From his voice to his outline, even the midst of it all, you could always recognize the boy you knew your whole life.Â
âDonât act so surprised. Iâm just trying to help,â he replied flatly, keeping his eyes ahead.Â
âI thought youâd rather die than help me,â
âWell, thatâs what you think. Youâre not always right,âÂ
You didnât say anything after, letting a curtain of silence fall over, it was better for you and him. You could barely keep your eyes open, the heaviness of your head only made you feel much nauseous than before. It was more ironic how the reason you drown yourself in alcohol was sitting next to you, driving you home with no single trace of alcohol in his blood unlike you. Maybe you were the pathetic one here.
The drive back to your place was quiet, the faint music from his radio was playing to fill the awkwardness between you two. How did it even get to this point in the first place? You wished you knew. Sunghoonâs car eventually came to a stop right by the entrance of your apartment complex, the silence somehow only grew thicker now that the car has stopped moving.Â
âWeâre here,â Sunghoon announced the obvious, attempting to cut through the silence with something rather than nothing. âDo you need me to walk you up?â
âIâll be fine on my own,â
âYou donât really look fine,â
âThanks for your concern, but Iâm fine, and thanks for the ride home. Iâll see you at training,â you reached for the handle, pulling it and opening the door, one foot already out, but the other lost its footing and you stumbled, a hand gripping onto your forearm was what prevented you from falling face first into the hard road. Sunghoon yanked you back into the passenger seat, and you were too surprised to utter another word. Damn it.Â
âYouâre clearly not fine on your own. Let me walk you up,â he said with a finality in his voice. You knew there was no way for you to reject his offer now that you had embarrassed yourself while you tried proving your point. âYouâre still not good at walking in heels after all these years, huh?â
âWhatââ
He had slammed his side of the door into your face and your unfinished response. You didnât have the time to process everything when Sunghoon appeared by you in a split second, your door was opened and he was staring at you with an unreadable expression. It was irritating and extremely annoying to you how he was practically almost impossible to read around you. You knew him too well, and that was probably the reason why he increased his guard when it came to you.
âHold onto me,â he extended his arm, and you couldnât explain why, but your heart rate was increasing with every passing second. His head tilted slightly at your hesitance, a minor frown decorated his features at your reaction. âWhat is it?â
âOhânothing,â you shook your nerves off. Since when were you ever scared of Sunghoon? Let alone be nervous around him. You mightâve not been friends but it doesnât make him any scarier. In that light, in that moment, you got a glimpse of the Sunghoon you knew years ago. That was what made you freeze up.
You placed your hand on his forearm, using him for support as you got out of his car, the piercing pain in your foot caused you to wince. Youâre still not good at walking in heels after all these years, huh? Why must he always be right about you? âWhat is it?â he noticed your discomfort, worry flashing across his face for a moment.Â
âItâs nothing, just my heelsââ
âSit back,â he placed a hand on your shoulder, gently pushing you back into the passenger seat. He took one glance at you, there was an unmistakable mix of emotions in his eyes, but then he was out of your sight, opening the door of his backseat to get something.Â
Once he was back, he knelt on one knee in front of you, not a single word was exchanged, but you followed his every movement. He had a pair of shoes in his hand, it was only a beat later when he stared up at you, meeting your curious eyes. âWhen are you going to stop pushing me away and pretend itâs nothing when you need help?â
Sunghoon reached for your leg, unbuckling your heels in a swift motion, his touch was soft and he was gentle with you in every way. The shock from earlier till now had only caused you to sober up quicker, but the haziness in your head made you wonder if this was just a dream. He was right in front of you, swapping your heels for a comfortable pair of shoes, helping you into them as you watched wordlessly.
âThere. Feel better now?â Sunghoon stood up, holding onto your heels in one hand. Truthfully, you didn't know what to say to him, merely nodding in response. He breathed out a rather loud sigh, extending his arm out to you once more, and you immediately got the cue to hold onto him just like before.
Your first step out onto the ground was heaven in those comfortable shoes. They were large and awkward for you, but they were miles better than your heels. âJust hold onto me. I know you probably can't walk straight now,â
You bit back a remark to that, wanting to prove him wrong but you figured it'd be another stupid idea of yours. Holding onto his forearm just like before, you walked quietly with him by your side. You were unconsciously leaning your side onto him, the realisation mightâve not hit you, but it did for him. This was the closest youâve been since six years ago, physically and emotionally.Â
The silence was painful leading up to the moment you opened your front door, hoping to bid him a hasty goodbye, just for you to almost stumble over your own two feet once more, proving his point was right all over again. Sunghoon didnât complain when he helped you out of his shoes, he didnât say anything even when he guided you into your bedroom where you crashed out once your head hit the pillow. How was that possible? That was what Sunghoon thought upon seeing your sleeping figure.
âSunghoon,â he nearly jumped at the sound of your voice that was muffled by your face being pressed into your bedsheets. Your eyes were closed, eyebrows furrowed with a slight frown as if there were many thoughts swarming your drunken mind. He didnât dare to speak or make another move, waiting for what you would say next with an unsteady breath. You shifted in your sleep, your hand seemingly balling into a fist. âIâm sorry,â the words were hardly audible, yet in the silence of the night and the heat of it all, it was the loudest and clearest to Sunghoon, they were the only thing buzzing in his ears along with the sound of his heartbeat.
A faint smile that he hasnât worn around you in ages made its way to his face. Although Sunghoon knew you would most likely have forgotten about this and have zero recollection of uttering the words âIâm sorryâ when morning comes, there was still a sense of assurance that the chances of reconciling werenât completely zero. He breathed out a small sigh, realising he had to go back to pretending he hadnât heard your confession, having to act cold to one another as if it wasnât killing him internally. Were you feeling the same as he did?
Sunghoon tucked you into your blanket, casting one last glance at you sleeping soundly before turning his back to you, taking big steps to your bedroom door just for him to stop in his tracks at the glint of your photo frames. He knew he shouldnât pry, but he couldnât help stealing a glance. It was his first mistake, his curiosity had led him to the childhood pictures of you and him. You still had them after everything you went through with him. There was a lump in his throat, the sting in his eyes became much more prominent, a cluster of emotions were weighing down on him.
âIâm sorry too.â
âIs it me ⌠or is the mutual hating tension becoming awkward now?â
All of your teammates were huddled in a group, observing you and Sunghoon being forced to listen to your coachâs lecture for the hundredth time. It was the first training after your short weekend break, and that night alone has changed everything. Neither you nor him were at each other's throats anymore, there was no malice in the air or animosity, but there was still a striking tension that made everyone around you and him feel uncomfortable.Â
âWhat even happened that night?â Juyeon crossed his arms, frowning a little at the zero to none recollection of what happened that night all thanks to his reckless drinking.
âNothing much,â Yunjin said, her eyebrows raising at the sight of you and Sunghoon, choosing to keep your worries about him a secret.Â
Yujin coughed, displaying a deadpan expression. âWhat Juyeon probably meant was, what happened after? He sent her home, didnât he?â
âHe did, but I didnât hear what happened after,â
âTheyâre acting like theyâve fucked or something,â
âAnton!â the group averted their eyes at Anton, who seemed to have shrunk under the sharp glares sent by his teammates.Â
âWhat really happened after?â
If you were to receive at least a dollar for the times your coach has reprimanded you and Sunghoon, you wouldâve quit swimming and be a millionaire. This instance was the same as before where he called you and Sunghoon out on your lack of chemistry. He wasnât entirely wrong, and you could understand how it might affect the overall team chemistry, but what could you do? Make the first move? Insane.
âGuys, I know Iâve said this before, but youâve got to at least talk a little,â Coach Jeon let out a sigh, rubbing the sides of his head with his lips pressed into a thin line. âEveryone with eyes can tell you do not wish to be associated with each other or stand next to each otherââ his eyes were trained on the distance between you and Sunghoon. Upon realisation, the both of you took a step closer to each other, but it was not enough to mend it.
âJust try. Donât give the national team or yourselves bad press, alright?â Coach Jeonâs face was laced with genuine concern and worry. Given how long your relationship has been affecting the team, your coachâs worries only increased. âLook, either try to be on friendly terms before the Olympics or Iâll make it happen,â the latter sounded almost like a threat from the tone of his voice, sending chills down each of your spines. âDismissed.â
The moment your coach was out of ear shot, you turned to look at Sunghoon, narrowing your gaze accusingly at him. âDid you hear him? Weâve got to at least try speakingââ before you could manage to finish your sentence, Sunghoon scoffed and turned on his heels to leave the room.
You, on the other hand, were entirely dumbfounded by his sheer audacity. Was him helping you out that night merely a front that he kept up? He had transformed a total 180 compared to his previous attitude, this was not the same man who left you water and aspirin by your bed. âAsshole!â you shouted out at him as he made his way out, turning to leave from the other door to avoid following him.
The rest of your teammates that were huddled in a group still had their eyes fixated on the drama unfolding before them, most of which were shaking their heads in disapproval, some wandering eyes were trained on either one of your backs before disappearing completely behind the doors. Yunjin exchanged a brief glance with Yujin, a light bulb on the top of her head turning on.
âIâve got a way to get them to fix things up.â
The sun was soon setting as the evening came to an imminent end. You were the last to shower, being the only one left in the locker room, the sound of your locker door slamming shut echoed throughout the room. You took a seat on the bench, leaning your head against the lockers, a frustrated groan escaped your lips. You were annoyed, agitated at how Sunghoon had actively ignored you. Why was he acting like a total stranger to you? The least he couldâve done was spare some acknowledgement. Was he as cruel as you made him out to be?
You were pulled out of your deep thoughts the second you heard voices coming from the outside of the door. There was no way anyone would be catching you getting emotional over Sunghoonâexcept for Yunjinâonce was already enough, you blamed it on the influence of the alcohol. The voices only got louder as it came closer. There was a manâs voice, but also a woman, or actually, it sounded more like a group as you walked to the door, straining your ear to listen in on the commotion outside.
Before you could get any closer, the door flung open, causing you to take a step back in shock, mouth agape. The person being pushed into the locker room was no one other than the manifestation of your thoughts: Park Sunghoon. Just as quick as he was pushed in, the door slammed shut and there was a sound of the door locking.Â
âSort your shit out and weâll let you out in a few hours! Sorry!â
âWhat?âÂ
âWhat?â
You and Sunghoon yelled out simultaneously, absolutely incredulous this was befalling on you. Sunghoon, who happened to be unfortunate enough to be pushed into the locker room that you were alone in. This wasnât a coincidence, it was a strategic plan your teammates brewed up. The realisation clicked once you locked eyes with him, the adrenaline soon died down and the usual awkward tension returned.Â
The pettiness from earlier had you turning your back on him, storming towards the bench where you were sitting before your peace was ruined. Slow and hesitant footsteps followed you from behind, the heaviness of your breathing filled the air and you soon stopped in your tracks, the footsteps followed short. You turned around fast enough for you to have a whiplash, the man in front of you had kept a distance between you and him, the unspoken emotions were visible in the way he looked at you.
âAre we ever going to stop this?â the words had left his mouth before you could even form a proper thought, that alone was able to break down everything you had prepared to say beforehand.Â
âStopâwhat?â
âThis! Us!â he gestured between you and him, the distance was already proof of your coldness to one another. âAre we going to continue pretending everything is alright when itâs not?âÂ
âYou seriously have the nerve to say that after ignoring me for years, so yes, everything is fine! Itâs the way itâs supposed to be,â
âYou were ignoring me too!â
âI mean, you hate me, we canât stand each other, isnât that what everything is meant to be like?â
ââI hate youâ? Since when have I hated you?â Sunghoon scoffed, nostrils flaring, frown lines deepening.Â
âEver since our first competition after you transferred clubs. We stopped talking, you never bothered to look me in the eyes and brushed past me as if I was a stranger! I thought I could try apologising, but since then, all I could see in your eyes was anger,â your breath was shaky, the memories of your best friend becoming someone you couldnât recognise was painful to relive. âYou never told me your plans to leave, but you know what? I thought we were best friendsâŚâ
Sunghoon was silent for a moment, he opened his mouth to speak just for him to close it again, jaw clenched with a tense gaze. âI thought it was the right choice. I knew you wouldâve said no if I had told you earlier, so I chose not to. I didnât want to hurt you, but I suppose my judgments were wrong. I was a coward,â he paused, his eyes scanning every micro expression you made. âI never hated you. How could I ever? I was angry at myself. Seeing youâŚI was frustrated that I had let you go so easily. I thought you didnât wish to reconcile after you ignored me, I didnât know it was the opposite,â
You were still unresponsive, your pupils were shaking just as your breath began to waver. Sunghoon tried his best to muster the faintest of a soft smile, his knuckles were soon turning white from how hard he was balling his fists. âIâm sorry for saying those things that night. I shouldnât have disregarded our friendship over something so stupid. Iâm sorry, Y/N,â
With every blink, your eyes only stung from the tears building up. His confession as a whole made your heart twist, the overwhelming truth was eating you up from within. The explanation from him that you craved and yearned from years was finally here, but instead of feeling angry and wanting to punch him in the face like youâve always thought you would, you were the total opposite of that.
Tears were streaming down your face before you could fully comprehend you were crying. The lump in your throat was preventing you from speaking, a choke sob escaped and that wasnât helping your case at all. âFuck,â you cursed, feeling the heat creeping up to your face from embarrassment and you immediately buried your face into your hands.
âHey,â Sunghoon took large strides to get to you. You felt the warmth of his presence, the gentle touch of his hands that were on your arms, trying to pry them away from shielding your face. In that moment, you let yourself fall victim to him and his touch, feeling as if you had travelled back in time to when you first lost and Sunghoon was comforting you. âHey, look at me,â your eyes flitted up to meet his gaze, recognising the familiarity in them that youâve missed.Â
âWhat are you crying for?â his thumb brushed against your skin, wiping the downpour of tears.Â
âIâm sorry, Sunghoon, Iâm truly sorry. I feel stupid, I shouldnât have expected you to read minds, I shouldnât have blamed you for everythingââ
âHey,â he said once more, pulling your attention back onto him. âItâs alright. The both of us made mistakes, we were both in the wrong, none of us could blame the other. I know where youâre coming from, I understand,â
You blinked your tears away, breathing in deeply to stop yourself from crying yet again. âI wished we couldâve done this earlier. I wished I couldâve been less consumed by my anger. I lost many years without you, and most of all, I missed you,â
There was a twitch to the corners of Sunghoonâs lips, his hold on your hand became slightly tighter, and in a blink of an eye, he tugged you into his chest, engulfing you into a hug. Youâve missed this feeling, yet it felt completely new to you. âI missed you too. Iâm sorry for being such a stuck up asshole to you all the time,â
You snorted, smiling faintly against his hold. âYou better be sorry. Youâre forgiven,â
âYouâre forgiven too.â
Six years. That was how long youâve lost with each other. The amounts of competitions won, achievements and important events missed could no longer be replaced. But that day, in that locker room, you got a new chance at rebuilding the moments youâve lost in those six years, and you got a new beginning to build memories, even legacies, together that lasted for centuries.
Waking up to a message from Sunghoon on a Saturday morning was the last thing youâd expect.Â
Sure, you had made up with him not long before this, rather forcefully so, and you were glad it went well because you were done with your years of miscommunications with him, but after all, the wound was still fresh, the awkwardness and unfamiliarity was there between the both of you. You couldnât really speak to him without silence eventually following with nothing to say, nor could he keep a conversation with you fully either.Â
In your eyes, he looked like the person you knew for your whole life, physically unchanged, but at that moment, you didnât know what he was actually like anymore, whether he would laugh at the same joke you made or if heâd have the habit of repeating some words as he used to, all of those became a mystery to you. It hurts you to know youâve built a distance from him, causing the person you understood so well becoming someone youâre barely associated with.
Unknown number: this is Y/N, right? itâs Sunghoon. do you have time today?
You: hey, itâs Y/N. i do have time, iâm free for the whole day. why do you ask?
Sunghoon: iâm going home today, back to our hometown, iâm wondering if youâd like to come along? itâs okay if you decline though.
You: no, actually iâd like to come with you if you donât mind. thanks for asking me.Â
Sunghoon: iâll be at your house in an hour, eat something light, letâs get breakfast at our usual place.
Going back to the place that practically raised you along with the person that had been by your side since the start and growing up together with you was something youâd never once thought was possible in those six years apart, that was until now. It was a miracle that heâd willingly invited you to join him, and as much as you were relieved, you were also nervous, way too anxious for your own good.
For at least fifteen minutes after answering his texts, you paced back and forth in your apartment, conflicted about what to wear, the things you should bring, and even preparing what you could say to him once you saw him. This was a big step for not only you, but also him. It was a bandage that would heal the wounds caused by your dispute, a potential chance to restart the friendship and get closer to one another. Â
Seeing his car brought you back to the night he drove you home. An embarrassing realisation that you had was Sunghoon had to see you in your drunken state that couldn't keep yourself balanced on two feet. You disregarded that memory and entered his car, greeting him a good morning like you've grown to do at training.
âHungry?âÂ
âI'm alright, just had some bread,â
âGreat. It'll be an hour drive and we'll stop by our favourite restaurant, how does that sound?â
âI'm excited. I haven't been back in months,â
âWell, I think you'd like the new set they added in the menu.â
He remembered what you liked and hated? The biggest shock was realising he still ate at your favourite restaurant, taking note of an addition to the menu that he'd think you'd like. Did that mean he's kept you in his head even before your reconciliation?
Everything was confusing to you. He was confusing to you. It was absolutely frustrating. You shook off that feeling and stared out of the window, noting some landmarks that you remembered. It was the same route you'd take every time you went back to your hometown as well. You wondered how many times you've happened to cross paths on this route with Sunghoon in the past.Â
By taking advantage of the silence in the car, you decided to ask Sunghoon a question that's been eating you alive ever since you received his message. âWhy did you suddenly decide to go back at this time?â
Sunghoon didn't expect you to cut through the silence, glancing at you briefly before returning his eyes upon the read ahead. He hummed thoughtfully, fingers tapping on the steering wheel.Â
âTo be honest, I've thought about it for quite some time already. I wanted to have a small getaway while being able to see my parents before going to Paris,â he paused for some time, the faint music coming from the radio played in the background. âIt's something that I do before major competitions. Visiting the old pool and seeing everyone again really calms me down a lot. I just thought it'll be a great opportunity to bring you along nowâŚâ now that we're somewhat friends again. That was probably what he wanted to say after judging from his hesitance.Â
âI never knew you went back so often,â you muttered, frowning at the fact that this was another thing that you failed to learn about Sunghoon. It was also another evidence of how your friendship was, in fact, in the ditch for a long period of time where you practically had zero idea of what the other was doing.
He maintained his focus on the road ahead, but you could see a small, ever so slightly of a smile forming on his face. At least you knew he was getting comfortable enough to not keep such a stoic expression around you like before. âIt's not that often. I will try to do it as much as I can, but it's hard. You know, my mum would ask your mum about you all the time, she just hides it from me,â
You snorted at that, yet internally, you felt touched at Mrs Park's concern for you even when you and her son stopped being friends. It was hard to avoid her whenever you went home considering she lived in the house next to your family. Not that you had ill intentions to dodge her, but seeing her after what went down, you didn't have the courage to face her. Mrs Park was relentless to say the least, she'd always find her way to speak to you no matter what, and sometimes, you could see how sorry she was from her eyes alone.
âI'm sure my mum does the same too and she just never tells me.â
The journey there didnât take long with several conversations here and there with Sunghoon, the small talks lasted longer than how it usually would, and that alone was saying something. There were some laughs shared together, in the midst of the moment, you couldnât help letting your gaze on his smile linger for more than a second. It was the first few times you got to see Sunghoon letting himself go around you just like old times.Â
Sunghoon wasnât kidding when he mentioned the first stop would be your favourite restaurant. It was surprising to see the restaurant again after almost a year of not dropping by. The times you went back to your hometown was to visit your parents only, there were barely any second thoughts about stopping to visit your favourite spots. Maybe it was also because you were scared to relive the best memories you had with Sunghoon and the only way was to avoid the places you created unforgettable moments with him.
âI havenât been here in forever,â you looked around at the unchanging interior of the restaurant, the walls were decorated with simple paintings and a picture of you and Sunghoon together with the restaurant owner. Beside that picture was another one that caught your eye instantly. Squinting, you realised that it was Sunghoon with the owner in more recent years, most likely a year ago. He really did come back to visit much more consistently than you, especially to the places you grew up going to together. âIs that you in the picture?â
Sunghoon raised his eyebrows, turning to follow your line of sight and realisation dawned on his face at the picture that was next to the old one of you and him. âOhâthat, yeah it is. It was taken a year ago. I only started coming back here last year. I was surprised she recognised me after all those years. It was quite awkward when she asked me about you though,â
âI can imagine,â you cringed at the image of people asking either one of you about the other, you've been so close since forever where everyone assumed you and him came in pairs. âI didnât think youâd come back here,âÂ
âWhy not?â
âDoesnât it remind you too much of us?â
Sunghoon smiled at that, a hint of curiosity sparked in your eyes at his reaction. âThatâs the reason why I came back actually ⌠regardless of what happened,â
You could sense some sadness in his voice when he said that despite wearing an unwavering smile. There was an odd feeling in your heart knowing that you were wrong all along. Sunghoon never hated you, not even once. In fact, he missed you just as much as you did, or more judging from what he'd said. Was it relief, regret or sadness that you felt?
âShould we order?â he noticed the solemness settling in your face, taking the initiative to change the subject and divert your attention away from your thoughts. âHow about we order our usual?â
âDo you still remember mine?â
âI do. I'd never forget anything about you.â
Every part of you was filled with nostalgia once you tasted the food you grew up eating. It was a shame your fear clouded you from coming back to the restaurant, you've missed it more than you expected. However, it was probably the best choice that you made unknowingly. It wouldn't have felt the same without Sunghoon. Eating the same food with the same person that you had done so years ago proved that you would've missed his presence if he wasn't there.
âYou two are going to the Olympics next month, right?â the restaurant owner, Mrs Kim, came by your table to check up on you and Sunghoon, who answered her question with a short 'yes'. She turned to you, and it was then you realised how much older she's gotten over the years of not seeing her. Time really has slipped through your fingers. âI haven't seen you in years. I was really happy to see you winning in the last Olympics,â
You bowed your head slightly, smiling at the fact that she remembered you even though you practically disappeared for a long period of time. âThank you. I really wished I got the time to stop by too,â
âIt's okay, you're probably busy, aren't you? It just makes me really, really happy to see you here with him now. I remember how you and him loved coming by to hang out and eat,â Mrs Kim reminisced thoughtfully, spreading the effect to you and possibly Sunghoon as well. She took a quick glance at the wall where your old picture was. âHow about we take a new photo? I'll make sure to stick it on the wall to show how much our Olympic medallists had grown,â
You and Sunghoon laughed awkwardly, but neither of you rejected her offer either. At the same spot in the restaurant where you stood years back, in the exact position standing beside Mrs Kim with Sunghoon to her right, you smiled at the camera, listening to the click coming from the phone as the picture was taken. As Mrs Kim ran to check on the pictures, you looked over at Sunghoon, meeting his eyes at once as he had already been staring at you before that.Â
It was unspoken, but you knew what he meant. This moment was something you and him both needed after everything that went down. It was a start over, a reflection on your past and reliving your memories. You were there then, also creating new memories for your future-self, looking back to feel nothing but relief that you and Sunghoon had patched up the cracks.
There was a small, genuine smile that crept onto your face. It was filled with nothing but sincere joy and relief. At that, Sunghoon reciprocated your smile, chuckling a little too. A wave of emotions flowed through the two of you in that instance, because you knew, there was nothing in this world that could ever take this moment away from you, never again.Â
The next stop right after breakfast was your parents' homes.Â
There was a sense of ease in the air ever since you left the restaurant. You and Sunghoon no longer were as tense as before, feeling rather comfortable in your own skin compared to the awkwardness you suffered from last time. Sunghoon couldn't hide his nervousness about going home, and if you thought about it too, you started feeling the same.
You didn't tell your parents you were visiting, after all it was an impromptu trip and you figured a surprise visit would be nice. 'Surprise' probably wouldn't be enough to describe your return together with Sunghoon. You doubted anyone could've seen this coming.
âLet's meet up after to get lunch, how does that sound?â Sunghoon and you were standing outside of his car that was parked on the sidewalk right by each of your houses.Â
âSounds good. I'll text you,â
âSure. I'll let you know when I'm done too,â he glanced over your shoulder, looking at his house before averting his gaze to yours. It didn't take long for you to piece together what was going through his mind. Memories of your childhood, that was most likely flooding his head. âSee you,â
âSee you in a while too.â
It was odd. Watching Sunghoon entering his home, you couldn't get yourself to enter yours. Not because you were scared of your parents whatsoever, it was mainly due to a weird feeling clouding your senses. Every moment, everything, from the restaurant up until standing on the sidewalk with Sunghoon, it reminded you of your past that you were reliving in the present, except you were much older and had different circumstances. Growing up was weird.
Your parents were definitely surprised to see you walking through the front door. Nevertheless, they engulfed you in a hug and asked about your sudden visit. Once you mentioned Sunghoon, their eyes almost popped out, and you had to explain everything from the start to the end.Â
âSo, I guess we're friends again,â
âOh, thank God,â your mother sighed dramatically, clutching onto her chest. You were already tired from her antics and it has only been an hour. âThank God you and Sunghoon are back to being friends. I was wondering if you two will ever talk again,â
âWe were almost never going to talk forever. Things weren't as smooth sailing in the beginning, but I'm glad we worked through it somehow,â you shrugged, lips flattening into a thin line.Â
âDid you know Sunghoon would always visit us whenever he's back here?â your dad chimed into the conversation, it was his turn to surprise you with something new that you never knew about, so you shook your head. âHe practically begged us not to tell you because he knew you'd be angry,âÂ
âHe did?â you breathed out in disbelief and shock, not expecting Sunghoon would go out of his way to visit your parents as well. All while you and him were on bad terms, that was way more than necessary. You felt yourself melting into the couch, another level of guilt built internally. âHe cared ⌠way more than I thought.â
The day eventually rolled by swiftly after eating lunch and an early dinner with both yours and Sunghoon's family. The two families hadn't had the chance to sit down and catch up together as a whole in years. It wasn't the same in those years of bad blood, and now that everything was back to the way it should be, you could tell both families were at peace just as much as you were. Inevitably, you had to bid them goodbye with a heavy heart, accepting their wishes for the Olympics and stealing one last look to remember the moment.
The evening sun was setting soon, the sky was painted a hue of orange and yellow. You missed the feeling of watching the sunset back at home. This time around, however, you didn't feel a sense of sadness in you anymore, unlike how you did in the past. The sun was disappearing from sight as you stared out of the window. Sunghoon was bringing you to the last spot that he'd usually go to during his routine visit: your old training centre.
You still remember the last few times you visited the training centre. Once was after the Tokyo Olympics where you and some of your other teammates that you trained with at your old club came to meet some of the young swimmers. There was the other time when you personally visited to see your old coach, having the chance to speak to him privately and you could still recall the unavoidable mention of Sunghoon.
There you were, years later, walking by him along the vast swimming pool that you trained in with Sunghoon growing up, watching evening training sessions of the youth swimmers. Eventually, you and him decided to take a seat in the stands, feeling worn out after a long day. You turned to him, unwavering eyes trained on his face. âIâm surprised you would visit everytime youâre here even though you transferred,â
âItâs where everything started,â he had his attention on the training session happening below, a smile filled with reminiscence of the past slowly crept onto his lips. âItâs where all my memories are. I could remember every little memory of us being here from years ago,â
âI suppose youâre right. Whenever Iâm here, I feel oddly nostalgic. Every part of the pool has a story behind it, thatâs how much time we spent here,â you hugged your arms around yourself, leaning forward to get a clearer look of the swimmersâ performances.Â
Sunghoon averted his gaze, turning to meet your eyes instead. There was a hint of fondness in those warm, brown irises that reflected a different version of you in them. They lingered for a beat longer before he finally spoke. âIâm glad youâre here with me this time,â there was no mistaking the sincereness in both his voice and his gaze, the truth of his was the same as how you felt. It truly was the closure that you and him needed. âYou have no idea how much I missed you whenever Iâm here,â
The edge of your mouth twitched, there was an unexplainable feeling in your heart, something that youâve experienced around Sunghoon one too many times back then and it seemed to have returned once more. âAnd you have no idea how I feel the same about you when Iâm here too.â
Going home, there was a much lighter atmosphere surrounding you and Sunghoon compared to before. You couldnât explain it, but you just knew the trust and love that had existed in the past was coming back stronger than ever. It was a day filled with nostalgia, reminiscence and also vulnerability. Youâd never thought youâd confess your inner thoughts to him until he did, being the first to open up and allowing you to realise he wasnât the bad guy that you made him out to be in your head. He was Park Sunghoon, the same as the one you grew up with, the first boy who showed you everything and made you feel emotions youâve never experienced.Â
He was your best friend. Yet, deep inside of you, you knew in those two words, âbest friendâ, there was something more than simply just that.
One month. 30 days.Â
The Paris Olympics seemed to be closer than imagined. From being a faraway dream to becoming a reality, the Olympics were the only thing clouding your thoughts day and night, just as it was for your teammates. You and your teammates have yet to stop pushing yourselves with the reminder of winning a gold medal, the weight of it made everyone tense and having a harder time to calm down.Â
âShould we get some drinks tonight?â Yunjin proposed at the end of the training, looking expectantly at every one of you. âItâs the weekend and we have some time off,â
âNo clubs please,â Anton threw his head back, dreading the thought of getting drunk at the club and being disoriented again, especially when the big day was coming.
âWho said weâll be going to the club?â Yunjinâs smirk was telling you that she had a grand idea brewing in her head already. âCome to my place. I have the best drinks to offer,â
The temptation of drinking somewhere other than the club was getting to you and the others. With the accumulated stress and endless training, all you wished for was a chance to let go even for only a second. Now that Yunjin had proposed an idea that was hard to reject, the devil on your shoulder was calling for you to agree.
âIâm down,â Sunghoon was the first to agree to Yunjinâs idea, his eyes immediately meeting yours when you looked over at him. He flashed you a faint smile, giving you a drinking gesture to which you rolled your eyes at.
âYou know what, me too,â Juyeon, who stood next to Sunghoon, threw his arm around Sunghoon, bouncing slightly on his heels. Following him, the others agreed too, and you inevitably went along.Â
âIâll pick you up,â Sunghoon said as he passed by you before disappearing with the guys to their locker rooms. Yunjin and Yujin were staring at you with a type of smile that you knew was up to no good.Â
âWhat?â you wrapped your towel around you and started making your way to the locker room as well, the other two running up to catch up with you.Â
âYou and Sunghoon have gotten really close,â Yunjin nudged you with her elbow.
âIsnât that what you all wanted? Since you locked me in a room with him,â you wiggled an accusatory finger at both Yunjin and Yujin who were equally guilty for conjuring up the idea and going along with it. âIs it supposed to be surprising that weâre close friends again?â
You remembered that day clearly and what exactly happened after. Once you made up with Sunghoon, you and him werenât freed from the room immediately as you wished for it to be. Instead, you were in there for over an hour, stuck with Sunghoon and having to converse with him even though he had just witnessed your breakdown in front of him. Admittedly, it was a great bonding time that did help in repairing your relationship, but you were still holding that grudge that your friends had run off to leave you fending for yourself in that locker room.
Thankfully, their efforts were not in vain. After that, you and Sunghoon became closer as each day passed by. Although it was a little awkward and tense at some points in time, you still managed to get over it, building back the friendship that you used to have together. You could tell Coach Jeon was much more relaxed than usual seeing you and Sunghoon talk and interact. Not to mention, the trip back to your hometown has made a monumental impact on you and him, getting the closure that the both of you needed and finally putting everything behind.Â
âWellâŚno,â Yujin interjected, a finger placed on her chin as if she was pondering deeply about something, then she turned to look at you sharply. âBut, what ifâŚâ
You pulled a face at her, absolutely confused at what she was trying to mean. âWhat if?â
âWhat if,â it was Yunjinâs turn to chime in, raising her eyebrows suggestively at you. âWhat if you and Sunghoonââ
âNever!â you blurted out, stopping Yunjin from finishing the sentence that you knew what was going to end with. That question has been asked ever since you were kids till your teen years, and you were getting deja vu at that moment. The thought of Sunghoon and you dating has always pulled a convulsive reaction out of you.
âWhat?â Yunjin and Yujin shrieked, halting in their steps which prompted you to follow suit, staring frantically at them as though youâve spoken a curse that had shook them.
âYou had Park Sunghoon wrapped around your little finger since you were a kid and you never onceânot even onceâthought about him in that sense? Do you know how popular he is?âÂ
You knew Sunghoon was popular ever since you were a kid. It didnât matter if it was in school, in the club or around your neighbourhood, his name had a reputation to it, the âcute swimmer boyâ was typically how people described him. The crushes people had on him were something you wished you would forget too, not because of jealousy whatsoever, but mainly because you were dragged into it for no reason at all.
âIâve never considered it before,â you said simply, avoiding their watchful gazes, but were met with doubtful looks from the two girls.Â
âNot even once?â
You swallowed, fidgeting with your towel and slowly losing your composure. There was a momentary pause that spoke more than words were needed, followed by an uncomfortable cough. âWellâŚmaybe once,â
âOkay. Just once?â Yunjin pressed on, a satisfactory smile appearing on her lips just as imaginary devil horns appeared on her head. She knew what she was doing.Â
âOr twiceâŚâÂ
âOnly?â
âIâm leaving!â you clutched onto your towel, not sparing your friends a single look before rushing towards the locker room. Your heartbeat was increasing at a concerning rate and it was not because you were speeding up your steps, but because of the thought of Sunghoon and your friendsâ questions. This was frustrating!
Yunjin and Yujin watched as you sped walked away from them with smiles on their faces, the identical ones they had while brewing up the plan to get you and Sunghoon back together. Well, that worked, didnât it? So, their next plan should be a guaranteed success.
âYou know what Iâm thinking?â
âI think I do.â
To your absolute dismay, the conversation you had with Yunjin and Yujin completely distracted you from that moment onwards. All you could think of was Sunghoon associated with the words âwhat ifâ when you were in the shower, locker room until seeing the man himself in his car. You listened to him talk with the soft music in the background, the ambience itself painted a picture where a new light was shone on him, the thoughts returning in no time.Â
You tried your best to avoid him when you had the chance at Yunjinâs place, taking every chance to distract yourself with your friendsâ conversations while chugging down some good beer. There were a few occasions where you felt Sunghoonâs lingering stare at you, locking eyes for several seconds before being the first to look away, heat gradually crawling up to your cheeks. Damn it, Yunjin and Yujin, why did they have to put this imagery into your head? Now you can't face Sunghoon like a normal person.
âWhy are you so quiet today?â
You were startled when you heard Sunghoonâs voice coming from behind you. It was right after midnight when you were sitting on one of the chairs in the balcony all by yourself, looking out at the city skyline with a half empty bottle of beer. Sunghoon made his presence known by taking a seat next to you, keeping his unwavering gaze at you, expecting an answer from you.
You. You were the reason. That was what you wouldâve said if you had the guts to be as bold as you wished to be. However, that was already reserved for the Olympics, so you couldnât bring yourself to be bold when it came to your true feelings. What were your true feelings in the first place?
âWhat? Oh, itâs nothing. I guess itâs just finally hitting me that the Olympics are soon. Itâs quite nerve wracking,â you were lying through your teeth, and there was a small chance he could see through you.
Sunghoon propped one hand on his knee, leaning a little close to you, his eyes trained onto your face, the scent of his cologne mixed with the smell of the beer lingered in the air between you and him. âYouâre nervous? The Y/N L/N is nervous? Thatâs something new,â
âQuit teasing,â you slapped his arm in a lighthearted manner, resisting the urge to smile when you saw his face lighting up. âEveryoneâs expectations are a heavy burden. Maybe I got older and became a little more aware of everything, but Iâm finally realising not only our country is placing their hopes on us, the entire team is too,â
The emotional side of you was making its appearance once more just as it always does when you drink. Last time it was about Sunghoon, and this time it was with Sunghoon, you should be proud of the progress. Taking a swig of your beer, you tried to hide your vulnerability by acting as casual as you could. It has been ages since you and Sunghoon had these types of conversations, especially now that youâve just recently patched things up, the last thing you wanted was to dump your worries on him.
âDo you still remember what they called us?â he placed his beer bottle onto the ground, the cool night air brushing against his hair, a slight tinge of pink painted on his cheeks from the alcohol in his system. You ignored how close he was to you, your knees brushing against one another at times, his cologne being the only thing you could breathe in, every single detail of his features being as clear as day in the night. ââNational treasuresâ. Thatâs what we are. That is what I think you are. Despite everything, whether it is losing or winning, itâs something nobody could ever take away from you. Take the burden and turn it into your strength. No one would blame you for any kinds of outcome,â
There was a beat of silence, you were blinking at him, absolutely lost for words. You were touched, the emotional imbalance wasnât helping either as it made you feel a bottle of surging emotions. Most importantly, you could feel your heart skipping a beat. Was that supposed to be normal? You ignored the telling signs, opting to feign nonchalance and breaking into a smile. âSince when did you get so matured?â
Sunghoon let out a soft chuckle, turning away from you to look at the night sky instead. He breathed in deeply, exhaling just a second after, a comfortable silence settled for a split moment. âWeâre the protagonists of the world,â he said without missing a beat, then he glanced back at you with a fiery spark in those brown irises of his. âThatâs what we used to tell each other, isnât it? So, whatâs stopping us from being that again?â
He remembered. He remembered everything. Every little detail that you thought to be too insignificant for him to recall, every small moments you had together, every word you said to him, he never once forgot them. There was a slight widening of your eyes as you processed what he just said, the realisation eventually pulled a laugh of amusement out of you, a sudden wave of reminiscence filled your heart up.Â
âYouâre right. Weâre born to be national treasures and the protagonists of the world. You and I.â
Landing in Paris was a dream come true.Â
Not only were you accompanied by the entirety of the national team, but you had your closest friends by your side, the anticipation for victories were apparent in every one of you. Yunjin and Yujin couldnât contain their excitement throughout the whole plane ride either. They were bugging you about the food choices available, the opening ceremony leading up to the design of the medals. It was a miracle you managed to sleep despite their constant bickerings.
âItâs really happening, isnât it?â Yunjin whispered to you as the team were en route to the Olympic Village.Â
âIt is. It truly is,â you had a dazed look in your eyes, the passing sceneries of the city mesmerised you with the reality of you actually being there gradually hit you. âA once in four years opportunity. It is our time now.â
Unpacking your luggage was a hefty job once youâve arrived at your assigned room in the village. You shared the lodging with your two best friends along with your other teammates from the swimming team, so there was nothing much to worry about except for the amount of gossip that would happen in that space alone. No matter how tired you all were, you had no choice but to power through it and get ready for the opening ceremony in the evening.
The opening ceremony was an unforgettable experience to say the least. You were dressed in a simple suit just as the others were too, the team uniform was the only thing taking up your line of sight as you stood on the boat that was cruising along the Seine River. Countless spectators were crowded on the bridge overlooking the river, waving to the boats passing by.
âI canât believe weâre on a boat. We didnât have this in Tokyo,â Yunjin whisper-shouted to you, recounting the opening ceremony back in Tokyo four years ago while waving the flag in her hand with great enthusiasm.Â
âItâs not everyday you get to be on a boat in some expensive suit in Paris,â you threw an arm around Yunjinâs shoulder, pulling her close to your side.Â
âAnd itâs not everyday youâre just casually participating in the Olympics,â Yujin added, doing the same to you and pulling you closer to her, eliciting a laugh from both you and Yunjin. It really was a miracle and a dream to have your best friends competing with you at such a big event, and that wasnât something anyone could just brag about.
Halfway through the boat ride, you managed to squeeze past many familiar faces from your national team, some were even athletes you looked up to, and it made you feel like a fan all over again. However, that wasnât your main goal for searching around the large boat. It was the person that came to your mind ever since you landed in Paris.
âSunghoon!âÂ
He turned around at the sound of your voice calling after him, his curious gaze landed on you, warmth and familiarity filled his eyes at the sight of you accompanied by a boyish smile he would have whenever he was with you. There was no way he could hide his excitement of seeing you from the way his eyes sparkled and crinkled at the sides, looking at you as if you were the only person in his field of vision.Â
âHey,â he breathed out once you reached his side, the both of you leaned against the railings and looked out at the river. âTired?â
âVery. Canât you tell Iâve put concealer over my dark circles? I think the jet lag might hit soon,â you dramatically pointed at your under eye area, the frown on your face only pulled a humorous laugh out of Sunghoon.Â
âRest up. Our first event is tomorrow,âÂ
âAlready?â you threw your head back, groaning at the thought of early morning training.Â
âCrazy, isnât it? I have back-to-back events too,â
âWho asked you to sign up for so many anyway?â you nudged his side teasingly, sharing a brief moment of eye contact.Â
âIâm very passionate about swimming,âÂ
âSure you are,â you snickered quietly at him, sharing the same smile he had on his face. Slowly, you turned to look at him, resting your elbow on the railing. âYouâre not pushing yourself too hard, right?â
He averted his gaze from the view in front of him, glancing at you instead and meeting your rather intense eyes that held a message that he knew to decipher before you could explain further. âDonât worry about me,â he said softly. There was a hint of hesitance in his movements for a split second, but then he reached for your hand, intertwining his fingers with yours. âIâm really glad I got to spend this Olympic with you,â
Given the last Olympics in Tokyo where you and he were still in the cold war era, it never once occurred to you that youâve wasted a precious moment with him. It couldâve been a good memory where you experienced your first Olympics with the person thatâs been by your side since day one. Four years since then, in this present time, staring at his delicate features with a crowd cheering around you, there was nothing you would trade to replace this moment with him.Â
âIâm glad youâre here with me this time,â
His smile grew wider, eventually reaching his eyes that contained sparks which grew brighter as time passed. Your breath hitched, the air around you seemed to grow thicker, the breeze swept across your face, blowing against your hair. Yet, all you could do was be frozen in place, becoming much aware of the feeling of his skin on yours. How were you to explain the weird sensation of your heart tightening and racing quicker than normal? You were too young to experience cardiovascular diseases!Â
Something in you knew it wasnât symptoms of any heart diseases, it was the signs of love. That was much more frightening to you than anything else.Â
âAre youâŚokay? You dazed out for a bit,â he snapped his fingers in front of your face, bringing you back to reality after having an internal conflict with yourself.Â
âWhat? OhâIâm fine. Just a little jetlagged. I told you itâs setting in,â you laughed with a nervous undertone to it, trying to wave off any suspicion along with your own thoughts about Sunghoon.Â
âGet enough sleep tonight. Iâll be there rooting for you tomorrow. After all, your event is before mine, so Iâll be giving you my every support,â he squeezed your hand gently, unbeknownst to him, his action along with the feeling of it travelled to your heart, triggering it to thump harder against your chest. âYou better swim at your best, okay? Iâll always be able to see right through you,â
âI know youâ. You remembered it as clear as day, as though it happened just yesterday. Sunghoonâs words brought back the memory of what he had said to you during your first few altercations in training. It was a fact. There was no need for you to deny it or try to avoid that, because both you and Sunghoon knew, no matter what, youâd be able to see through one another and be the best judges of each otherâs performances. After all those years, this seemed to have not changed.
You scoffed lightheartedly, turning your face away from him for a moment to hide your flushed state before facing him once again, putting up a front of casualness. âWho are you? Coach Jeon?â
He snorted at the mention of your coach, shaking his head a little. âI think Coach Jeon would be pissed if you didnât do your best,â he was stating the obvious, considering your coach has the sharpest eyes when it comes to everyoneâs performances, there was no way anyone would dare to do so. Sunghoon raised his eyebrows at you, the slightest smile resting on his lips. âBut I donât think thatâll happen. Ever. Y/N L/N, the person I know my whole life, would never slack off or put zero effort into your swim. So, just do your best,â
âYou, do your best, too. Iâm hoping we can return home with medals around our necks,â
âOf course we are,â he said without any hesitation whatsoever, straightening his spine and wearing a confident smile, never once loosening his hold on your hand. You forgot Sunghoon tends to be the one who had more confidence than you before every competition. It has been that way ever since you were kids, and it seemed to have continued onto the present day. âDid you forget? Weâre national treasures. Weâll always bring a medal home. This time, however, itâs going to be gold,â
âYou better stick to your words,â you pointed a finger at him, the thought of winning the gold medal excited you, but it also scared you. To Sunghoon, it was just another challenge for him to tackle.Â
âI will, and you better give it your all to win that gold too. I want to win it together with you ⌠like how we used to.âÂ
Nostalgia was certainly dangerous. You couldnât help smiling at the mention of the past, thinking about the times you and Sunghoon won gold medals in your individual events. The pictures taken together with a gold medal hanging around each of your neck, smiling innocently with pure joy from winning resided in a thick photobook, becoming memories that you would never let go. It mightâve been different this time compared to the competitions from your childhood as it was the Olympics, the pressure and expectations were higher on you and him. Despite all that, the dynamic between you and Sunghoon remained the same.
Looking out at the Eiffel Tower in the distance, you realise this Olympics wasnât just a chance to fulfil your dreams, your countryâs expectations, but also the hope and dream you shared with Sunghoon since you were kids. The last Olympics mightâve not gone as well as you wished it had in terms of your friendship with Sunghoon, so this was a chance for you to turn things around. Not to mention, your inner voice bugged you constantly about your complicated feelings that have yet to have an answer. Now, that was another problem to solve.
First, youâve got to get that gold medal. Secondly, you must figure out your true feelings for your best friend. Between the two, the latter seemed much harder than the Olympic gold medal.
âYouâre telling me you thought of Sunghoon in a romantic way?â
Breaking the news while youâre warming up half an hour before the finals of your first event was probably the worst timing possible. It was even worse for Yujin and Yunjin who had just finished their semifinal round for their butterfly event.Â
Quite frankly, you couldnât blame yourself either. The thought of it was spilling at the seams since its first appearance prior to the Olympics. From that point onwards, it only seems to plague you further by taking over your mind. You were lucky you managed to make it to the top three out of the eight to qualify to the finals. The first day was already chaotic for you, to top it all off, you just couldnât avoid Sunghoon entirely and thus, the thoughts about him worsened.
âWell, correction, âthinkingâ, not âthoughtâ,â you said meekly, attempting to hide your face by stretching, but your two friends werenât letting you go easily.
âPresent tense?â Yujin shrieked, earning odd stares from reporters and other competitors around you. She pursed her lips, lowering her gaze before narrowing it at you. âSo, you do have feelings for him?â
âI donât know? Itâs not confirmed ⌠yet. I think?â
âYou havenât made up your mind yet,â Yunjin hummed, seemingly much calmer than Yujin from the looks of her demeanour. âYouâre in denial. I do think you have some feelings if you couldnât stop thinking about him,â
You stopped your actions, deciding you were done warming up, but remained motionless, a defeated sigh eventually left your lips. âWhat do I do?â
âOwn up to it. Face it,â Yunjin stated plainly, receiving a groan from you as a response.Â
âEasier said than done. The last thing I want to do is to ruin our friendship right after fixing it,âÂ
Yujin looked at you with the softest gaze, much rather in sympathy at your pathetic state. âThat wonât happen. How do you know itâs unrequited? What if Sunghoon feels the same way?â
âImpossible,â
âHey! Donât make any conclusions before knowing the truth,â Yunjin landed a smack to the back of your head, and as much as you knew you deserved that wake up call, you still hissed at the sting.
âYouâre right. I think Iâm overcomplicating everything,â
âYou are,â Yujin was straightforward, even if her honest truth was a cut to the skin, her rubbing your back in reassurance was a way to patch the wound. âHow about we have a debrief tonight at dinner? You should be focusing on whatâs much more important now,â
âThe fucking finals, Y/N! The 400m freestyle finals! Youâre against Ledecky, you should be more worried about her than Sunghoon,â Yunjin surely made a point, and it did help in giving you additional assurance.Â
You couldnât resist laughing, especially at their rather interesting way of encouragement and comfort. âLet's talk about this tonight then. Iâll make sure to swim my best later,â
âDuh, when will you ever not? Come on, Sunghoonâs 400m freestyle final is starting. Do you want to watch that or dodge him?â
âOf course Iâd want to watch it. After all, heâs still my best friend and I told him I'll be there to support him,â you remembered the unspoken promise you had with Sunghoon to win the gold medal together. With your first finals happening back-to-back, the desperation to achieve your life-long dream with each other had personally overwhelmed the thought of your nation placing their entire hope on your back.
Being at the poolside gave you a slap in the face with the reality that you were in the finals and you werenât hallucinating every part of it. You were with some of your other competitors for the finals, some were doing last warm-ups while some were sitting and waiting for the men to start their finals. You were one of those waiting for the event to begin. From the looks of your legs shaking, it was hard to determine who you were nervous for. Yourself or Sunghoon?Â
The swimmers soon take their places at their individual starting block. You could spot Coach Jeon giving Sunghoon some last minute advice before giving the boy an encouraging pat in the back, sending him off to his spot. At one point, you wondered if you were staring too intensely at the back of Sunghoonâs head. It was as if he could feel your stare and your presence simultaneously, opting to look over his shoulder instead of stretching like the other swimmers. One look was all it took for Sunghoon to spot you. He had the same spark in his eyes as the moment he saw you on the boat during the open ceremony.
His shoulders evidently sagged in relief. He breathed in deeply, followed by a striking smile that he casted specifically at you. In those years of competing together, you barely had times where your events were back-to-back, but whenever there were opportunities as such, either you or him would be relieved to see one another. Just one glance, and itâd calm your racing heart in no time. To you this time, however, instead of slowing down your beating heart, his presence only made your heart work ten times harder than usual.
Sunghoon had no choice but to take his eyes off of you once they gave out the signal to the swimmers to take their places on the starting block. Your eyes were trained solely on him, unable to tear them away from his figure as you watched him pull his goggles over his head. Quietly, and routinely, you prayed for the best.
There was a loud electronic beep that was followed by the swimmers diving into the pool, a sound of water splashing filled the arena and from that, the cheers increased by ten folds. You could barely breathe as you stared at the large projector that displayed the live televised scene of whatâs happening before you, giving everyone a much better view of the action in the pool.Â
Sunghoon was currently in a tight spot with both the German and Australian swimmers relentlessly chasing after the first place. There were times when the top three would overtake each other to secure the gold medal position just to fall back. It was only the second lap out of the eight, but you could feel yourself unconsciously gripping onto your chair tightly. To the spectators and fans, the thrill of the competition between the swimmers spurred them alive, the atmosphere in the arena became increasingly wilder from the shouts and cheers.
The swimmers completed each lap with vigour, swimming back and forth for eight laps without stopping for a second, the last lap was soon approaching once you saw Sunghoon kicked his feet off the wall, heading back to the starting spot for one last time. The underwater battle between him and the other two swimmers was becoming much more fierce, leaving the rest of the swimmers to trail behind them.Â
There was barely any gap between the three of them till the point where it became hard to determine who was in the lead. The tension was high, the fans in the crowd were shouting louder while waving the flags of their countries. You could hardly get your eyes off of the screen, the name of your best friend was displayed on the lane he was swimming in, the distance between them and the starting point was closer as each second passed.
Nobody dared to blink the next moment. Once their hands touched the walls, it was already the signal of the end. Every swimmer stopped once they had finished their lap, holding onto the edge and waiting for the results. The screams from the people watching in the stands became a hundred times louder when the leaderboard revealed the names of the top three winners. You averted your gaze to the three names, letting out a sigh of relief at the sight of Sunghoonâs name sitting in second place.
The camera panned over to show Sunghoon on the screen. There was a hint of disappointment that was hard to hide, but you could tell he was trying to put on a smile. Losing the gold medal was frustrating, however, at the end of the day, he was still a winner of the silver medal, making him the first athlete to clinch an Olympic medal for the country this early on in the campaign.Â
The swimmers eventually got out of the pool, rushing to interviews or choosing to freshen up by changing into their tracksuits. The medalists were busy tending to the reporters and once they were done, they rushed off to change so that they could get ready for the award ceremony. That was when Coach Jeon approached you, reminding you that your own event was starting soon.Â
âReady?â he patted your shoulder, giving his best to offer any form of encouragement that seemed to not have successfully calmed you down entirely.Â
âNot really, but Iâll be okay,â
âJust remember what we always practised. Those months of hard work will not be in vain, you hear me? Go out there and prove to everyone that youâre Y/N L/N. The star swimmer of the national team.â
âY/N L/N, the star swimmer of the national teamâ. You never expected that the title which has been thrown around in headlines for years to finally become somewhat significant to you until this moment. You were in a designated staging room waiting for the award ceremony to end and at the same time, to get ready for yours. The small television screen in the corner of the wall was broadcasting the entirety of the ceremony, the commentatorsâ voices were drowned out by the chatters in the room, and your sole focus was on Sunghoon who stood behind the podium.Â
The moment his name was announced, he stepped onto the podium, accepting the silver medal that was hung around his neck. There was a small smile on his face as he waved to the crowds, a smile you knew very well whenever he wasnât fully satisfied with his own results. Apparently he hasnât changed much over the years when it comes to swimming.Â
âWeâre starting in five minutes!â
That reminder brought you back to your own reality that you had to face undoubtedly. The second the awards ceremony ended as fast as it had started, preparations for your event began and not long after that, the names of every competitor were announced in order. You walked out of the tunnel right as your name was called, the sound reverberated around the arena, the cheers that followed were loud enough to shake the ground of Paris. Youâve missed this feeling.
Standing before the pool with a large crowd was indeed nerve wracking after months of not competing and swimming in a pool with no spectators around. Even though you did swim with the crowd watching the day before for the preliminary round, you felt the difference at that moment knowing it was the finals. Everyone in that arena was placing their hopes on the athletes from their own countries, it was the same for you, but nothing could compare to how you and your competitors actually felt.
There was a buzz that signalled every one of you to take your places on the starting block. At that point, everything seems clearer to you. The water in the pool, the people in the crowd, your countryâs flag, all of them were the reason why you felt almost unbeatable, they gave you strength. The beeping sound of the countdown matched the rhythm of your heartbeat, ever so calmly and steady.Â
Just as it did for the finals prior to this one, the electronic beep sounded once more and you kicked off from your starting block, diving into the pool with nothing but the goal of finishing the eight laps in your mind. Time stood still, the only thing filling your vision was the bottom of the pool along with your competitors in your peripheral vision. You didnât know what was happening above the water or which place you were currently in, with every breath you inhaled, you wished time could stop for a second.Â
Every contact with the wall gave you a purpose to keep pushing forward. More than half of the eight laps were completed, all you needed was to push yourself further. It was hard being trapped with yourself and your own thoughts, the constant ideas of what would happen after this kept bugging you even as you swam. Time was, in fact, ticking. The eight laps were soon coming to an end. There was just one last lap from you and youâd be done.Â
The starting point seemed distant from your point of view. All you could wish for was your extended hand to quickly make contact with the wall. With every pump of your heart, you counted down to the moment youâve anticipated for. One, two, three âŚ
One slight graze of your finger against the wall marked the end of your lap. You grabbed onto the edge tightly, emerging to the surface of the water and inhaling a deep breath. Practically snatching your goggles off, your head snapped towards the direction of the leaderboard. Your name sat between the Australian and American swimmers.Â
Second place. 3 minutes and 58 seconds, only a second away from first place.
You shut your eyes for at least a few seconds, forcefully swallowing your disappointment down after as you congratulated your competitors. It was the first event out of the many you were competing in. You remained optimistic even as you answered questions from the reporters, though you wished they would cut down on the gold medal questions this early into the campaign.Â
On the way to the changing room, you spot a familiar face hanging around with your coach and several other of your teammates. The sight alone brought comfort to you and your heart, there was no chance of you resisting the urge to run up to them. Anton had already beaten you to it, being the first out of the group to spot you and practically shouting your name for the whole world to know.
âCongrats! You kept your spot in the 400m freestyle,â Anton wasted no time in giving you a one handed hug. The others followed too, giving you different variations of a hug.
âI wish I couldâve upgraded, you know?â
âItâs better than none, right? But I do know what you mean, and I believe youâve done your best,â Anton gave your shoulder a light squeeze, offering a warm smile.
âYou did good, Y/N. You were in great form today, but sometimes thereâll be people with better form. Donât let that get to you and focus on the next event, okay?â Coach Jeon patted you softly on your back, recognising the disappointment in your tone. âGo on and change up, the awards ceremony is soon. Letâs go and not bother Y/N first. Weâll see you later,â
Coach Jeon gave you one last pat on the back then left with the others trailing behind him, all of them cheering you on as they passed you. In the end, it was always your team whoâs your biggest support system. That has never changed over the years, and it would never change even for the future, you were very sure of that.Â
Amongst the group of your teammates who had already left, one happened to stay back and waited for the chance to speak to you alone. You didnât expect seeing this person would bring you more comfort after losing the lead. Not a hug or some encouraging words, his presence alone was what you needed in times like this, just the same as it was years ago.
âHey,â Sunghoon had his hands tucked into his pants, the silver medal was still hanging around his neck. You figured he had just finished taking pictures and was freshly done with the press conference. From the tiredness in his voice, you wished he had gone off to rest as well, but knowing him, he would rather see you first than do all that.
âHey,â you said back, letting him be the one to walk towards you and closing the gap. Pointing at the silver medal that he was sporting, you stared at him with a knowing smile. âYou better not beat yourself up over this,â you landed a firm punch to his shoulder, but unlike how he wouldâve usually reacted, he just accepted it with a grin growing on his lips, neither dodging or groaning from it. There was something so soft about his eyes that stared back at you, an unreadable mix of emotions that youâve never seen before reflected in his those brown irises.Â
âI wonât,â he chuckled, hands unknowingly reaching to touch his silver medal. âAfter all, this is only the beginning. Thereâll be a gold medal soon,â
âI need some of your confidence. Youâre always so certain about your goals and youâd end up achieving it,â you pointed out without a second thought, and you werenât exactly wrong either, earning an amused chuckle from him. âYou better let me wear the gold medal once you win it,â
âHey, didnât we have this conversation before? Weâre both winning the gold medal. Donât forget that,â he frowned at you, thick eyebrows knitting together and it only made you smile in endearment. âIâm not winning this without you. I want to achieve our dream together,â
âYouâre ridiculous,â you let out in disbelief, but from the look on Sunghoonâs face, you knew he was dead serious. Sunghoon was determined to achieve this goal with you no matter what, and he was going to succeed despite the circumstances. Just as youâve said, Sunghoon has always achieved his goals that he was certain of, this one was the same as the rest to him.
âYou said Iâm certain about my goals, so here I am. Iâm sure weâd win it. Together.âÂ
There was an overflowing amount of sureness in his conviction till the point where it had influenced you gradually. If there was one thing about Sunghoon, itâd be the fact that once heâs set his mind on something, heâd do anything to get it. You were just worried that mindset would wear him out in the long run if something didnât go his way.
âIâll hold you to it then,â
âHey Y/N! The ceremony is starting in five minutes! Go change up! Iâll see you out there,â the American swimmer who secured third place, Katie Ledecky, spotted you still unchanged and in your swimsuit.Â
âOhâalright! Thanks!â you waved at her, casting her an appreciative smile, and once she was out of sight, you turned back to Sunghoon, looking rather awkward at the sudden interruption. âI need to get goingââ
âRight. Iâm sorry for holding you up,â
âNo, itâs okay. Iâm ⌠really glad I got to see you before going out there. Iâm less nervous now,âÂ
âReally?â
âReally,â
A beat of silence filled the space between you right after. Internally, you were freaking out for admitting your thoughts so freely as youâve just done. What was Sunghoon going to think now that youâve said that? Would he interpret it as something else? What ifâ
âIâll get going now. See you after the ceremony,â
âSee you!â
There you went scurrying away from Sunghoon like a coward with your heart rate increasing, mentally cursing at yourself for your slip of a tongue. At any moment, you might as well confess your deeply hidden inner feelings to him. The gold medal, the pressure of winning and the expectations from everyone else could no longer amount to the stress of your true feelings towards Park Sunghoon.Â
Even as you stood on the podium with everyone watching, you couldnât bring yourself to take your mind off of Sunghoon. In the midst of the crowd, you could easily spot him together with your teammates. It was your moment, your victory, the few times you could call yourself a winner on a stage as big as this, but the only person you could think of was your best friend.Â
The same best friend that grew up watching movies at your house, sometimes staying up too late just because you couldn't stop talking and wishing the night would never end. He was your best friend who would tell you stories about how one day you'd both be competing at the Olympics, and he was the one who'd hold your hand whenever you felt overwhelmed no matter where you were.
You had always thought those weird feelings you'd have in your heart were common everytime he said something to you or whenever he held your hands. Never once you thought those nights you stayed up with him, lying on your bedroom floor, talking about your futures where you stared at him with something other than platonic love in your eyes was odd. You remembered the time he laughed so hard until his eyes turned crescent shaped, and that was when you felt your heart skipping a beat, not knowing this wasn't as common as it seemed.Â
It was not normal. None of those things were ever normal. All of them went flying over your head instead. In that moment, while the national anthem played in the background, you've come to finally realise you've always felt this way for Sunghoon since forever. Those years together were just you denying your feelings for him, avoiding the fear of ruining your friendship. Up until now, you still had that underlying fear especially with the fall out that happened. But your heart was screaming louder at you, clouding the fear and pushing you towards him.
With the applause and camera flashes going off, you forced a smile, the grip on the flowers and your medal tightened, because it finally dawned on you, the undeniable truth that you've suppressed for almost your life was emerging.Â
You're in love with Park Sunghoon.
Nothing has been the same for you ever since coming to terms with the realisation that you romantically loved Sunghoon.
Your friends could tell you were acting a little off that day when you won your first medal, barely able to swallow down your food during dinner as you talked about Sunghoon. Even though you initially shrugged it off by saying it was just jet lag, it didnât take long before you cracked and confessed the actual truth to your friends. Did they see it coming beforehand? Absolutely. Were they helpful? Not so. âJust tell himâ, âI think he feels the sameâ were the inputs from your friends that seemed to have made your head a mess.
Youâve always been brave. There were times where you had to face challenges thrown at you from every direction and somehow you managed to deal with them. For instance, you got through your injuries with courage and determination, nobody doubted that fact. But when it came to your feelings, bravery and determination was practically nonexistent, only quiet longing and pining existed.
âYou better not beat yourself up over this,â the familiar words coming from Sunghoon who appeared beside you almost made you jump in surprise.Â
Another silver medal won, another close chance to get gold, merely missing by a small margin. You wished to be as optimistic as you were at the beginning, but the disappointment seemed to have built up gradually. The reminder from Sunghoon made you smile upon realising that he had just repeated what you said to him before, it was a genuine smile unlike the one that you put on the podium.Â
âIâll try not to,â you removed the medal from your neck, clutching onto it in your hand. âAfter all, you did say a gold medal is coming soon, didnât you?â
âI did. Donât you remember weâre having the mixed medley relay in less than an hour?â
âRight. Our first event together,â your grip on your medal tightened unconsciously, the sudden awareness of your feelings towards him was causing your brain to haywire. Why now? âWe havenât competed together since we were fifteen,â
âI donât think they saw Iâm promising in mixed and men's medley,â he chuckled, shaking his head as he recalled the day he was announced to be replaced in the line up. âHow ironic it is that Iâm back to square one,â
âMust be fate, isnât it? The domino effect that led us here,â you marvelled at the fact that your reconciliation with Sunghoon happened at the cost of Yeonjunâs demise. Sunghoon seemed to have caught onto the gist of the meaning behind your words, shaking his head and laughing quietly.Â
âI hope Yeonjunâs doing fine,â
âHe is. Heâs just bummed that he had to miss the Olympics. Iâm surprised at how nonchalant he is about it though,âÂ
âMaybe, maybe not. Youâd never know. Anyway, I think we should get going, we need to get ready with the rest,â he gave your back a light pat, nodding his head over to where your coach and teammates stood, signalling for you to go there together. In less than thirty minutes, youâd be swimming in the mixed medley relay, not knowing what the outcome would be like against the other powerful teams, especially with Sunghoon as a replacement, it was impossible to predict anything.Â
âWhat do you think might happen?â You couldnât help wondering aloud as you and Sunghoon made your way, occasionally stealing glances at the pool where the current event was taking place. Â
âItâs hard to say. Iâve never done this before and making it to the finals was already a miracle for someone who has little experience like me. I just hope this will be the moment,â he had a small pensive frown, eyebrows furrowed as if he was fighting with his thoughts internally. You instantly knew what he meant by âthe momentâ, the silver medal in your hand somehow becoming heavier at the longing for your shared desire of winning the gold medal.
Despite the tense atmosphere with the pressure to win the gold medal, you managed to let out a genuine, carefree laugh, looping your arm around Sunghoonâs in the heat of the moment. Unbeknownst to you, he tensed for a second and his eyes were flickering in panic at your touch. You turned to look at him, a wide, infectious grin plastered on your face, reminding Sunghoon of many moments you shared with him in the past, feeling a sudden surge of deja vu but also an unfamiliar sensation gripping at his chest.Â
âWith us together, Iâm sure weâd be the protagonists of the world, like always.â
Walking out of the tunnel with you and your teammates names being announced to the whole arena to hear was a surreal moment. You had ignored the way your heart raced from the simplest action of holding Sunghoonâs hand for a split second when all of you raised your interlocked hands in greeting to the fans. It was torture to pretend you were completely normal even when Sunghoon casted you a smile right after you dropped your hands. It was almost as if he knew and was mocking you.
âAlright guys,â Anton started, taking the chance while all you were huddled together removing your tracksuits. âAfter our months of training together and from the results recorded each time, Iâm sure weâll be able to face this and get a medal home. Donât think much, weâre going to win this,â
Anton, being the groupâs hype man for every competition, didnât fail to restore the heavy atmosphere yet again. The rest of you smiled at his encouraging words that were filled with confidence, making quiet cheers and taking turns to give him a grateful pat in the back. There were some wishes of good luck and last encouragements shared around the group before Anton took his position on the starting block, being the first to begin for the backstroke leg in the relay.Â
The electronic buzz was no stranger to any of you by then. At the sound of it, every swimmer dived into the pool, swimming faced up with their arms moving in a windmill-like fashion. You could tell Yujin and Sunghoon were both holding their breaths, watching Anton and the two other swimmers fighting for the lead. Hell, you were too, wishing you could choose to close your eyes instead.
Before you knew it, Sunghoon was already making his way to the starting block to get in position. The time was ticking, you knew it was selfish but you couldnât help yourself from grasping onto his hand, stopping him in his steps, catching him off guard like a deer in headlights. âGood luck,â it was nothing much, a simple expression just like any other, yet you couldnât explain the reason why you had to tell it to him personally.
It wasnât obvious, but from the looks of his expressions softening, melting into a relieved smile as if a huge boulder had been taken off his shoulders, Sunghoon seemed to have needed to hear it from you just as much as you needed to tell it to him. âThank you. Really.â
You let go of his hand, watching as he took his position the same way as he had always done in practices. There was a sense of calmness around him. He fixed his swim cap once, pulling on his goggles after, strictly in a particular order that he followed since the start of his career. His small habits and the superstitions he believed in never changed even after all those years. Â
The moment Anton was nearing, Sunghoon dived into the pool. Your head snapped to the leaderboard displayed on the big screen, heart nearly stopping at the sight of the team being in first place at that moment. Yujin followed your sight, letting out a breath of disbelief. You turned to meet her eyes, exchanging a knowing look and placed your arms around the other. Nothing could compare to the anxiety you were feeling as the person who was going last.
Yujin was the next to dive into the pool after Sunghoon reached the starting point. He climbed out, absolutely drenched and breathing heavily from the swim. Anton went up to him and gave him a wordless squeeze to the shoulder, letting Sunghoon catch his breath first while they watched the scene unfolding before them.Â
Soon, it was your cue to get in position on the starting block. Anton patted your shoulder, saying a haste âgood luckâ once more as you made your way there. Sunghoon was quiet, he knew you more than anyone would, and in that exact second, he understood that you didnât need another word of encouragement. Instead, he held onto your hand, squeezing it tightly, keeping his eyes locked with yours as he nodded his head, a slight smile on his lips. That was truly all you needed from him.
The feeling when you pulled your goggles over your head, eyes facing straight on the water was simply unexplainable, complex even. It was the same as it had been for days, months, years, but this time, in this exact instant, why did everything feel different? Was it because of the lead and the pressure to uphold it as the person in the last leg? You shook away every one of those intrusive thoughts, focusing on Yujin getting closer.Â
Just as she got close enough, you knew it was your cue to dive into the pool, letting the water engulf you whole as you kicked your legs, propelling yourself upward to the surface. Your hands and legs were working in tandem, going over the limit to execute your best movement. Every intake of air was scarce, filling your lungs with the right amount as you turned your head each time.Â
Before you knew it, you had already reached one point, executing a swift flip turn, then you were swimming towards the starting point, towards the end of the relay. You had no idea what was happening above the water, whether or not you were still maintaining the lead, all you could was empty your mind and swim despite the tiredness wearing you down after having to compete in another event earlier on. You finally understood the struggles of having two finals in a day that your teammates would constantly complain about at that moment.Â
You didnât dare to move your head a single inch, maintaining the perfect position as you swam even though you were curious how far you were from the other end of the wall. Time was slow when you were the one swimming, the concept of everything happening around you was unknown to you. Your heart dropped to your stomach the second you felt your finger lightly brush against the wall, instantly gripping onto the edge with overwhelming suspense to know what the results were. You were holding your breath as you resurfaced, ears muffled for a split second before you were swarmed with your teammates who all crouched by you, barely having the chance to spare a glance at the leaderboard.
âWe won! We fucking won!â Yujin shouted, barely containing her emotions as tears started streaming down her face, swim cap gripped tightly in her hands.Â
âWe did it. Oh my God,â Anton exclaimed, letting his own emotions overwhelm him as he buried his face into his hands, not budging when Yujin wrapped her arms around him.
Sunghoon reached his hand out to you, his eyes were rimmed with a soft crimson hue, the redness highlighting the raw vulnerability within that he tried so hard to mask. The lashes glistened with unshed tears, and the whites of his eyes seemed to shimmer, revealing the depth of his unspoken feelings. Each blink threatened to spill over, this moment was what you and him have been waiting for. âWe finally did it. We made it.â
You accepted his hand, allowing him to help you out of the water, but before he could fully stand straight, you had already pounced on him, wrapping your arms around his neck and pulling him into a hug. Sunghoon melted into your touch, holding you close to him with his arms around you with no space left for you to move. The leaderboard was turning blurry in your vision that was gradually filling with tears, your grip on him tightening and your head leaned onto his shoulder, tears mixing with the pool water on his skin.Â
He pulled away for a moment, hands still holding onto you, never wanting to let go for just a split second. There was nothing said, yet you could feel every emotion he was trying to convey through his eyes. Those shaking hands of his travelled from your waist to your face, cradling it in them, the softness of his palm pressed against your skin. It was fast, him leaning in to press a kiss that lasted longer than a second, the aftermath of it being you and him staring at each other with a mixed reaction of surprise and softness. Before you could say anything, he pulled you back into a hug, wrapping his arms around you tighter than ever.Â
The cheers around you were drowned out, the presence of the other swimmers were long forgotten, all you could think of was you and Sunghoon only. As you held onto each other as if there was no tomorrow, you never knew how impactful this win was to you and him. If either of you had won your first gold medal in your individual events, everything wouldâve turned out differently. But with this shared win, the long awaited gold medal win that you and him swore to achieve together, your dreams had come true, and it was done side by side.Â
Standing on the podium next to your teammates and most importantly, the person that youâve been through thick and thin with, receiving the gold medal that hung around your neck perfectly, you wondered if it was all a daydream. You reached for Sunghoonâs hand, slipping yours into his that he instinctively accepted, glancing at you with the widest smile in his face that was immediately burned into your brain, an image that was impossible to recreate. It was real, everything was real. The win, the feeling of victory, your unwavering feelings for the man that was holding onto your hand tightly, all of those were equally real.Â
âWhat should we do to celebrate?â Anton had his eyes glued on his gold medal the rest of the day, unable to store it away for just a second. Every one of you thought he mightâve already developed an attachment to it.
âSleep, rest. We still have our last day tomorrow,â Yujin let out a massive yawn, muscles worn out for the time being to even be able to muster any leftover energy. Unfortunately, you had no choice but to agree with her, the only one who seemed to have enough energy to celebrate was Anton.
âRight, the men and womenâs medley relay finals,â Anton murmured, his enthusiasm for a celebration was crushed after realising he still had one more event to go before being able to celebrate fully. âReady for another round, Sunghoon?â
Sunghoon, who only looked rather dreadful at the mention of their next and last event, showed a frown as a response, thinking about the possibilities that would emerge from the big event. âIâm scared. China and the US ⌠Franceââ
Anton, carefree as always, slapped Sunghoon in the back. âDonât be pessimistic, weâll be fine. Isnât that true, Y/N?â
You averted your attention away from the screen of your phone, looking up and unknowingly meeting Sunghoonâs eyes almost at once. It was unexpected, the intensity of his stare was all you needed to know that he had been stealing glances at you before this. The suddenness of it made you fluster for a second, nearly forgetting what Anton had just said. âYâyeah, you guys will be fine. The team medalled at the world championships anyway,â
âYou hear that? Donât worry about tomorrow. Letâs bask in the glory!â Anton threw his arms around Sunghoon, successfully stealing his attention and giving you a chance to look away, calming your heart that was beating out of control.Â
Taking down one challenge at a time for your forte. With a gold medal secured, youâve succeeded at the main task at hand. Now that your biggest obstacle was gone, there came another tumbling towards you: Park Sunghoon. You swore to yourself youâd get a gold medal first before dealing with that, and since youâve always been someone who stuck to your words, it seemed to have come to haunt you instead.
Mission âtell Sunghoon how you feelâ was about to be tougher and scarier, probably a much higher chance of a heartbreak than any competitions youâd have ever participated in.Â
Who wouldâve known that the Olympics had ended as fast as it started. One day you were just arriving at the village and the next thing you knew, youâre in the airport waiting for your flight home. Four medals won, a friendship mended, many unforgettable memories made, all of which happened in the course of a few months leading up to the Olympics and also the weeks that you spent in Paris.
âWhatâs in your mind?â Sunghoon crept up to the empty seat next to you in the lounge as everyone waited to board the flight. You turned your head to the direction of his voice, your body instantaneously reacting to him before your mind could fully process his presence.Â
âIâm just thinking about how quick this whole Olympics passed by,â you leaned your back onto the seat, Sunghoon following your action without removing his gaze on you.Â
âIsnât it crazy how training started a few months ago?â Sunghoon chuckled at the thought of his first day in a new team that totally freaked him out. That entire nonchalant persona he put on was a complete facade, though he would never admit it aloud. âAnd now youâre going home with four medals,â
âSays the man who has five,â you nudged his shoulder with yours in a lighthearted manner, exchanging a brief smile with him. âItâs weird how six years of us not talking feels like it never happened before, like it was some kind of blip in the matrix. Iâm glad weâre able to patch things up and go back to the way it was,â
âMe too. I missed this. I missed us,â it was odd, the way Sunghoon looked at you with emotions that youâd never seen, the vulnerability breaking through his voice, everything felt intimate, too intimate for just a simple conversation in the middle of an airport with everyone around. He took your hand and placed it in his, soft eyes crinkled in the corners with a gentle smile that he always had around you. âOnce weâre back home, how about you and I take a short trip to our hometown again? Just the both of us like the last time,â
Staring at him, you were quite stunned, blinking feverishly, and at the same time, the feelings that you tried to shake off so many times were returning at that exact second. âIâd love to. We can grab our favourite lunch set like always,âÂ
Sunghoon snorted, but he was nodding along despite the amusement. âYouâre right. We didnât get that when we were there that day,â
âI forgot! Plus, we had lunch with our family, Iâm sure the overdue reminiscing can wait for a little longer,â
âThat is why weâre going to go back for a week or more, do the things we always did and visit the places we went when we were kids,â Sunghoon snapped his fingers, staring at you with sparkling eyes. You could tell he really did miss home and his hometown with you in it. âDo you remember the secret hideout we had? The one in the park?â
âYou mean the swing?â you smiled at the mention of your shared memories, remembering bits and pieces of it that has yet to be brought up until then.
âYes, our swing,â Sunghoon enunciated the word âourâ, a cheeky grin plastered on his lips that told you he was about to say something abysmal. âI really want to go back to that spot with you. Do you still remember that one time you dragged me there at night sobbing because the coach said youâre off by two seconds?â
âOh my God, shut up,â you landed a hit on Sunghoonâs shoulder, the latter continued to laugh at the fond memory, ignoring your eye roll. His laughter and his smile that reached all the way up to his eyes made you feel fuzzy inside, the picture of it was eternally imprinted onto your mind. âI was such an overachiever,â
âYou still are,â he managed to say in between laughters, gradually settling down and unbeknownst to you, his shoulder was pressed against yours, the gap between you and him were becoming nonexistent. âThat is why youâre an Olympic champion,â
You shook your head, waving your hand at him. âPlease, donât flatter me and my ego,â
âItâs true! You really are amazing, you know that?â Sunghoon exclaimed, not a single trace of dishonesty was found in his words, his expressions showing genuinity. If he was able to read minds, he wouldâve heard your mind yelling at you right after that. You were short circuiting, unable to generate a response. âIn my whole life of knowing you, youâre truly one of the best, both in terms of swimming and simply as a person. Youâre smart, kind, talented aâand everything. Frankly, youâre my favourite person,âÂ
Are you in love with me? Because Iâm in love with you too. You wanted to spill that out of your mouth, vomit your inner thoughts and feelings that you held in for so long, wishing you could make it clear to him how you actually feel and stop yourself from continuously confusing everything. What did he mean by all of that? Was it a casual compliment? To you, none of that was casual and normal. What kind of signals was he trying to give?Â
âThank you,â you were breathless, simply because you were barely breathing and you had been holding your breath in ever since the start of his rant. âYâyouâre amazing too, really. Nobody could ever amount to you ⌠youâre my one and only,â was this a suitable time and place to confess your undying love for him, your childhood best friend that you had feelings for? In this airport filled with athletes, being in the city of love, with the clock ticking down to 11:11, you were about to do the unthinkable that youâve been overthinking for countless nights. âI have something to say, actually. Sunghoon, I actually am inââ
âGuys! Time to gather and board!â
F.M.L.
âWhat is it?â Sunghoon stared at you expectantly, eyebrows raised in suspense with a slight frown at the sudden interruption. You, on the other hand, were left with your mouth agape, confession cut short and the perfect timing that you deduced ended up being in vain. There was no way that this was reality. âY/N?â
âIâIâll tell you another day. We have to board,â you gripped onto the strap of your backpack tight enough to drain the blood from your knuckles. The disappointment was on par with the times you lost your lead.Â
âIs it something important?â
âWell, sort of? I guess it is,â
âThen you better remember to tell me when youâre ready, okay?â he wagged his finger at you, smiling softly as if he had noticed the drop in your face and was trying to assure you somehow.
âI will. Letâs get going now.â you patted his back, nodding over at the counter where the athletes were getting their tickets scanned and managing to divert his attention away.Â
âIâm in love with youâ. Itâs simple and straightforward, thereâs nothing hard about it for you to say, but why couldnât you tell him that? Even when you tried to do so, it ended up being in a pile of mess, leaving you dejected in the end.Â
Since when has loving your best friend become so hard? Youâve been doing it for the majority of your life, the only difference was that you were aware that itâs romantic now, so whatâs stopping you? Time? Or was it yourself? Maybe it's the fear of vulnerability that feels so heavy. Every shared laugh, every secret whispered in the dark, suddenly carries the weight of possibility. What if these feelings are too big to fit within the bounds of friendship? And yet, isn't love, in all its forms, worth the risk? Â
You were scared, scared of losing the person you just got back and also the possibility of loving someone who knew your strengths and weaknesses too well.
âYou never told me he tried to hit on you while we were there,â
It was the third day of your one week trip back to your hometown with Sunghoon. After the last two days of being stuck with your own families and having to entertain relatives who were too inquisitive, you and him finally got the chance to hang out together without any prying eyes. Getting out of the city once you were done with your public appearances was the perfect plan, it didnât take Sunghoon long before sending you a text telling you to pack your bags. If only he knew how relieved you felt seeing him pull up to your house like prince charming coming to save the day.
Sunghoon wasnât kidding when he mentioned about revisiting your secret hideout. It was right after dinner, the sun had set and the wind was cooler, Sunghoonâs jacket was wrapped around your body despite his constant nagging.  The night sky was littered with constellations of stars above you and Sunghoon, the two of you were sitting on the swings, the park was mostly empty except for a few lingering figures. Â
âI didnât think itâs important,â you muttered, holding onto the swing that youâve sat on ever since you were only a kid, specifically the right swing while Sunghoon occupied the left.Â
âIt is! Itâs literally Thomas Ceccon. Heâs Italian, tall and hotâŚâ Sunghoon trailed off at the sight of you staring at him with an expression of deadpan, clearly unimpressed.
âSounds like youâre the one with the crush instead,â
Sunghoon pressed his lips into a thin line, sighing out a rather loud and big breath. âWhatever. What Iâm trying to say is ⌠itâs just frustrating, okay? I mean, Iâve heard some things about him before that tells me he isnât the best person. Itâs like he thinks he has a chance or something. You donât even need that kind of attention. Youâre way too good for him,â he shifted his gaze, unable to look at you head-on.Â
You searched for his wandering eyes, the shock you experienced from his words and the harshness in his tone that you would seldom hear gave you a slight whiplash. Was he âŚ? Could it be? Jealousy? There was no way, or so you thought whenever you tried to convince yourself that your feelings were one-sided. The small hope burning internally sparked brighter, though the fear of letting yourself down if the truth turned out to be the opposite of what you wanted lingered. âYou worry too much. I donât think about him that way. I ⌠have someone else in mind anyway,â
âYou do?â his spine straightened immediately, head almost getting snapped from his neck at how quick he turned towards you, eyebrows raised so high they were almost touching his hairline.Â
You nodded, strangely calm and collected, unlike the usual jitters that youâd experienced around him whenever youâre close to revealing the truth. âSomeone who gets me, who knows how to make me laugh. Someone who sees me for who I really am,â you paused, your gaze steady. âBut I guess heâs just too oblivious to notice,â
Silence was what followed after, the suspenseful tension turning thicker by the minute. You watched his expressions being scrunched up in deep thought then changing into a mix of confusion that eventually morphed into realisation where he might begin to piece the little things together. âWhatânoâare you ⌠trying to sayââ
âForget it,â you blurted out, standing up from the swing, feeling your heart burning from your own fear and avoidant. You were close, so agonisingly close and yet, you couldnât bring yourself to face the possibilities of the aftermath. It was always you who chose to break your heart first.  Â
âNo, tell me,â Sunghoon got a hold of your wrist before you could get the chance to walk away, following you suit to stand and facing you straight, never once breaking his gaze that was locked onto yours. You were startled from the grip he had on you, the intensity he had in his eyes felt almost palpable, as if he were searching for the words that had lodged themselves in his throat. âTell me, am I the oblivious one? Is that what you think? Because Iâve been feeling like Iâm walking on eggshells around you, afraid to say what I really want. If youâre hinting at something, just say it. I canât keep pretending I donât care or be completely sane when I see some sleazy swimmer trying to approach you, it drives me crazy,âÂ
The heat of his gaze burned through the air between you and him, a mixture of vulnerability and determination that made it hard to look away. Every emotion he felt flickered across his featuresâfear, longing, and an urgent need for you to understand. It was as if, in that moment, the world around you and him faded, leaving only the raw connection pulsing in the space between your breaths.
âPlease, just tell me,â he urged, his voice low and urgent after seeing your silence. âI need to know if Iâm the one youâre talking about or if Iâve been chasing shadows all this time. Because if thereâs even a chance you mean me, then I canât just let this go,â He stepped closer, vulnerability etched on his face. âIâve been scared to say anything, afraid of ruining what we have. But I canât keep pretending I donât feel something more. So, just⌠say it. Please.â
âDo you really want to know?â you took a breath, your heart racing, knowing you were putting whatever it was about your friendship on the line. âBecause if I say it, things might change between us. Youâre my best friend ⌠and I just canât lose you like this,â
Sunghoon ran a hand through his hair, evidently frustrated but trying his best to understand your fears. He could see right through you, you and him were alike in many ways, it didnât take long for him to realise you were scared of losing him again, because to him, that was his fear too. âGod, I hate that word,â
ââLoseâ?â
ââFriendâ,â Sunghoon practically spat out, the word alone was laced with distaste, his chest heaving. He took a step closer, his legs were feeling heavy, the weight pressing onto his chest was becoming apparent. You didnât budge even when his hands travelled to your face, palms rested on both sides of your cheeks. âCanât you see? Iâve laid my heart out for you,â
âThen letâs stop pretending,â you said, your voice was quiet but steady despite the storm in your heart. âItâs you, Sunghoon. Itâs always been you. Iâve tried to ignore it, to push it aside because I didnât want to risk what we have. But every time Iâm with you, itâs like nothing else matters. Iâm scared tooâterrified of losing you, but I canât hide my feelings anymore. You mean so much more to me than just a friend,â you poured out every single undying confession that you had hid as if your life depended on it, desperation and pining was overwhelming you as time passed. âIâm in love with you, Sunghoon, and for as long as I can remember, Iâve always loved you,âÂ
Sunghoonâs eyes widened, a mixture of surprise and something deeper shimmering in his gaze, he froze for a moment, his breath hitching as your words sank in. A rush of emotions flickered across his faceâshock, disbelief, and then a dawning realisation that made his heart race. He searched your eyes, looking for confirmation, as if needing to ensure that this wasnât some beautiful dream. A smile broke through the haze of confusion, a mix of relief and joy. âIâm glad ⌠because Iâve never once stopped loving you either,â
For a heartbeat, the world around you and him seemed to pause, your confession hanging in the air like a delicate thread connecting your hearts. Then, as if pulled by an invisible force, he closed the distance between the two of you even further, his hand remained gently cradling your face.
He leaned in, his breath warm against your lips. You felt your pulse quicken, anticipation and fear intertwining as you still couldnât believe this was actually happening. With a softness that took your breath away, he pressed his lips to yours. It was a tentative kiss at first, filled with all the unspoken words you and him both had held back for too long. But as you melted into each other, the kiss deepened, growing more urgent, more passionate, as if you and him were finally allowing yourselves to feel everything you had been denying.
In that moment, the weight of your fears and the uncertainty of the past faded away, leaving only the electric connection between you and Sunghoon, igniting a fire that had always been there, waiting for this moment to finally ignite.
It was unmistakable, the feeling of his smile against your lips, the same smile that you had kept in your mind ever since you were merely kids. Your best friend, your lover, was undeniably your soulmate, the boy who youâve loved since you were merely a kid had returned to your life as if it was fated for it to happen.Â
The smile was still present on his face even after he pulled away, the look in his eyes was enough to convey every emotion that he had. Foreheads resting against each other, breathless and overwhelmed by the intensity of what had just happened, Sunghoonâs eyes searched yours, a mix of wonder and disbelief lingering in the air between the both of you. He looked at you with such love, adoration and admiration as if you were his world, unaware how full his heart truly was.Â
âYou know, that day at the airport, remember the important thing I wanted to tell you?â you were the first to break the silence, hands resting on each of his shoulders, mainly for support knowing your knees were getting weaker as you continued to process what had just happened.Â
âI do,â
âI actually wanted to confess to you about how I feel,â
âReally? In the middle of the airport? L/N, you never fail to amuse me,â Sunghoon chuckled, his thumb caressing the expanse of your cheek. Another choke of laughter was pulled out from him when you attempted to land a punch on him.
âHey! I thought it was a good setting, the vibes were telling me so,â
His smile only widened, there was a sense of softness that he had in his eyes whenever he was around you, this was one of those instances. âI think I wouldnât have made it onto that flight if you pulled that on me. We wouldâve never made it home,â
âYouâre right. It really wouldâve been quite disastrous, wouldnât it? I never thought about the entire outcome,â
âI wouldnât complain spending a longer time in Paris with you,â he removed his forehead from yours, his features becoming much clearer under the glow of the streetlight. His expression softened, a seriousness returning as he took your hands in his. âThis feels right. Weâve been more than just friends for a while now, havenât we? â
âYeah,â you replied, your heart swelling with hope as you recalled every little, detailed moment with Sunghoon that made you rethink your life choices. âIt really does, â
A moment of silence hung between you and him, filled with the promise of something new and exciting. âSo⌠what do we do now?â you asked, a playful grin on your lips, eager to explore this new chapter together as you always did with him for most parts of your life.
He chuckled, his thumb brushing over your hand. âWell, I guess we figure it out together. No more hiding, right?â
âRight.â you agreed, your smile widening as you stepped into the unknown, hand in hand, ready to embrace whatever came next.Â
Under that night sky which you and Sunghoon had shared and walked under all your life, the two of you spent the rest of your time in that park in each othersâ presence, the air around had changed undoubtedly, but you and him were still the same, there was nothing that could possibly change when it came to the two of you.Â
The stars were shining brighter than usual, the moon was round and illuminated, the endless possibilities were now unfolding before you. With every shared laugh and whispered secret, the world around you felt alive, filled with promise and the magic of new beginnings. As you walked side by side, fingers intertwined, it was clear that this moment was just the beginning of a new path youâd be taking with him.
Under that vast expanse, you realised that no matter what challenges lay ahead, you had each otherâtwo hearts that had always been drawn together. In the quiet of the night, surrounded by the glow of the universe, you felt a warmth blooming between you, a certainty that whatever the future held, you would face it together, side by side.
Two months.Â
That was how long it had been since that night you and Sunghoon got together officially, ending the lengthy and obvious tension that existed way before you and him became friends again. Since then, many things have changed and happened. Sunghoon had returned to train under his original coach, the teamâs success was celebrated by the nation from the point youâve returned from the Olympics and praise has yet to stop in the tabloid with the additional excitement for the swimming world cup. Not only that, you revealed your relationship with Sunghoon to friends and family, receiving exciting screams and some âI knew itâ that you shouldâve known was coming. Everything was finally perfectly in place.Â
Fast forward to the present day, you couldnât believe you were actually standing on top of the world. It was the last day of the final stop of the world cup, the aggregate points from all three separate stops were counted to determine the top three male and female swimmers. Safe to say, ever since the Olympics, your drive for success only came out stronger. It was your determination and headstrong personality that drove you past your limits to emerge as the champion of the world cup.Â
Walking out to the stage and accepting the medal was a surreal experience, you wished someone was there to pinch you and remind you none of it was a dream. Never once in the course of the past weeks have you expected yourself to come out in first place with the highest points. Here you were, standing on stage with your fellow swimmers, facing the fans and giving your speeches, proving yet again that you were indeed the ânational treasureâ.
At the thought of that name, your attention averted towards the stands, scanning through everyone to find the person that youâve been wishing to see most. Instead, a big sign that read âMY GFâS A WORLD CHAMPIONâ caught your eyes, the person that was holding onto it peeked out from behind the sign, revealing his true identity, bringing an amused smile onto your face. Park Sunghoon, your boyfriend who has forfeited the last stop for the sake of his health, had never once missed a single event that you were in. You dared to say that he was your biggest supporter, not only for this instance, but for the majority of your life.
As your eyes locked onto Sunghoonâs, the noise of the crowd faded into a soft hum, leaving only the warmth of his smile and the fluttering in your heart. You didnât need him close to feel his warmth, you could tell from the pride and affection hidden in his eyes that you were about to get the biggest hug when he got his hands on you. You raised a hand, waving enthusiastically, and he responded with a playful flourish of the sign, drawing laughter from those around him.Â
In that moment, everything felt right. The adrenaline from your win mixed with the comfort of his unwavering support, filling you with utmost comfort that you needed all along, making every sore limb and painful nights worth it. Even if you were out there alone, you knew, in the midst of every crowd, there always would be someone present, cheering for you no matter what the circumstances were.
That person would be Sunghoon. The man who you would call your best friend, your confidant, but also your lover. It mightâve taken a while to struggle past your differences and misunderstandings, yet, you managed against the tides washing over you and him, building a bond that surpassed everything. Not only was there trust and admiration, but an unmeasurable kind of love was formed. It would be eternal, an everlasting love that couldnât be washed away, leaving you and him together for as long as you lived.
( Š jaylver all rights reserved. do NOT copy, plagiarise or edit my work and repost whatsoever. once discovered will be exposed and blacklisted. )
Long fics are my guilty pleasure thank u sm for writing this it's beautiful đđ
jerk! masterlist
as far as you know, beomgyu is a jerk. he stole your place in your friend group and the band that you and yeonjun had established many years ago, and he did so with the attitude of a spoiled, entitled, immature teenage boy. and, well, after learning that his addition to the band had resulted in a huge success, you werenât exactly willing to give him a chance anyway.
pairing choi beomgyu x fem! reader
genre angst, humour, fluff, written series, childhood best friend! yeonjun, guitarist! beomgyu, enemies to lovers, second lead! yeonjun, band! txt
warning cursing, bickering, arguing, alcohol, jealousy
instalments
reunion from hell | 1
you and your friends had started a band in your teen years, as you all shared a deep love for music. as serious as you wanted to be about the band, you put your education first and moved away during the summer after graduation. years later, you were expecting a warm welcome back from your childhood friends.
not so bad | 2
your hometown begins to bring back many pleasant memories, and being with yeonjun just feels right. and, as your friendships with the boys individually improves â and you find forgiveness for each of them within yourself â you become less bothered by beomgyuâs incessant teasing and taunting.
giving up | 3
between a friend from college coming to visit and the common occurrence of yeonjun putting his relationship before your friendship, the last thing you need is beomgyu waiting to poke his nose where it doesnât belong. but despite his need to fight with you on everything, his actions show a completely different side of him. a side that cares for you.
status ongoing.
taglist @fairyofshampgyu @woncheecks @shycreationdreamland @wonioml @baekberrie @strawbrinkofdeath @bangchansbae @wccycc @hyehae @lixpixstix @hyewka @notevenheretbh1 @whippedforbeomgyu @flowerbe0m @boba-beom @gravytr4in @carengene @banggyu0308 @lexawoah13 @st4rhwa @gyulight @isascat @jung1w0n @chocorenchin @i9chae @garbageandhot @2dalso @dewybae @sanasour @binluvsu @nhularin @naoristerling @besciitos @sunny4cast @jaeswrld
taglist availability 18 / 50
LOVE, SOL | N.R â
pairings.á°.á nishimura riki x fem!reader synopsis. á°.á [email protected] is typing.... IN WHICH two artists are forced to work together using each other techniques for the sake of their entire grade not knowing they were chatting anonymously through email everyday, all the while navigating falling in love online and in real life. warnings.á°.á smau & written series, kms jokes, dark themes etc. Probably missing some stuff.
âââ§âââââââ§ââ COMING SOON.
comment if you'd like to be added to the taglist.
taglist - @st1llm0nster, @belovedhoon, @blossommi, @pshbites
â HELLION INN. a Stray Kids fiction
đ : Lee Minho x implied! fem. reader
TROPE. dystopian! au, enemies to lovers, monster! au, apocalypse! au, âwe have to get along to surviveâ au, angst, high stakes
WORD COUNT. 10k â 50min read
WARNINGS. gory descriptions, cursing, descriptive violence, implied intercourse, death, a dubcon kiss, talk of vomit/vomiting, lots of mentions of death, one mention of k*lling oneself, parasites, murder, inclusion of fire, injury, usage of guns, injury, knives, reader and minho are âhuntedâ, mature themes
AUG'S NOTES. itâs finished! i wanted to cry (out of happiness!!) closing the last part :) i truly love this piece, and, though it certainly isnât all too lovey dovey compared to alternative fics of mine, i was so incredibly fortunate to be able to write for themes i adore! i hope my enthusiasm was able to be conveyed in the subject of monsters/apocalyptic auâs!! please enjoy<3
PLAYLIST.
SYNOPSIS. Receiving an ominous letter in the mail, a monster invades Seoul minutes later, carrying an uncanny sense of smell despite its blindness. Countless people have been slaughtered already, and with your letter as the only meager explanation to this madness, you find your feet leading towards the one place it said was safe: Hellion Inn.
or alternatively :
Minho wonât let you die. Not if it means letting this Monster get him or hellâs dawning itself. Youâre going to survive. Together.
Run, something is coming. Go to Hellion Inn, youâll be safe there.
Something? What is something? A terrorist attack? War?
Never had such a letter arrived at your doorstep other than this Tuesday, with the morning sunlight peeking through half-opened blinds casting your pajama-clad frame in its cascades.
And again, you reread and reread, questions raging in a distorted frenzy amidst your once just-wakening mind.Â
Little were you aware what would come. What already roamed Seoulâs streets, approaching closer, closer.Â
One objective resides in too many possibilities.Â
Find Hellion Inn.Â
.
.
.
Stuffing the letter in your pocket serves as the most sensible solution while you go over your options. If you didnât have a clue about what dishes would be cooked, youâd check the ingredients first.
And yet, upon turning on the TV, you find your meal already served.Â
On a platter, dripping with blood.
âThis just in, an unidentifiable entity is making its way through Seoul in a rampage. The creature is highly dangerous. It appears to lack vision, and speculation has deemed it relies upon its smell to discern other beings. The creature has not been detained at this time. Under no circumstances should citizens leave their residences, and in the case youâre on the street, please evacuate to the nearest shelter immediately. Further information will be released.â
Your blood runs frigidly cold, enough you swear you couldâve turned to ice.
All of a sudden, war or a terrorist attack doesnât sound nearly as daunting as before.
A monster. Ruthless, bloodthirsty.Â
Monster.Â
Instantaneously are news sites everywhere exploding, posting footage, pictures, and accounts of the creature each second.Â
More and more and more until-
It all goes dark, your home plunged into a black abyss meagerly sustained by the sunâs rays, phone in hand ultimately powering off.Â
Electricity down. Fully.
This isnât like a usual predicament of a public threat, not something youâre prepared for, nor something anyone was prepared for. Thereâs no drill for a monster, no tsunami shelter or high rise building to reside upon.Â
Was it obliviousness? Or were you all simply sheep to a ravaging wolf?
The latter seemed most convincing.
An exhale. No, a growl is what breaks your train of thought. Like the chuff of a tiger, curdling in its throat.Â
Above.Â
You canât even bring yourself to move, canât bear to breathe in fear youâd give yourself away as a shadow covers that once hopeful sunlight.
No shadow, but a thing. A monster.Â
How did it get here so fast? How.. how the hell is this happening?
The sound of tiles shifting on your roof makes your fingers twitch, eyes stuck wide.Â
The worlds apex predators turned into the prey.Â
Each pound of your heart lies evident in ringing ears, listening to those low, horrendous gurgles, repeating that same chuff before it shifts again.
Again and again, and youâre unmoving.
Leave. Run. Anything.Â
Yet, you canât move a muscle, glued in place.
Until you do, and your legs act before you can process a thing. Grabbing for items, whatever it may be. Mind unable to process in its frantic state.
No. No.
A plea as your hand wraps around the doorknob, beginning down the apartment complexâs stairs in rapid descent, listening to the slow growls of the creature.
Donât look behind, just go.
A mistake you find yourself making even when a life is on the line.
Your life is on the line.
And when you spare that single glimpse, murky lifeless eyes stare blindly back at you, bulging from its skull as if they never were intended to be there. Skin a hallowed, fleshy tone â ligaments hung awry.Â
Disorderly, distasteful. If you look close enough, you swear you couldâve seen a beating heart, watched the oxygen cells rush through a pumping bloodstream.Â
Gaping jaws hold copious teeth, ant-like incisors residing on either side of a ceaselessly smiling mouth, the corners of what appears to be lips ascending all the way up to nonexistent ears.Â
Four legs, two antennae atop its head. At least two times the size of a human.
Horrific.
Never had such a thing appeared so terrifying.
With the letter clutched in one hand and your powerless phone in another do you run, praying that nonexistent vision truly is nonexistent.
Well, until a car alarm begins to ring, and you feel your stomach climb to your throat simultaneously.
Because it twitches. Not even a glance-sort of reaction. The entirety of whatever neck that monster hones twitches to look at you with a nausea-worthy crack! of its ligaments. Those jaws parted, a flattened nose breathing in.
And then it lurches, and you donât think youâve ever ran as fast as you did now.
Far, far. As far as you can go.Â
Itâs futile listening to gargled cries for help amongst rubble, the reaching of hands for your feet you canât even spare a moment for as those scraping claws continue their perilous dance after you, scavenging on people as they go.Â
So the second an intact person comes into viewâa boy, looking about your age (and freakishly calm at that) with fluffy hair and rounded cheeks retaining such youthâyouâre racing ahead before you can even think, ramming through those convenience store doors in a flurry of panic and fear.
âMonsterâ Monster- thereâs a monster we have to go-â
âDo you like grilled cheese?â He mumbles, and you wonder if heâs talking to himself or you, no less asking such a question during this downright apocalypse.
âNo, no there isââ A shriek pierces the air in the distance, the clutter of debris alerting the monsterâs proximity.
You, in a frantic attempt to redirect his attention, place either hand on his shoulders.
âA monster. Thereâs a monster out there and if we donât hide, itâs going to kill us.âÂ
The boy licks his lips, cocking a contemplative brow before looking toward the freezer section.Â
âFreezer?â
At this point the creature might as well be turning the corner, and you donât need to respond for either of you to go running as fast as your legs will carry you, stuffing yourselves into the biting cold just as the bells above the entrance door ring.
Scariest part is this customer is intelligent enough to open doors.
This customer isnât human.Â
Like slow-motion you hear it. The pounding of your heartbeat in your ears, the lack of air in such a tight space, the monsterâs rumbling.
Your hidden counterpart lodged himself into a freezer opposite to you, eyes squeezed shut the nearer clicking footsteps on tile sounded.
Click.
Click.
Click.
You donât realize your eyes are closed until you open them, met with the monsterâs face, hundreds of razor-sharp teeth lining its mouth, stretched into that same, chilling smile while it stares at you through the glass.
It canât see you. It canât see you. It canât see you, You internally plead like a mantra, suffocating on the scream rising in your throat.
The loud clanging of a soup can the boy throws has the creatureâs disfigured face whipping around, and you wordlessly communicate through mere terrified-eye-contact what either of you are thinking:
Run.
Without conscious you go flying, ramming past discarded groceries and tormented bodies into Seoulâs open roadway, void of any vehicle whatsoever.
Except for one. Â
Itâs a tow truck, key still lodged into the ignition, window broken with streaks of blood lining the door where a middle-aged manâs body had been dragged out. He rests lopsided below the front tire, abdomen severed in half.
Grotesque.Â
âCar- Car!â You cry out, wildly gesturing for him to follow suit while you pry the driverâs door open, the monsterâs frustrated growl enough motivation for the stranger to throw himself in as well.
In the nick of time you press down on the pedal, winding the wheel in a quick motion just as the hell-sent smashes itself from the shop, evidently angered.
âIâm Han!â The man occupying the passenger seat shouts, the hole through the windshield causing enormous amounts of wind to soar through the car and synonymously blur your senses.
âWhat?!âÂ
âMy name is Han! Han Jisung!â
Squinting whilst looking through your mirror at the wickedly approaching Monster, you veer past as many obstacles as possible â most being corpses â as fast as the engine will let you.
âOh! Uh, Iâm Y/N!â
Han nods, grasp clutched onto his seat the more you speed increases, recklessly maneuvering left and right as if dodging a crocodile.Â
Unfortunately, this wasnât a crocodile, but a blood-thirsty beast wanting nothing more than to behead you. How sweet.
âDo you⌠Do you know how to drive?â He yells, and you raise your eyebrows, narrowly shifting past a shopping cart.
âIf you count Mario-Kart as driving, Iâm a pro!â
Han audibly squeaks his fear in response, eyes squeezing shut as if to not stare at the monsterâs face nearing the mirror.
The speedometer cries out, vehicle shuddering as you near train tracks just at the edge of the city.Â
Hopeful.Â
Fleeting hope when the roar of a trainâs whistle soars through the air, the look Han gives you doing little to sustain your already thinned sanity.
Perhaps youâll die getting hit by a train than this monster.
Perhaps itâs better that way.
âWeâre not gonna make it weâre not gonna make it weâre not gonna make iââ
âSHUT THE FUCK UPâ-â You screech, foot slammed as far down on the gas pedal as possible, the rumbling of the trainâs engine deafening.Â
âHOLY SHITTTTââ The man screams, mouth ajar as you soar over the tracks, preparing for impact only for a hair of the trainâs front barely brushing over the carâs bumper.Â
Currently realizing youâre still breathing and not dead, you floor the brake, either of you launching forward in your seats while the endless train keeps the monster at bay on the opposite side.Â
Both panting hysterically, you place a hand on your chest, hoping to slow down the terrifyingly fast pace of your heart â close to bursting out of your chest.Â
Your passenger, Han Jisung, turns to look at you, eyes wide as saucers, a gradual open-mouthed smile growing upon his flushed, sweat-stricken face.
âThat was.. sick.â
The flashlight flickers here and there, found in the tow truckâs trunk along with a med kit currently carried along by Han.
By chance did you end up in what remained of the red-light district, rubble dotting roadways as evidence of the Monsterâs previous siege.
Amidst the held supplies, your pocket seems to ache with the weight of the letter, sitting there in its futile warning of what was to come, now arrived.
You hadnât brought it up to Han yet, a persistent fear of blame lingering in the back of your mind. Was it your fault you didnât react in time? Disregarded the letter?
No. Thereâs no time to regret now. Whatever past existed has been annihilated.Â
Night is approaching, and with that comes rising unease and a desperate need to find shelter.
Seoulâs red-light district had always been a taboo for Koreaâs upper class. A hushed word, quenched beneath harsh scolding and wrinkled noses at the mere mention.
As if their own well-off sons donât get driven there on a daily basis, ignorant to their own affiliation as if itâs a genetically determined trait.
Quite funny how none of that matters now. Not when itâs the end of the world, that is.
Every (once) building looks the same. Rubble. Litter lines the roads, cars strewn awry, wrecked into buildings, run over people.Â
A pattern lies in everything.Â
This pattern consists of fear.Â
Struck on faces, painted carelessly along torn apart surfaces and walls, splattering the cities ruby red.
Incessantly, you canât help but fear. A natural biological response when in the presence of actual or perceived danger, inflicting sharp wounds throughout your body, mind on an endless neurological high of adrenaline-fueled paranoia.Â
How could someone not be paranoid when they were being hunted?
âIn here.â
Hanâs voice pulls you out of your head, turning where he points to a brick building, multicolored beach towel draped over a window torn to shreds, soil from plants staining the cracks of tiles, floor a mixture of blood and bacteria.Â
âItâs abandoned,â He notes, prying the creaking door open.Â
Abandoned isnât the word for it. The inhabitants left as most people did upon hearing the news of invasion, although they didnât get far, youâre plenty aware of that.Â
What a shame. Thinking they could escape, in their wake, slaughtered ruthlessly.Â
Instead of abandoned, call it evacuated, barren. Â
Inside, a radio runs in a constant string of white noise, the addition of broken air conditioning the only source of apparent life. Haunting, flickering lights cast the few rooms in an eerie, ghoulish green like that of a basement.
âIâve been here before. There should be a mart nearby.â Â
Allowing his remark to sink in, you pause, a slight grin drawing upon your lips.Â
âYouâve been here before, in the red-light district?âÂ
Phrase lingering amusedly, he stops as well, shifting on his heel to grace you with a similar smile.
âWhat? Not everyone can stand high and mighty in this society. Plus, thereâs no need to pretend anymore when death is so close by.â
Your smile drops, and you suck on the skin of your cheek, a loud breath through your nose enough to continue the descent.
Perhaps you should change the abandoned description.Â
Just then, from the corner of your eye do you see a figure emerge, the glinting edge of a kitchen knife barely brushing your shoulder blade before you dodge to your left, the attacker colliding with an ironing board.
Mere seconds later the figure rises to their feet, identified as female, adorning lanky limbs and skin as pale and zombified as the surrounding room. Her lips are cracked and purple, eyes nearly black, blanketed with equally raven hair reaching the floor in length.
The girl looks like a creature, barely alive with the lack of coordination in her loose stabs, alienated stare vividly murderous.Â
Only by narrowly pummeling into the wall do you manage to immobilize her, Jisungâs efforts stalled.
Liquid obsidian blinks back up at you from where youâve caged her to the floor, her nostrils flaring in hasty breaths, your own panting ringing in your ears.
âLook kid- Iâm not gonna hurt you, okay? Now if you calm down and let meââ Â
A third of the steak knife puncturing the side of your thigh veers your head back, choked scream jostling your nerves tenfold. Bubbling blood slips from the wound, trickling warmth dizzying you into a foggy spell.
Itâs not until a low bang! sounds that her arm, raised for another strike, falls limp to the floor, looking behind you to find Jisung holding a pistol, silencer attached to the muzzle, aimed directly at the girl below you.Â
Immediately, before you can release the unheralded screech compressing your lungs, Han hoists you up by your elbows, the jarring movement beckoning a squealed sob you bite your tongue containing.
Snatching clothing from a closet behind the door, the man rips the fabric using his teeth, returning to your slumped frame.
Reminding you to hold your breath, he aligns the makeshift bandage prior to tying it, your reaction becoming quieted as your eyes roll back.
And the world falls into a dark abyss.Â
By the time your lashes flutter open again, searing light invades your vision, the urge to open your eyes aiding a roaring headache.
Although, it appears youâre still in the same room, alternatively relocated to a futon on the floor, leg propped up using folded pillowcases and books.Â
âYouâre up.â
Han enters the room, two metal cans of mashed spam and rice held in either hand, one of which he gives to you.Â
âYou were knocked out cold,â He laughs, eyes crinkling at the corners, uncharacteristic to the fact he just shot someone.
âThe shirt should staunch the bleeding. Eat.â
Staring down at your meal, you glance up, stomach churning in an unsightly manner merely considering food.
But you eat anyway, gulping the bites down despite the nausea.
âAnd the girl?âÂ
Han takes a bite, scraping every last grain from the noisy tin without so much as a shiver.
âI took care of it.â
Itâs your turn to laugh, confusedly surveying the teenage-boy-looking friend of yours.
âWhat are you? A hitman?â
He clicks his tongue, eyes thoughtfully flickering to the ceiling.Â
âIâm.. somebody who really wants to survive.â
All you do is return his tight-lipped expression.
Yet, truly accounting for your introduction, thereâs a whole lot you donât know about him. His past, his goals. What his life was like before.Â
He comes off as cheery and good-natured, disposition claiming he wouldnât hurt a fly.Â
Youâve come to realize that isnât the reality whatsoever. Because Han Jisung is exactly what Han Jisung said he was.
Somebody who really wants to survive.Â
You can relate to that.
âSo.. Random note, random warning, no location?âÂ
âPretty much.âÂ
Seated beside you, Han surveys the letter, reading over the contents a few times before folding it back up and handing it to you. Heâs redressed your wound, utilizing the medical kitâs antiseptic and gauze to wrap the skin.
âHellion Inn,â Han repeats softly, brows knitted. âNever heard of it.â
You shrug once more from your place on the ground, leg still propped while he squats to your left.
âIf anything, itâs likely it was destroyed if itâs an actual Inn,â He mumbles, tapping a puffy bottom lip with his index, earning your half nod before you pause.
âWe can still try it though? We can find a stick or somethinâ, Iâll use it as a crutch.âÂ
This time, itâs his turn to nod â rising up with a somewhat-assuring: âIâll be right backâ before leaving the room, returning after a few moments with a table leg, nearly comical in the proud manner he lifts the wood, jagged edges evidence of his severing with a knife.Â
After copious laughter do you glance at him, brow cocked. âThis is really all youâve got?â
Asking from your place beside him, you brace more weight onto the makeshift crutch, granting Han a side-long glance.
âIf I had more Iâd use it,â He huffs, watching you hobble slightly but remaining upright with worried brows, hands poised to stabilize your steadying adjustment.
Thatâs most important, you deemed, no matter how puny. A drag to the team means death; you wonât be that drag.
Tomorrow morning youâll head out. Find somewhere else to occupy whilst searching for Hellion Inn.
The one remaining routine amidst the apocalypse is time, and as the sun cracks above a horizon once able to be admired and not envied, youâre helped to your feet, gathering bags slung over each other's backs. Additional clothes, torn tablecloths. Anything of even insufficient use.
You donât think these streets had been this quiet since your grandparentâs time, with bustling citizens and raging business overtaking wherever you look. Now, it might as well be a ghost-town. No more cries for help, no more groans and moans in agony.
And yet, itâs almost unsettling as it is reassuring. Suffering has ceased. Cries for help drawn to a close.Â
Peace within death.
Trekking for only about a mile feels tumultuous, the ache already coiling in your bones like snakes seen slithering through rubble, waiting for rats to swarm decomposing carcasses in search of easy victims.
Seoul has become a jungle, eat or be eaten. Itâs only a matter of time, a split-second ignorance, that can have you eaten. Perhaps by the true Monster, perhaps by your own kind.
The sight of broken columns and french doors parted in what looks to be a hotel in front of you redirects your focus, granting Han a hum of acknowledgment. His hand reaching for the pistol in a fashioned holster, yours coming to the kitchen knife held in your bag.
Wary, but slow steps paired with your hobbled ones make for the small bout of stairs, buzzing of flies caught in flurries littering goosebumps along your arms.
Something about this place is abnormal. That much is known. And if this is the so-called âHellion Innâ (or what remains of it), your hope for sanctuary plummets in tandem with the temperature upon stepping in.Â
Cold. That dead, stale kind of cold, warmth from the heart void, no longer beating.
Matchstick providing barely enough light, you carefully pry open the squeaking doors in the second doorway, blade wielded close to your being. The putrid odor of decay perplexes your gag reflexes, allowing Han to take the lead in his observing endeavor.Â
Abruptly, your foot smushes against something below, and when you look down only to be met with a lifeless hand there, bulging, horror-stricken eyes staring back up at you, you hurriedly bite your lip to conceal the bubbling scream clawing from your throat, frothing like a brewing cauldron.Â
Han can only grimace.Â
It was here. Youâre not sure when, but these wounds â these corpses mercilessly ripped apart â arenât the doing of humans.
A bone chilling thought surfaces in your mind.
What if the monster is still here?
Your traveling companion spins around on his heel, hands placed on his hips. Honeyed irises momentarily flit between your paled frame to the obvious terror staining your features, his eyebrows raised.
âHey, I know itâs scary, but the monsterâs likely gone by now, and if we can find someone or a sign thatâll redirect us then maybeâŚâ
His words trail off, suddenly all too familiar with the sound of chortled breathing ragged in his ears. Exhales stenching of rotted flesh, the scraping of sharpened claws on the floor.
And how youâre not staring at him, but above him.Â
Your palms slowly reach up to cover your mouth, taking the tiniest step back manageable.
â..Itâs right behind me, isnât it?â
Yet, before the Monster can swipe a clawed hand and hack off a limb, deja vu strikes in the form of another gunshot, not silenced, booming,
It soars right past your shoulder with pinpoint precision to land within the Monsterâs side, collecting a shriek in return. The beast flails wildly as Han races from its clutches towards the unknown savior of his.
Fluffy hair, a torn, mud-stained jean jacket over his shoulders, white undershirt equally unkempt. The four of you survey the monsterâs descent deeper into the hotel, not appearing to execute anymore attack attempts.
For now.
No less, youâre helped outside in your wobbly state, the shot-gun boy leading, another seeming to take up the rear behind you and Han. His companion, maybe. Just as you and Han are.
Sharper features oppose the shotgun-carrying boyâs downturned eyes with inquisitive, apprehensive ones. Lighter hair, jeans bagging by his shoes, white teeâs once graphic design smudged, unrecognizable. His own weapon lies in spiked boxing gloves, nails seemingly ruptured through the cushioned layers.
And when his eyes meet yours, you feel fire in your veins. Blazing, warming you from your toes to your fingertips.
âYou guys alright?â
Shot-gun boy, introduced as Kim Seungmin, speaks first, spinning on his heel to regard either of you. Though, itâs hard for your mind to stay attentive, the feeling of Seungminâs companionsâ eyes incessantly boring into your back causing a wary twitch of your fingers.Â
âLee Minho.â
His voice breaks you from that apprehensive spell, that watchful gaze of his surveying both you and Han with an unimpressed exhale.
âDonât slow us down,â He scowls, shouldering past Han, lips drawn into a tight line. He heads for their own vehicle, a worn down truck narrowly resting in better condition than your earlier tow truck by the tracks.
Real friendly.
Seungmin, a tad bit more benign, gestures with a curt nod to the vehicle, ushering your injury-wielding self to sit in the passenger seat with Minho as driver, Seungmin and Han taking the truckâs bed.
Just then does the Monster make its return, bursting from the hotel in a seemingly rejuvenated spirit from before, gaping jaws aching to be filled.
You could only hope your flesh wouldnât be the filler.
âThis is why I hate introductions,â Minho, already slamming his foot onto the pedal, grumbles, not granting a response upon tires burning rubber over dusty roads as you speed off â a replay of your ride with Han on loop each time you see the Monster in your mirror.
Approaching closer, closer again.
It seems food becoming involved is a common theme, jarred when the truck swerves in front of a supermarket. Seungmin shouts from the back as he and Han race ahead, beckoning you two to follow them, your steps lightly hobbled with feeble help of the makeshift crutch.
âThe hell do I have to be on babysitting duty for?â Minho, lifting your arm over his shoulder, grovels, and you fight the urge to whack him with your crutch, making through the desolate supermarket.Â
Weapons in clutch, it grows taxing trying not to grimace hearing clattering glass, the mental picture of those bulging eyes doing little for your already queasy stomach.
âItâll hear us!âÂ
With your horrible luck intact, this already dislikable stranger ends up being the same soul you're lodged into a bathroom stall with.
Minho hisses, furrow of his brows causing his face to scrunch with distaste, the loud clatter of soup cans and chip bags alike resounding from outside in the thick of the Monsterâs carnage.
âNo, itâll hear you. More people means more death, and lucky for you, Iâll be off your hands in no time.â Now itâs your turn to retort, the man lacking of his usual boxing gloves, strap of Seungminâs shotgun over a shoulder instead.
Wriggling yourself from his grasp, you hesitantly slide the notch to the door, movement only stopped by Minhoâs lingering hand grabbing your sleeve.Â
âAnd what the hell are you doing?â
âIâm repaying a favor.â
Weighing your ability to walk well, you snag the shotgun from his shoulder, granting the man a wink and a: âThanks for the shotgunâ, before slipping from the stall, leaving his starstruck figure in tow.
Ignoring the biting ache in your thigh thanks to a discarded crutch, you savor cool metal beneath your fingertips, watching the blur of the other two boys racing past the Monsterâs attempts of attack.Â
âHey! Ugly fucker, over here!â You shout, chilled seeing blind eyes rip your way.
Cocking the gun, your eyes narrow, focusing the sight on its head andâ
Bang!
Echoing around the supermarket does a copper bullet gnash into thin skin, puncturing straight through, shell casing crinkling onto the floor below in tandem with a low groan of the creature.
Minho bursts from the bathroom moments later, still sporting a starstruck visage. Han and Seungmin go thundering right past back to the truck, the wild goose chase persisting.Â
What wasn't persistent was Minhoâs arms wrapping around your back, hauling you over his shoulder like a sack of rice whilst chasing right after his counterparts.
As much as youâd like to thank him, your thigh still hurts like hell.
âYah! That- hurts- asshole!â Shrieked between his hurried footsteps, you smack his shoulder blade defiantly.
Hopefully that serves as a thank you.
However, escaping is far from reach, and feeling presumably safe is equally residing far from grasp when, after finally being able to inhale without a stutter to your lung halfway down the road, the sharp snap of a tire blows.
And the truck flips over.
It was one thing maneuvering from the flipped car, shards of glass embedded in your skin beckoning pinpricks of blood, and another continuing on foot to wherever the two acquaintances planned to lead to.
The largest of things, however, was learning the name of this apparent destination.
Hellion Inn.
With Seungmin sustaining a minor head injury, Han luckily unharmed, and an also unharmed Minho reluctant to aid in being your temporary crutch, youâre given plenty of time for interrogation along the way â wondering just who the hell was responsible for the letter.Â
As far as their replies go, not a soul knows.
And at this rate, you canât bring yourself to care about pestering for answers anymore, not with Minhoâs aggravating complaining and equally as irritating, stupidly good-looking side profile.
So, the torturous walk to this supposed âInnâ prevails, which, turns out not to be an Inn at all. Instead, itâs this metal, bus looking contraption, like a trailer.
Silver of the exterior tarnished, it hides within a surrounding forest entryway, vines curling around door fixtures as if with time, what remained would be swallowed by the greenery.
From the bus two more men exit, and you canât help but wonder if this so-called Hellion Inn has just as many residents as an actual Inn.
Christopher Bahng and Seo Changbin introduce themselves hastily, quick to rush back into the bus and retrieve a medical kit. After enduring both the painful removal of glass, your reopened wound stitched, and Chrisâs heart wrenching smile of assurance (followed by a pat to your kneecap after, ensuring an imminent heart attack on your part), youâre finally invited inside, introduced to the others.
Three more.Â
Itâs a clown car. Definitely.Â
Yang Jeongin, Hwang Hyunjin, Lee Felix. Boys- no, men, with features youâd like to deem frustratingly attractive.Â
Maybe photoshoot, not a clown car.
No less, the seven interact with ease, Han intermingling as if heâd been by their side for eternity. A bonfire, expertly lit behind the bus hidden amongst foliage to conceal smoke, provides warmth in the night.
Cold, just as itâs always been. Even more so with autumnâs presence.
Yet, you find your eyes falling right back to him.
Minho.
Man of fire, whose gaze on yours feels like your ribs cracking apart, as if his fingers bend your windpipe every which way, rendering no air into your lungs. He is fire, licking at your skin in the most deplorable of ways.
And you crave it.
If he were Hades, youâd eat the pomegranate seeds like a fool just to feel his eyes on you again and again.
Selfish.
When he looks at you, you feel selfish. Perhaps itâs the stakes, perhaps your heart has grown too weak, beat too fast it falls for any and all. Adrenaline-induced love.
You arenât naive like Persephone, arenât blindsided by curiosity.
That latter is a lie. Especially when you shift on the log, purposefully scooting closer to catch bits and pieces of his conversation with Jeongin, listen to the perfect pitch of his voice, aided by the crackling of flames before you.
You wonder if touching him would rival those white-hot flames. Scalding your fingers till you grew numb.Â
Youâd take that bet.
Fluffy fabric placed over your shoulders makes you flinch in place, sympathetic eyes of chocolate meeting yours.
Honeyed. Chris.
âItâs cold, stay warm,â He ushers, crouching to take a seat on your left.
Then do you register his actions. A blanket, the material a survivor of waterâs toil and plenty of stains. But itâs warm, durable, and most importantly, sweet. Chris is sweet, you decide, a bit like this warm blanket.
Your nod of thanks doesnât feel like it even slightly compensates for his kindness, though, for now, itâs enough.
Tomorrow, Chris, Changbin, Minho, and Jeongin will relocate the flipped truck. Haul it back, fix it up again. Thatâs what your sensible mind discerns, seemingly adopted into the group like any other as sleeping arrangements in the bus are modified for both you and Han.
Strays, huh.
A flickering gas lamp keeps your gaze glued to the ceiling where you lie, watching shadows twirl like a strange ballet along the walls. Near the front of the bus does Chris sleep, Changbin glued to his side, Felix tucked beneath his arm.
It brings a smile to your lips, watching them. Even Seungmin, with his more boundary-oriented persona, close to the others, his hand brushing against Hyunjinâs shoulder, Jeonginâs head.Â
Human beings, after all. Even when it all falls apart. And maybe, maybe in monsters as well, there is human. The need to be close, to feel skin on skin.Â
Counting heads, you find one missing.
âYou should be sleeping.â
Minho flicks a lighter on and off, waiting to relight the gas lamp. He squats down in front of you, jeans stretched over muscular thighs.
Your brow furrows, wondering if heâd been here this whole time amidst your ignorance.
âAre you scared?â
His words dull your ability to reply, retort something smart. But, the tone keeps your mouth shut. Cool and calm, like when he spoke to Jeongin by the fire. Not taunting, nor instigating.
âNo.â
The words are a lie, unveiled in the crease of a dirt-stricken face, chapped lips pulled taut.
His pinky finding yours verifies that fire theory. From the tips of your toes to the very top of your scalp you feel it.Â
Scorching. Hot.
Your skin seems to melt from your bones, but only you can see it.
There are lots of questions to ask. Wondering, hope. Why?
But he beats you to it. It seems youâll have to get used to that characteristic.
âGo to sleep. Nothing can get you here.â
A lie, you know it well. Any second that monster can stumble here. Smell you, turn the perfect corner to find the bus, sheen shimmering beneath a full moon. Ravage each and every one of you beneath claws and blood.
But the letter, no, Minho says youâll be safe here. That Hellion Inn will be your safe haven.Â
Tonight, you choose to believe that, falling asleep with his pinky twined with yours, his back to one of the side booths, focus trained on your features.
Safe.
âHnn..âÂ
Insistent poking to your cheek abducts you from your dream, bleary eyes straining to open. Jeongin sits up, bracing himself with his hands, youthful smile stretched over his face watching you. Meanwhile, the hellspawn guilty, Hyunjin, canât help but laugh cheerily.
âWahâ I wish I had a camera!â Ebony strands peek from beneath a white ball cap, his voice carries from the bus for Felixâs head to peek in, echoing Hyunjinâs laugh with his deeper baritone.
Similar to Chris are you met with Felixâs kindness, his lithe form slipping past the bus doors to gently smooth back your bed hair, utilizing a hair tie on his wrist to bind the unruly strands before patting your head.
Itâs easy to ache for anyoneâs touch, you discover.
In the early morning, the car was retrieved by Minho, Chris, Jeongin, and Changbin, the low chatter of voices outside evidence of their progress restoring the once flipped vehicle.
When you step out, Changbin hands you a tin of steaming soup as meager breakfast youâre quick to thank him for, bringing the spoon to your lips whilst lingering near the car, watching them flit about, handing each other tools and screws alike like busied ants.
âYou just gonna stand there or help out? Last time I checked you werenât worried about appearances.â
Instantaneously, Minho becomes his normal, annoying self with each snidely sarcastic remark, cocked brows urging you to retaliate.
Unfortunately, your barely conscious mind canât formulate something smart back, so you resort to serving as the tool-supplier, handing different ones here and there from a stool near where the Man of Fire works on the popped wheel.
His new title, apparently.
Man of Fire.
âWrench.â
âDid you just call me a wench?â You scoff, eyes wide with shock at the murmured comment.Â
Perhaps you were blindsided after all by his nice face.
âWrench.â
Or not.
Begrudgingly, you extend the wrench, scowl embedded in your expression he canât help but crack a bemused grin at.
Attaching the wrench to a bolt to crank does his vein-littered forearms flex, and your throat feels unnaturally dry, forcing yourself to focus on something else in order to school an unaffected facade.
Nevertheless, by night, heâs.. different. Lacking cockiness, harshness.
Unspoken things, like when youâre stirred from sleep, dazed gaze settling on Minho across the bus, his fingers tenderly patting Changbinâs head when he stirs awake. They speak in hushed whispers alternative to Changbinâs boisterous presence.Â
And sometimes, amidst the other seven, youâre the one beneath his comforting hand. Those times nightmares plague your sleep, his careful hands tracing your knuckles, slow circles over your skin urging you back into the solace of sleep.
To you he doesnât talk, just hums a low melody, wipes unshed tears from your waterline. Seeing his face makes you want to cry more, so you can be scooped into his hug.
Though, you doubt youâd ever let go, so you never allow yourself more tears. Maybe thatâs for the better.
Because while youâre so selfishly enamored as night falls and he becomes that doting figurine bathed in moonlight, Minho is endlessly selfless. Wordless, but selfless.
The guardian of the night, sustaining a semblance of care and safety that silently engulfs the bus each time a star twinkles within the sky.
Then again, risks are always present. Missions out for food, stashing of possessions in case of invasion.
Windows of the bus covered, the group convenes that evening, leant over a book on the floor, huddled with knees held close to chests. Sharing things of value, adding more.
An old journal, spine tattered and moth-eaten. Inside looks to hold the secrets of the world, hidden within yellowed pages, hurried writing of smudged ink.
All of it, from the Monsterâs mannerisms, exterior, presumed weaknesses. Written, documented. How such information was gathered is beyond you. Intricate, detailed.
Study after study, page after page.Â
In two days, youâre arranged to head out with Chris for a medical restock. The pharmacy isnât too far from the Inn, and itâll only be a few hours of collecting before returning back.
The morning of, Seungmin hands you his shotgun, and Chris takes Minhoâsâthe Man of Firesâânail-wielding boxing gloves. Two backpacks, one goal.
Fortunately, the journey isnât too grueling, filled with quiet conversation and query till barely divisible characters reading âPHARMACYâ come into view, slipping into the hollowed, whitened confines of a once thriving business.
Eerie, with medication strung awry, unknown blood splattered along a wall behind the register.
Itâs almost funny how the money there goes untouched. What use is it now?
Captured within your peripheral does a door become of topic, shielded behind a hanging towel in the far corner of the pharmacy that you slowly pad over to inspect, fingers tentative in nudging to the side.Â
Though, itâs the sudden flick of lights, electricity, that makes you gasp, flashlight of little necessity as you part double doors.
The sight makes your heart stop.
Because beneath the disguise of a pharmacy rests a drug-den, a laboratory, first and foremost.
âUh.. Does Seungmin have this in his journal..?âÂ
Building long since redlined by the look of it, Chris is quick to join your side, muttering an awestruck: âHoly shitâ you wouldâve laughed at if it werenât for your combined surprise.Â
Though, he places an arm in front of you as your foot moves to step inside, instead advising the muzzle of your shotgun to lead you, clearing the area before feasting on this monstrosity.
Countless test tubes litter every surface in sight, but it isnât mixtures, isnât a combo of products.
Itâs insects, piled with them.
Many deformed in gruesome ways, trapped inside the tubes. Chris, hastily pulling an old camera from his bag, snaps photos, the shutterâs sound echoing around the room.
Yet, you canât help but notice a near uncanny resemblance.
Incisors, bulging eyes, like the Monster.
No, it wouldnât be. A mega ant? No, that thing is far from solely ant with its hulking size.
âDonât you think this is just.. odd? I mean, theyâre already up to their noses in cash from the drugs, Iâm sure, so why the.. ants?âÂ
Chris exhales slowly through his nose, shaking his head.
âMy guess is as good as yours. And calling it a âguilty pleasureâ just makes me nauseous, I mean look at them, theyâre.. infected.â
Fungal growth is clear as day, thatâs agreed. The true question rests in reason.
Just what were they doing here?
The longer you linger, the more unsettling it becomes.
Because somehow, your gut canât shake that resemblance to the Monster.
Your walk back to the bus is quiet, shrouded in nerves and a wanting for familiarity. Safe to say you both sigh in relief seeing that silvery, unmoving vehicle.
Itâs almost comical how the uneasiness spreads, like whatever fungus altered the insects, contorting them in disfigured shapes, features. Overtaking the nine of you similarly.
Merely thinking about it gives you chills, Chrisâs description, as youâre coddled into the bus with the others to explain, doing little for the vomit tempting your throat.
Effortlessly, your same silence washes over the others, paled as they acknowledge the identical resemblance youâd conjured before.
âYou donât think..â Youâre feeble in attempting to disprove the suspicions, trembling of your fingers stilled only when Minhoâs index traces your wrist.Â
Though, it isnât night, and the look he grants you makes you wish for his touch even more.
Assurance, worn within the grooves of his face, repetitive stroke of his fingertip over a hammering pulse.
âI do think, show me the picture again.â Seungmin beckons, hurriedly flipping through his own notebook as he narrows his eyes on the photo Chris shows.Â
Seungmin, you learned, used to be an entomology major in Seoulâs most prestigious university. Studious, with a bright future nearing.
Interesting how easy those aspirations can crumble apart within a day, within seconds.
But thereâs no purpose in reminiscing, is there?
Now resorting to gathered notes of the past, he finally stops at a page, finger glued to the scribbled notes. His other hand reaches to the photo, pointing to a tiny label taped to a test tube halfway outside the frame, writing messy and uneven, barely legible against the blur of the camera.
Ophiocordyceps unilateralism, or, in easier terms, zombie-ant fungus.Â
Thanks to Seungminâs insight, his knowledge dictates the occurrence as âa fungus capable of infecting the mind of its host while simultaneously altering its body.â
So, in a horror-movie-esque, freakish way, a parasite.Â
Jeongin pipes up, and you swear at least four of you flinch at the sudden sound of a voice against leaden silence.
âBut the Monsterâs too big to be an ant, right? How could theââÂ
âWhat if it wasnât an ant, but another animal? A bigger animal. Some scientific breakthrough where the host was able to be taken over, not by an ant, but by something bigger.âÂ
The entirety remains consumed in a stillness, taking in the revelation theyâve just come to.Â
Fear is almost palpable. Nearly able to be tasted, smelt.Â
Hanâs leg bounces anxiously, dirty fingernails reaching to claw at his hair, tearing at his scalp with visible shuddering Chrisâs warm palm hopes to ease, placed on his shoulder.
âWeâre being hunted by a parasite.â He croaks hoarsely in disbelief, tone pathetically cracking in terror.Â
A parasite, yes. This, however, is different.Â
The monster lurking through Seoul was planned, arranged accordingly under the guise of law and human greed for motive unknown.
A lone pharmacy, meant to cater to human health, now manufacturerers of human destruction.
This parasite is man-made.Â
Your spirit couldâve been staunched easily, dampened by the weight of discovery. Grown unwilling to fight anymore, unwilling to try surviving.
Who are we if not going for each other's throats? Why must someoneâs greed become everyone elseâs problem?
Something so selfish, so horrid it grew out of control, festering like a seed of hatred in oneâs heart till spiky leaves and branches poured from their lungs and suffocated them.
For a moment do you entertain the doubts, the scornful attitude over the boiled egg in hand. An early breakfast the day after the realization, with the nine of you seated along the busâs roof, legs swinging off the side while watching the sunrise.Â
You feel like the only people in the world.Â
And a bit longer seeing shades of orange and crisp blue bleed across the sky does it feel like itâs all worth living for once again.
So instead, you adapt.
Jotting down more details about the fungus, figuring out ways to combat it. Continual stocking of food, the usual.
Fixing things, keeping up with communication. Laughter and smiling, momentary glances to that Man-of-Fire making you clam up, just like before.
At least that was predictable.Â
A continual gas lamp, those same quiet visits of his within the night. And, more often than not, youâd find Minhoâs pinkie linking with yours while he slept, without a nightmare or sleepless night as explanation.Â
In the mornings, youâd pretend like it never happened. Go back to cat and mouse, square one.
Hold my hand, but keep quiet.Â
I donât want you to leave.
Plenty of things echo through your mind as dawn arises, when your lids twitch and disoriented eyes flutter open to find him beside you, peacefully asleep.
Most days, heâs gone by dawn, somewhere across the bus sleeping, leaving your groggy mind to configure his touch as a mere dream.
No matter the awe, your body betrays such an occasion, and you fall right back to sleep again hoping he could read your mind, keep that contact beneath the blanket.
Unbeknownst to you, the moment your eyes close, his eyes open.
But youâre already asleep when a gentle index traces your cheek, his lips parting with a slow breath.Â
âPretty,â Is whispered, failing to echo around the bus in its hushed volume, a pinch of normality within the chirping of birds, the breach of an emerging day peering over sparse clouds.
âHm?âÂ
He wasnât anticipating your response, breath catching in his throat.
âHi Minho,â You murmur gently, greeting his surprised disposition as your lips wind into a tiny smile.Â
Involuntary. Lips quirking upwards the longer you hold eye-contact.
And surprisingly, Minho cracks a smile too.
Itâs feeble, barely divisible apart from the twitch of his lips. Your thumb traces the crinkle, too sleepy to speak, too comfortable to act.Â
âHi there.â
His hand returns your touch, finding your cheek to rest on, savoring the feeling of your skin on his, his on yours.
Stay here, donât go.
I donât want to be left alone again.
His brisk glance at your lips has your nerves buzzing beneath such a gaze.
Knowing, obliging.
Obliging as his head tips, as yours complies. Capable of fitting like the perfect puzzle asâ
Seungmin mumbles something unintelligible in his sleep, and itâs all a dream once more how Minho slips from your hands as if he was never there in the first place.
Three and a half months at Hellion Inn passes in a flash. Research on combatants to the zombie-ant fungus prevalent, plenty of days spent crowded in the bus, throwing around possibilities and idyll conversation.Â
Monster sightings have become sparse, with the vast majority of reports informing of its scavenging of the cityâs copious bodies.
A sense of relief until it runs out of flesh and craves more, which is where your apocalypse began all over.
Starting with that same, chillingly bellowed chuff at least half a mile out from Hellion Inn.
You donât think youâd ever seen the eight of them move so quickly. Gas lamp extinguished, weapons cocked and loaded with ammunition ready to fire. Minhoâs studded boxing gloves, Seungminâs shotgun, Chrisâs dual pistols. Plentiful traps arranged about the bus, ones you never anticipated having to utilize up till tonight.
How foolish you were.
However, the busâs roof isnât caved in by a claw, the nine of you intact for the remainder of the restless night, void of any more sound from the Monster.Â
Then again, the torment is far from yielding, with those same, restless nights becoming avidly frequent, Minhoâs soothing capabilities tested as a nightmare per week triples in number.
In those times, you find comfort in each other, comfort in bodies snuggled together, in shared pain and happiness. In as much comfort support allows in the thick of a never-ending hailstorm.Â
As for you, you find that longing has folded itself into squares of eighteen from a once meager eight. Folded over and over that, the greater the paper grows with each parted fold, the greater that longing burns.Â
Burns, like the smoke billowing from a fire outside.
Location of the slow-to-set sun leads you to believe itâs around 3pm, your figure slumped to the floor of the bus.
Though, the missing factor rests in a lack of eight others who currently occupy the fire outside for dinner.
Yesterday, you and Jeongin took on a water restock, roaming about what seemed to be innumerable miles to repeat the walk with heavy packs of water all the way back, currently the cause of your exhaustion as you sleep into the evening the day after.
If only the sleep was peaceful, refreshing.
Itâs not.
Well, it was. But not for long.
A shower, according to the flickering of your consciousness as you dream. Warm water droplets pattering on the tile floor underfoot, cleansing grime from your skin. Electricity.
And somehow, a peculiar name leaves your lips upon seeing a shadow behind the shower curtain.
âMinho.â
The sound of your voice is light in this dream. Awaiting, familiar.Â
Yet, the pit in your stomach grows, unnaturally.
You find the cause when pulling back the shower curtain, that same, leering smile of the Monster staring back at you as it lunges.
Not Minho.
Your vision goes black, only able to hear the ringing screech of your scream, the heat of the shower now putrid metallic. Blood, replacing the water.
It fills your senses, suffocating you slowly but surely. Overflowing from your nose, your eyes, till you cry crimson.
A sharp twitch of your hand jars you awake.
Youâre not bleeding, not in a shower, no Monster in sight. Although, youâd be lying to yourself to say you can just forget it all, act like nothingâs the matter.
More so when you see Minhoârecalling his name uttered so sweetly in your dreamâstanding at the busâs doorway, seemingly a witness to your horrors as he closes the door behind himself.
Ah.Â
No, donât look at me right now with that doting gaze, as if Iâm something to be cared for, something delicate.Â
For once I wish you away, so I donât begin to cry, so my love for you doesnât become my ruin.
âAnd it was- it was right in front of me andââ
He sees through you each time, through the toughened exterior, the shake of your head when he asks if you need anything, want to talk about it.Â
He came in for an extra blanket, apparently. One long forgotten by now.
Spill your guts, but when it comes to him, you find your heart spilling with it. Words caught in a hyperventilating daze, your hands flail, eyes struck permanently bulging.
At some point, everyone starts to break. No time table to give you an estimate, forewarning.
It just bubbles until bursting.
âI donât⌠I donât want to do this anymore..â Voice a desperate plea, sobs wrack your body numb. âWhy canâtâŚâ You begin, eyes flitting to Minho.
âWhy canât we all just die together?â
Heaved between sharp inhales is your face taken between calloused hands, his brows knitted.
âCause whoâs going to take our place? Who else is alive?â He whispers, kneeled upon the floor, staring at you nonsensically.
âThis once, let me be selfish. I wonât let you die. You canât die because I want you alive. Do you understand?âÂ
Slow to nod, bleary vision situates upon the man, cursing the dip to your usually strong tone â cracking, weakened.
âCan⌠Can I just.. forget?âÂ
His eyes flit to your lips if only for an instant, like that time a month ago, stolen.Â
And for a moment, you think he may have just read your mind.
âMinho, please⌠I want to-â
Ah.
And he kisses you, and then, no, more. More and more, till youâre tangled up in sprawled blankets and sleeping bags. Smoke tainting the air from outside, calves dangling from his shoulders, toes curled.Â
Minho makes you forget, forget and forget, leaving you to helplessly utter his name past chapped lips â till another round turns into what feels to be a lifetime.Â
Your palms pressing to his jaw like a plea, head tossing back once more with a sound purely guttural.Â
Itâs sloppy, itâs clumsy. Sweat-stuck kisses to sweat-stuck skin. Nails digging into already moth-eaten clothing, his lips permanently pressed to your pulse, hammering and hammering in a wordless incantation of bliss.Â
And yet, no amount of greedy, mindless sex, no amount of his doting kisses, his careful assurances, praises, can deter your mind from a reality unavoidable.
Thereâs no euphoria, no recovery your skin can even acknowledge as he flops to your side, both out of breath.
â.. Am I selfish for a pleasure I canât even enjoy?âÂ
Silence breached, your eyes flutter closed, an involuntary tear slipping down your cheek where you lay upon the bunched sleeping bag.
This had been a dream, to be burned by the Man of Fire. Allowing his kiss to brand you, his touch searing every ounce of skin raw.
Little did you know youâd already scorched it all yourself.
Cruel. Irrevocably cruel.
Not even clarity grants your senses, emotion muddled between undergarments feeling too tight and grimy and the lack of fresh air rendering sticky bodies into a cold sweat. Â
From beside you, his hand extends to your cheek, thumbing away the salty droplet with a weary smile.
âThere is no selfishness, just⌠grasping onto whatâs left. Youâre not selfish for taking what you can get, not when everything is being taken from you.â
Hellion Inn was not your safety, it was the one gazing at you, the seven others outside.Â
This is only a house, Minho is your home.
Fifth month arising, a conclusion is met. Amongst not-so-helpful input, bickering, and plenty of runs to libraries to gather more books on Ophiocordyceps unilateralism for a very studious Seungmin, he presents a possibility, an option.
Of its known enemies, the zombie-ant fungus doesnât have many. There was the initial hypothesis on ways ants protect from the parasite, but with the Monster already infected, those methods were out of the question.
Then came the breakthrough.
Torrubiellomyces zombiae, or T.Z. An additional, fanciful word for a more powerful parasite. A Hyperparasitic fungi, zombie-ant fungusâ predator.
Create an ultimate beast without known opponents? Simply double the size, the power.
Thatâs where T.Z arrived, the species a core option for the Monsterâs destruction. Get the spores on the Monsterâs skin, and stay alive until it takes over and stabilizes the fungusâ infection.
Much easier said than done, which left room for the organized members of the group separating steps into phases.
Phase one focuses on collection of the spores. Extra photos Chris took that first encounter in the pharmacy unveiled the likely presence of the desired spores, which Felix, Hyunjin, and Seungmin have been elected to collect as Team C.
Phase two regards locating the Monster, introducing the presence of a harpoon gun (an idea Han loved (for the sole reason of fooling around with the harpoon gun)).
The point of the harpoon will be coated in collected spores, teams of three with three members each (A, B, and C) dispersed throughout the surrounding area the monster before Team A shoots.
And of course, courtesy of Hanâs mention on what phase three should be:Â
Run like hell.Â
Phase two enacting in exactly a week, Hellion Inn spends its days in preparation, plaguing each breathing moment with gathering necessities and ensuring utilities are present. Â
Between those lines comes the lividity.
Kisses in the night, his kisses. The shared cockiness, incessant teasing when the others are around as original as it comes despite such tenderness in private.
Your souls bared, secrets spoken into the air for only your ears to hear.
While the others sleep, you love till your heart hurts, watching him fall asleep against your palm where heâd kissed each of your fingertips minutes prior.
âI love you,â He whispers one night, his nose buried into your cheek with a heavy sigh.Â
Thereâs not a single doubt within your mind, a hesitation, a hint of surprise.
Plenty of times itâs been said without words, repeated in the peck he presses to your skin.
âI love you too.â
And you repeat the words in a kiss to his lips. Slow, careful.
Savor. As if it were your last.
Dark clouds wrinkle your vision, spitting rain nothing short of irritating as you, Han, and Minho slip through cluttered underbrush.
Gathering of the spores had been successful by Team C according to the flare gunâs signal, and Team Aâconsisting of Changbin, Jeongin and Chrisâtracked the location of the monster.Â
Itaewon hasn't changed apart from the lack of bodies, assumed to be the Monsterâs doing. Debris prominent, scavenging animals littering the streets without the usual congestion of people.
When the second flare blooms into shaded sky, thatâll be the indication the last stage: shooting the monster, is underway. For now, the three of you wait, listening in as hurried footsteps of Team C come thundering towards you.
Seungmin offers the vial, Minho lifting the harpoon gun to plunge into what appears to be an oddly shaped mushroom, your arm already lifted to the sky to fire Team Bâs own flare gun.
Half way. Not done yet.
Now for Phase three, but, prior to the ârun like hellâ notion.
Jeongin is the retriever of the harpoon gun, angling through side streets past a lingering monster in the center to deliver the catalyst.
Almost there, almostâ
His foot clashing against the metal of an alleyway trash-can disrupts that peace, and synonymously do you feel all breath held.
Chris was supposed to deliver the shot. Jeongin was supposed to make it to Team A unnoticed.
The world seems to grow mute, Hanâs wrenching scream from beside you fallen upon deaf ears as the Monsterâs gaping jaws beeline for Jeongin, claws extended, the boy kneeling to the ground.
Then, a ping! resounds, and your eyes are slow to open in fear his mutilated body would sit there, bright eyes lifeless.
Itâs almost slow motion seeing it. Centimeters from Jeonginâs face does a palm outstretch, twice the size of his head, fingers twitching as if frozen in space.
Then you see it.
In the middle of that palm, the mere edge of the harpoonâonly able to get halfway from its sheathâembeds.
Cavernous jaws of the creature part, incisors poised as if disbelieving of the matter itself. Disbelieving of the parasite taking over, altering its blood stream.Â
Wilt.
White, almost decaying in the manner the alternate fungi destroys the weaker one, its muscles failing, body freezing.
You half anticipated the creature to at least try fighting in the meantime, land one last swipe.Â
But the more time ticking past as you lean forward disproves any chance of movement, able to physically see the blood cells permeating the creature ashen, once curved claws diminishing simultaneously like that of crumbling embers.
Just then does Hyunjinâs voice breach your focus, curdled in urgency. Itâs his cry that beckons Jeongin back to his feet, racing back after the others, tip of the harpoon still wedged within the Monsterâs palm.
Oddly enough, as you watch the last of it dust into the wind as if melting, it doesn't feel real.
Too simple, uncanny. As if millions hadnât extinguished in its horrid mawâa single parasite killing off the apocalypse bringer as easy as that.
Yet, it wasnât easy at all.
Testing every last ounce of your wish for life, wish for a reality snatched from not just you, but eight othersâ fingertips.
It was taxing. Surviving, experiencing the start of new love you didnât think could sprout among a wintery wasteland included.Â
But it did sprout, and the way youâre the first person Minhoâs eyes drift to speaks that loud and clear.
Twin blossoms of the most brilliant colors, growing brighter the nearer they are.Â
Closer than love, truly.Â
We made it.
The Monster is gone.
There isnât a word spoken as you make back for Hellion Inn, make back for home. The crunch of footsteps along gravel rings in your eardrums, breath exhaled from parted lips, matted, grease-ridden hair the least of your concern. No joyous shouting, no celebratory behavior in the slightest.
What is there to celebrate anyway? So many lives lost, too many to mourn.
Progression of your footsteps carries each soul with it, allowing them a final sleep in their eternal resting place.
Sleep well, Seoul.Â
âItâs all over.âÂ
Whispered amidst roaring flames, you can only stare at the pharmacy as fiery flickersâvials, chemicals, ants includedâswallow whatever has been left, torching hellâs origin once and for all.
One last stop. One last goodbye to all that was, the last chapter.
Without a word, Minhoâs pinky links with your own.
sunboki, may 2022 Š
FIC TAGLIST. @linocvp1d
oh my gosh I've been waiting for this đ getting on this NOW
nuf said

Anya is live and ready to show you everything. Watch her strip, dance, and perform exclusive shows just for you. Interact in real-time and make your fantasies come true.
Free to watch ⢠No registration required ⢠HD streaming
has any other kpop stan gone through an anime and genshin phase?? this feels like such a loser thing to admit but I think it's a universal experience
has any other kpop stan gone through an anime and genshin phase?? this feels like such a loser thing to admit but I think it's a universal experience

